This is a modern-English version of Anna of the Five Towns, originally written by Bennett, Arnold. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.



ANNA OF THE FIVE TOWNS

Anna of the Five Towns


BY

BY

ARNOLD BENNETT

ARNOLD BENNETT




THIRTEENTH EDITION

13TH EDITION




METHUEN & CO. LTD.
36 ESSEX STREET W.C.
LONDON

METHUEN & CO. LTD.
36 ESSEX STREET W.C.
LONDON




First issued in this Cheap Form (Third Edition) - September 5th 1912
Fourth Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - September     1912
Fifth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - February      1913
Sixth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - July          1913
Seventh Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - April         1914
Eighth Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - September     1914
Ninth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - November      1915
Tenth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - July          1916
Eleventh Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - March         1917
Twelfth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - February      1918
Thirteenth Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -       1919



This Book was First Published by Messrs Chatto &
  Windus  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - September 11th, 1902
Second Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - November        1902
First issued in this Cheap Form (Third Edition) - September 5th 1912  
Fourth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - September     1912  
Fifth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - February      1913  
Sixth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - July          1913  
Seventh Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - April         1914  
Eighth Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - September     1914  
Ninth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - November      1915  
Tenth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - July          1916  
Eleventh Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - March         1917  
Twelfth Edition - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - February      1918  
Thirteenth Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -       1919  

This Book was First Published by Messrs Chatto &  
  Windus  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - September 11th, 1902  
Second Edition  - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - November        1902  



I DEDICATE THIS BOOK
WITH AFFECTION AND ADMIRATION
TO

I DEDICATE THIS BOOK
WITH LOVE AND RESPECT
TO

HERBERT SHARPE

HERBERT SHARPE

AN ARTIST
WHOSE INDIVIDUALITY AND ACHIEVEMENT
HAVE CONTINUALLY INSPIRED ME

AN ARTIST
WHOSE UNIQUE STYLE AND ACCOMPLISHMENTS
HAVE ALWAYS MOTIVATED ME




'Therefore, although it be a history
Homely and rude, I will relate the same
For the delight of a few natural hearts.'

'So, even though it's a simple and rough story,
I will share it
For the enjoyment of a few genuine souls.'




CONTENTS

CONTENTS

CHAPTER  
I.   THE KINDLING OF LOVE
II.   THE MISER'S DAUGHTER
III.   THE BIRTHDAY
IV.   A VISIT
V.   THE REVIVAL
VI.   WILLIE
VII.   THE SEWING MEETING
VIII.   ON THE BANK
IX.   THE TREAT
X.   THE ISLE
XI.   THE DOWNFALL
XII.   AT THE PRIORY
XIII.   THE BAZAAR
XIV.   END OF A SIMPLE SOUL



ANNA OF THE FIVE TOWNS

Anna of the Five Towns


CHAPTER I

THE KINDLING OF LOVE

The yard was all silent and empty under the burning afternoon heat, which had made its asphalt springy like turf, when suddenly the children threw themselves out of the great doors at either end of the Sunday-school—boys from the right, girls from the left—in two howling, impetuous streams, that widened, eddied, intermingled and formed backwaters until the whole quadrangle was full of clamour and movement. Many of the scholars carried prize-books bound in vivid tints, and proudly exhibited these volumes to their companions and to the teachers, who, tall, languid, and condescending, soon began to appear amid the restless throng. Near the left-hand door a little girl of twelve years, dressed in a cream coloured frock, with a wide and heavy straw hat, stood quietly kicking her foal-like legs against the wall. She was one of those who had won a prize, and once or twice she took the treasure from under her arm to glance at its frontispiece with a vague smile of satisfaction. For a time her bright eyes were fixed expectantly on the doorway; then they would wander, and she started to count the windows of the various Connexional buildings which on three sides enclosed the yard—chapel, school, lecture-hall, and chapel-keeper's house. Most of the children had already squeezed through the narrow iron gate into the street beyond, where a steam-car was rumbling and clattering up Duck Bank, attended by its immense shadow. The teachers remained a little behind. Gradually dropping the pedagogic pose, and happy in the virtuous sensation of duty accomplished, they forgot the frets and fatigues of the day, and grew amiably vivacious among themselves. With an instinctive mutual complacency the two sexes mixed again after separation. Greetings and pleasantries were exchanged, and intimate conversations begun; and then, dividing into small familiar groups, the young men and women slowly followed their pupils out of the gate. The chapel-keeper, who always had an injured expression, left the white step of his residence, and, walking with official dignity across the yard, drew down the side-windows of the chapel one after another. As he approached the little solitary girl in his course he gave her a reluctant acid recognition; then he returned to his hearth. Agnes was alone.

The yard was silent and empty under the scorching afternoon sun, which made the asphalt feel springy like grass, when suddenly the children burst out of the big doors at either end of the Sunday school—boys from the right and girls from the left—in two loud, rushing streams that widened, swirled, mingled, and created backwaters until the whole courtyard was filled with noise and movement. Many of the students carried prize books bound in bright colors, proudly showing them off to their friends and to the teachers, who, tall, relaxed, and condescending, soon began to appear among the restless crowd. Near the left-hand door stood a twelve-year-old girl in a cream-colored dress and a wide, heavy straw hat, quietly kicking her foal-like legs against the wall. She was one of the prize winners, and once or twice she pulled the treasure from under her arm to glance at its cover with a vague smile of satisfaction. For a while, her bright eyes were fixed expectantly on the doorway; then they wandered as she began to count the windows of the various church buildings that enclosed the yard on three sides—chapel, school, lecture hall, and the chapel keeper's house. Most of the children had already squeezed through the narrow iron gate into the street, where a steam car was rumbling and clattering up Duck Bank, casting its enormous shadow. The teachers lagged a little behind. Gradually letting go of their formal roles, and feeling good about a job well done, they forgot the stresses and fatigue of the day and became lively with each other. Instinctively, the two groups mixed again after being separated. Greetings and jokes were exchanged, and intimate conversations began; then, breaking into small friendly groups, the young men and women slowly followed their students out through the gate. The chapel keeper, who always looked injured, stepped off the white step of his house, and with an air of official dignity crossed the yard, pulling down the side windows of the chapel one by one. As he passed the little girl standing alone, he acknowledged her with a reluctant, sour nod before he returned to his home. Agnes was by herself.

'Well, young lady?'

"Well, young lady?"

She looked round with a jump, and blushed, smiling and screwing up her little shoulders, when she recognised the two men who were coming towards her from the door of the lecture-hall. The one who had called out was Henry Mynors, morning superintendent of the Sunday-school and conductor of the men's Bible-class held in the lecture-hall on Sunday afternoons. The other was William Price, usually styled Willie Price, secretary of the same Bible-class, and son of Titus Price, the afternoon superintendent.

She turned around quickly, blushing and smiling while shrugging her small shoulders as she recognized the two men walking towards her from the lecture hall door. The one who had called out was Henry Mynors, the morning superintendent of the Sunday school and the leader of the men's Bible class held in the lecture hall on Sunday afternoons. The other was William Price, often called Willie Price, the secretary of the same Bible class, and the son of Titus Price, the afternoon superintendent.

'I'm sure you don't deserve that prize. Let me see if it isn't too good for you.' Mynors smiled playfully down upon Agnes Tellwright as he idly turned the leaves of the book which she handed to him. 'Now, do you deserve it? Tell me honestly.'

'I'm sure you don't deserve that prize. Let me see if it's not too good for you.' Mynors smiled playfully down at Agnes Tellwright as he casually flipped through the pages of the book she handed him. 'So, do you really deserve it? Tell me honestly.'

She scrutinised those sparkling and vehement black eyes with the fearless calm of infancy. 'Yes, I do,' she answered in her high, thin voice, having at length decided within herself that Mr. Mynors was joking.

She examined those sparkling and intense black eyes with the fearless calm of a child. 'Yes, I do,' she replied in her high, thin voice, finally concluding that Mr. Mynors was joking.

'Then I suppose you must have it,' he admitted, with a fine air of giving way.

'Then I guess you must have it,' he conceded, with a nice sense of yielding.

As Agnes took the volume from him she thought how perfect a man Mr. Mynors was. His eyes, so kind and sincere, and that mysterious, delicious, inexpressible something which dwelt behind his eyes: these constituted an ideal for her.

As Agnes took the book from him, she thought about how perfect Mr. Mynors was. His eyes, so kind and genuine, and that mysterious, delightful, unexplainable something that lingered behind his eyes: these made up an ideal for her.

Willie Price stood somewhat apart, grinning, and pulling a thin honey-coloured moustache. He was at the uncouth, disjointed age, twenty-one, and nine years younger than Henry Mynors. Despite a continual effort after ease of manner, he was often sheepish and self-conscious, even, as now, when he could discover no reason for such a condition of mind. But Agnes liked him too. His simple, pale blue eyes had a wistfulness which made her feel towards him as she felt towards her doll when she happened to find it lying neglected on the floor.

Willie Price stood a bit apart, grinning and tugging at his thin, honey-colored mustache. He was at that awkward age, twenty-one, nine years younger than Henry Mynors. Despite his constant effort to appear relaxed, he often felt shy and self-conscious, even now when he could find no reason to feel that way. But Agnes liked him too. His simple, pale blue eyes had a wistfulness that made her feel toward him the same way she felt about her doll when she found it lying forgotten on the floor.

'Your big sister isn't out of school yet?' Mynors remarked.

"Isn’t your big sister done with school yet?" Mynors asked.

Agnes shook her head. 'I've been waiting ever so long,' she said plaintively.

Agnes shook her head. "I've been waiting for so long," she said sadly.

At that moment a grey-haired woman with a benevolent but rather pinched face emerged with much briskness from the girls' door. This was Mrs. Sutton, a distant relative of Mynors'—his mother had been her second cousin. The men raised their hats.

At that moment, a grey-haired woman with a kind yet somewhat tight face stepped out energetically from the girls' door. This was Mrs. Sutton, a distant relative of Mynors—his mother had been her second cousin. The men tipped their hats.

'I've just been down to make sure of some of you slippery folks for the sewing-meeting,' she said, shaking hands with Mynors, and including both him and Willie Price in an embracing maternal smile. She was short-sighted and did not perceive Agnes, who had fallen back.

"I just went down to check on some of you tricky people for the sewing meeting," she said, shaking hands with Mynors and giving both him and Willie Price a warm, maternal smile. She was nearsighted and didn't notice Agnes, who had stepped back.

'Had a good class this afternoon, Henry?' Mrs. Sutton's breathing was short and quick.

'Had a good class this afternoon, Henry?' Mrs. Sutton's breathing was fast and shallow.

'Oh, yes,' he said, 'very good indeed.'

'Oh, yes,' he said, 'really good indeed.'

'You're doing a grand work.'

'You're doing a great job.'

'We had over seventy present,' he added.

'We had more than seventy people here,' he added.

'Eh!' she said, 'I make nothing of numbers. Henry. I meant a good class. Doesn't it say—Where two or three are gathered together...? But I must be getting on. The horse will be restless. I've to go up to Hillport before tea. Mrs. Clayton Vernon is ill.'

'Eh!' she said, 'I don’t get numbers. Henry. I meant a good group. Doesn’t it say—Where two or three are gathered together...? But I need to get going. The horse will be restless. I have to go up to Hillport before tea. Mrs. Clayton Vernon is sick.'

Scarcely having stopped in her active course, Mrs. Sutton drew the men along with her down the yard, she and Mynors in rapid talk: Willie Price fell a little to the rear, his big hands half-way into his pockets and his eyes diffidently roving. It appeared as though he could not find courage to take a share in the conversation, yet was anxious to convince himself of his right to do so.

Scarcely pausing in her busy stride, Mrs. Sutton led the men down the yard, chatting quickly with Mynors. Willie Price lagged a bit behind, his large hands halfway in his pockets and his eyes shyly wandering. It seemed like he couldn’t gather the courage to join in the conversation, yet he was eager to prove to himself that he had the right to participate.

Mynors helped Mrs. Sutton into her carriage, which had been drawn up outside the gate of the school yard. Only two families of the Bursley Wesleyan Methodists kept a carriage, the Suttons and the Clayton Vernons. The latter, boasting lineage and a large house in the aristocratic suburb of Hillport, gave to the society monetary aid and a gracious condescension. But though indubitably above the operation of any unwritten sumptuary law, even the Clayton Vernons ventured only in wet weather to bring their carriage to chapel. Yet Mrs. Sutton, who was a plain woman, might with impunity use her equipage on Sundays. This license granted by Connexional opinion was due to the fact that she so obviously regarded her carriage, not as a carriage, but as a contrivance on four wheels for enabling an infirm creature to move rapidly from place to place. When she got into it she had exactly the air of a doctor on his rounds. Mrs. Sutton's bodily frame had long ago proved inadequate to the ceaseless demands of a spirit indefatigably altruistic, and her continuance in activity was a notable illustration of the dominion of mind over matter. Her husband, a potter's valuer and commission agent, made money with facility in that lucrative vocation, and his wife's charities were famous, notwithstanding her attempts to hide them. Neither husband nor wife had allowed riches to put a factitious gloss upon their primal simplicity. They were as they were, save that Mr. Sutton had joined the Five Towns Field Club and acquired some of the habits of an archaeologist. The influence of wealth on manners was to be observed only in their daughter Beatrice, who, while favouring her mother, dressed at considerable expense, and at intervals gave much time to the arts of music and painting. Agnes watched the carriage drive away, and then turned to look up the stairs within the school doorway. She sighed, scowled, and sighed again, murmured something to herself, and finally began to read her book.

Mynors helped Mrs. Sutton into her carriage, which was parked outside the school gate. Only two families of the Bursley Wesleyan Methodists owned a carriage: the Suttons and the Clayton Vernons. The Clayton Vernons, with their prestigious background and a large home in the upscale neighborhood of Hillport, contributed financial support and a gracious air of superiority to the community. However, even they only brought their carriage to chapel when it was wet outside. In contrast, Mrs. Sutton, who was a plain woman, could freely use her carriage on Sundays. This was allowed by church opinion because she clearly viewed her carriage not as a luxury but as a vehicle for helping someone with mobility issues get around quickly. When she entered it, she looked just like a doctor making house calls. Mrs. Sutton's physical condition had long been insufficient to meet the endless demands of her tirelessly giving spirit, and her ongoing activity was a remarkable example of mind over matter. Her husband, a potter’s appraiser and sales agent, easily made money in his profitable job, and his wife’s charitable efforts were well-known, despite her attempts to keep them under wraps. Neither of them let their wealth change their fundamental simplicity. They remained true to themselves, except that Mr. Sutton had joined the Five Towns Field Club and picked up some habits associated with archaeology. The impact of wealth on behavior was evident in their daughter Beatrice, who, while resembling her mother, dressed quite expensively and often dedicated time to music and painting. Agnes watched the carriage pull away, then turned to glance up the stairs inside the school doorway. She sighed, frowned, and sighed again, murmured something to herself, and finally began reading her book.

'Not come out yet?' Mynors was at her side once more, alone this time.

'Not out yet?' Mynors was by her side again, but this time he was alone.

'No, not yet,' said Agnes, wearied. 'Yes. Here she is. Anna, what ages you've been!'

'No, not yet,' Agnes said, tired. 'Yes. Here she is. Anna, it's been ages since we last saw you!'

Anna Tellwright stood motionless for a second in the shadow of the doorway. She was tall, but not unusually so, and sturdily built up. Her figure, though the bust was a little flat, had the lenient curves of absolute maturity. Anna had been a woman since seventeen, and she was now on the eve of her twenty-first birthday. She wore a plain, home-made light frock checked with brown and edged with brown velvet, thin cotton gloves of cream colour, and a broad straw hat like her sister's. Her grave face, owing to the prominence of the cheekbones and the width of the jaw, had a slight angularity; the lips were thin, the brown eyes rather large, the eyebrows level, the nose fine and delicate; the ears could scarcely be seen for the dark brown hair which was brushed diagonally across the temples, leaving of the forehead only a pale triangle. It seemed a face for the cloister, austere in contour, fervent in expression, the severity of it mollified by that resigned and spiritual melancholy peculiar to women who through the error of destiny have been born into a wrong environment.

Anna Tellwright stood still for a moment in the shadow of the doorway. She was tall, but not unusually so, and solidly built. Her figure, though her bust was a little flat, had the gentle curves of complete maturity. Anna had been a woman since she was seventeen, and she was now on the verge of her twenty-first birthday. She wore a simple, handmade light dress checked with brown and trimmed with brown velvet, thin cream-colored cotton gloves, and a wide straw hat like her sister's. Her serious face, due to the prominence of her cheekbones and the width of her jaw, had a slight angularity; her lips were thin, her brown eyes relatively large, her eyebrows straight, her nose delicate; her ears were barely visible beneath the dark brown hair that was brushed diagonally across her temples, leaving only a pale triangle of forehead exposed. It seemed like a face meant for a convent, austere in shape, passionate in expression, its severity softened by a resigned and spiritual melancholy typical of women who, due to the whims of fate, have been born into the wrong circumstances.

As if charmed forward by Mynors' compelling eyes, Anna stepped into the sunlight, at the same time putting up her parasol. 'How calm and stately she is,' he thought, as she gave him her cool hand and murmured a reply to his salutation. But even his aquiline gaze could not surprise the secrets of that concealing breast: this was one of the three great tumultuous moments of her life—she realised for the first time that she was loved.

As if drawn in by Mynors' captivating eyes, Anna walked into the sunlight while raising her parasol. 'She looks so calm and poised,' he thought, as she offered him her cool hand and quietly responded to his greeting. But even his sharp gaze couldn't uncover the secrets hidden within her heart: this was one of the three monumental moments of her life—she understood for the first time that she was loved.

'You are late this afternoon, Miss Tellwright,' Mynors began, with the easy inflections of a man well accustomed to prominence in the society of women. Little Agnes seized Anna's left arm, silently holding up the prize, and Anna nodded appreciation.

'You're late this afternoon, Miss Tellwright,' Mynors started, with the smooth tone of someone who's used to being in the spotlight with women. Little Agnes grabbed Anna's left arm, quietly displaying the prize, and Anna nodded in appreciation.

'Yes,' she said as they walked across the yard, 'one of my girls has been doing wrong. She stole a Bible from another girl, so of course I had to mention it to the superintendent. Mr. Price gave her a long lecture, and now she is waiting upstairs till he is ready to go with her to her home and talk to her parents. He says she must be dismissed.'

'Yeah,' she said as they walked across the yard, 'one of my girls has been acting out. She stole a Bible from another girl, so I had to report it to the superintendent. Mr. Price gave her a long lecture, and now she’s waiting upstairs until he’s ready to take her home and talk to her parents. He says she has to be dismissed.'

'Dismissed!'

'Rejected!'

Anna's look flashed a grateful response to him. By the least possible emphasis he had expressed a complete disagreement with his senior colleague which etiquette forbade him to utter in words.

Anna shot him a grateful look. With minimal emphasis, he expressed his complete disagreement with his senior colleague, something etiquette prevented him from saying aloud.

'I think it's a very great pity,' Anna said firmly. 'I rather like the girl,' she ventured in haste; 'you might speak to Mr. Price about it.'

'I think it's a real shame,' Anna said firmly. 'I actually like the girl,' she added quickly; 'maybe you could talk to Mr. Price about it.'

'If he mentions it to me.'

'If he brings it up to me.'

'Yes, I meant that. Mr. Price said—if it had been anything else but a Bible——'

'Yes, I meant that. Mr. Price said—if it had been anything else but a Bible——'

'Um!' he murmured very low, but she caught the significance of his intonation. They did not glance at each other: it was unnecessary. Anna felt that comfortable easement of the spirit which springs from the recognition of another spirit capable of understanding without explanations and of sympathising without a phrase. Under that calm mask a strange and sweet satisfaction thrilled through her as her precious instinct of common sense—rarest of good qualities, and pining always for fellowship—found a companion in his own. She had dreaded the overtures which for a fortnight past she had foreseen were inevitably to come from Mynors: he was a stranger, whom she merely respected. Now in a sudden disclosure she knew him and liked him. The dire apprehension of those formal 'advances' which she had watched other men make to other women faded away. It was at once a release and a reassurance.

"Um!" he murmured softly, but she understood the meaning behind his tone. They didn’t need to look at each other; it wasn’t necessary. Anna felt that comforting ease of spirit that comes from recognizing another person who understands without needing explanations and empathizes without words. Beneath her calm exterior, a strange and sweet satisfaction flowed through her as her precious sense of common sense—one of the rarest virtues, always longing for connection—found a kindred spirit in him. She had feared the advances she had anticipated from Mynors for the past two weeks; he was a stranger whom she only respected. But in that moment of sudden revelation, she knew him and liked him. The deep fear of the formal "advances" she had seen other men make toward other women vanished. It was both a release and a reassurance.

They were passing through the gate, Agnes skipping round her sister's skirts, when Willie Price reappeared front the direction of the chapel.

They were going through the gate, Agnes skipping around her sister's skirts, when Willie Price came back from the direction of the chapel.

'Forgotten something?' Mynors inquired of him blandly.

'Forgotten something?' Mynors asked him casually.

'Ye-es,' he stammered, clumsily raising his hat to Anna. She thought of him exactly as Agnes had done. He hesitated for a fraction of time, and then went up the yard towards the lecture-hall.

'Yeah,' he stammered, awkwardly tipping his hat to Anna. She viewed him just like Agnes had. He paused for a moment, then walked up the path toward the lecture hall.

'Agnes has been showing me her prize,' said Mynors, as the three stood together outside the gate. 'I ask her if she thinks she really deserves it, and she says she does. What do you think, Miss Big Sister?'

'Agnes has been showing me her prize,' Mynors said, as the three of them stood together outside the gate. 'I asked her if she really thinks she deserves it, and she said she does. What do you think, Miss Big Sister?'

Anna gave the little girl an affectionate smile of comprehension. 'What is it called, dear?'

Anna gave the little girl a warm smile of understanding. 'What do you call it, sweetheart?'

'"Janey's Sacrifice or the Spool of Cotton, and other stories for children,"' Agnes read out in a monotone: then she clutched Anna's elbow and aimed a whisper at her ear.

'"Janey's Sacrifice or the Spool of Cotton, and other stories for children,"' Agnes read in a flat voice: then she grabbed Anna's elbow and leaned in to whisper in her ear.

'Very well, dear,' Anna answered aloud, 'but we must be back by a quarter-past four.' And turning to Mynors: 'Agnes wants to go up to the Park to hear the band play.'

'Alright, dear,' Anna replied, 'but we need to be back by 4:15.' And turning to Mynors, she added, 'Agnes wants to go to the Park to listen to the band.'

'I'm going up there, too,' he said. 'Come along, Agnes, take my arm and show me the way.' Shyly Agnes left her sister's side and put a pink finger into Mynors' hand.

"I'm going up there, too," he said. "Come on, Agnes, take my arm and show me the way." Shyly, Agnes stepped away from her sister and placed a pink finger into Mynors' hand.

Moor Road, which climbs over the ridge to the mining village of Moorthorne and passes the new Park on its way, was crowded with people going up to criticise and enjoy this latest outcome of municipal enterprise in Bursley: sedate elders of the borough who smiled grimly to see one another on Sunday afternoon in that undignified, idly curious throng; white-skinned potters, and miners with the swarthy pallor of subterranean toil; untidy Sabbath loafers whom neither church nor chapel could entice, and the primly-clad respectable who had not only clothes but a separate deportment for the seventh day; house-wives whose pale faces, as of prisoners free only for a while, showed a naïve and timorous pleasure in the unusual diversion; young women made glorious by richly-coloured stuffs and carrying themselves with the defiant independence of good wages earned in warehouse or painting-shop; youths oppressed by stiff new clothes bought at Whitsuntide, in which the bright necktie and the nosegay revealed a thousand secret aspirations; young children running and yelling with the marvellous energy of their years; here and there a small well-dressed group whose studious repudiation of the crowd betrayed a conscious eminence of rank; louts, drunkards, idiots, beggars, waifs, outcasts, and every oddity of the town: all were more or less under the influence of a new excitement, and all with the same face of pleased expectancy looked towards the spot where, half-way up the hill, a denser mass of sightseers indicated the grand entrance to the Park.

Moor Road, which climbs over the ridge to the mining village of Moorthorne and passes the new Park on the way, was packed with people heading up to check out and enjoy this latest project from the town council in Bursley: serious older folks who frowned at each other on a Sunday afternoon in that awkward, curious crowd; white-skinned potters and miners with the dark skin that comes from working underground; messy Sunday loafers who couldn’t be bothered by church or chapel, and the neatly dressed respectable who not only had nice clothes but also a different way of acting for Sunday; housewives whose pale faces, looking like those of prisoners out for a little while, showed a simple and cautious joy in the unusual change of pace; young women dressed in vibrant colors, carrying themselves with the proud independence of good paychecks from their warehouse or painting jobs; young men feeling uncomfortable in stiff new clothes bought at Whitsuntide, where their flashy ties and small bouquets hinted at countless secret dreams; young kids running and shouting with the incredible energy of their age; here and there a small, well-dressed group whose careful avoidance of the crowd showed they thought they were better than everyone else; rowdy guys, drunks, fools, beggars, lost souls, and all the town's quirks: all were feeling the buzz of a new excitement, and all with the same look of happy anticipation were turned toward the spot where, halfway up the hill, a denser mass of onlookers pointed to the grand entrance to the Park.

'What stacks of folks!' Agnes exclaimed. 'It's like going to a football match.'

'Look at all these people!' Agnes exclaimed. 'It's like being at a football game.'

'Do you go to football matches, Agnes?' Mynors asked. The child gave a giggle.

'Do you go to football games, Agnes?' Mynors asked. The child giggled.

Anna was relieved when these two began to chatter. She had at once, by a firm natural impulse, subdued the agitation which seized her when she found Mynors waiting with such an obvious intention at the school door; she had conversed with him in tones of quiet ease; his attitude had even enabled her in a few moments to establish a pleasant familiarity with him. Nevertheless, as they joined the stream of people in Moor Road, she longed to be at home, in her kitchen, in order to examine herself and the new situation thus created by Mynors. And yet also she was glad that she must remain at his side, but it was a fluttered joy that his presence gave her, too strange for immediate appreciation. As her eye, without directly looking at him, embraced the suave and admirable male creature within its field of vision, she became aware that he was quite inscrutable to her. What were his inmost thoughts, his ideals, the histories of his heart? Surely it was impossible that she should ever know these secrets! He—and she: they were utterly foreign to each other. So the primary dissonances of sex vibrated within her, and her own feelings puzzled her. Still, there was an instant pleasure, delightful, if disturbing and inexplicable. And also there was a sensation of triumph, which, though she tried to scorn it, she could not banish. That a man and a woman should saunter together on that road was nothing; but the circumstance acquired tremendous importance when the man happened to be Henry Mynors and the woman Anna Tellwright. Mynors—handsome, dark, accomplished, exemplary and prosperous—had walked for ten years circumspect and unscathed amid the glances of a whole legion of maids. As for Anna, the peculiarity of her position had always marked her for special attention: ever since her father settled in Bursley, she had felt herself to be the object of an interest in which awe and pity were equally mingled. She guessed that the fact of her going to the Park with Mynors that afternoon would pass swiftly from mouth to mouth like the rumour of a decisive event. She had no friends; her innate reserve had been misinterpreted, and she was not popular among the Wesleyan community. Many people would say, and more would think, that it was her money which was drawing Mynors from the narrow path of his celibate discretion. She could imagine all the innuendoes, the expressive nods, the pursing of lips, the lifting of shoulders and of eyebrows. 'Money 'll do owt': that was the proverb. But she cared not. She had the just and unshakable self-esteem which is fundamental in all strong and righteous natures; and she knew beyond the possibility of doubt that, though Mynors might have no incurable aversion to a fortune, she herself, the spirit and body of her, had been the sole awakener of his desire.

Anna felt a sense of relief when the two of them started talking. She had quickly managed to calm the nervousness that hit her when she saw Mynors waiting at the school door with such obvious intent; she spoke to him with a relaxed tone, and his demeanor allowed her to establish a friendly vibe with him in just a few moments. Still, as they joined the crowd on Moor Road, she wished she could be at home in her kitchen, able to reflect on herself and the new situation created by Mynors. At the same time, she was happy to stay by his side, but it was a flustered joy that his presence brought her—too strange to fully appreciate right away. As she glanced at him without looking directly, taking in the charming and impressive man in her line of sight, she realized he was completely unreadable to her. What were his true thoughts, his dreams, the stories of his heart? It seemed impossible that she would ever learn those secrets! He—and she: they were entirely foreign to one another. The fundamental differences between men and women stirred within her, leaving her feelings confusing. Yet there was a fleeting pleasure, delightful but unsettling and hard to explain. Additionally, there was a feeling of triumph that she couldn't shake off, despite her efforts to dismiss it. The mere fact that a man and a woman could stroll together on that road seemed trivial; however, it took on significant meaning when the man was Henry Mynors and the woman was Anna Tellwright. Mynors—handsome, dark, skilled, admirable, and successful—had navigated through ten years of attentive glances from countless women without a scratch. As for Anna, her unique situation had always made her a target for special scrutiny: ever since her father moved to Bursley, she sensed that people viewed her with a mix of awe and pity. She suspected that news of her going to the Park with Mynors that afternoon would spread quickly, like the talk of a major event. She had no friends; her natural reserve had been misunderstood, and she wasn't well-liked in the Wesleyan community. Many would say, and even more would think, that it was her wealth that was drawing Mynors away from his careful singlehood. She could picture all the insinuations, the knowing nods, the pursed lips, the raised shoulders and eyebrows. "Money will do anything": that was the saying. But she didn’t care. She had a solid and unshakeable self-worth, fundamental in all strong and righteous people; and she knew without a doubt that while Mynors might not mind a fortune, she herself—the essence of her—had been the only one to awaken his desire.

By a common instinct, Mynors and Anna made little Agnes the centre of attraction. Mynors continued to tease her, and Agnes growing courageous, began to retort. She was now walking between them, and the other two smiled to each other at the child's sayings over her head, interchanging thus messages too subtle and delicate for the coarse medium of words.

By a shared instinct, Mynors and Anna made little Agnes the center of attention. Mynors kept teasing her, and Agnes, feeling braver, started to respond. She was now walking between them, and the other two smiled at each other at the child's comments, sharing messages that were too subtle and delicate for the rough medium of words.

As they approached the Park the bandstand came into sight over the railway cutting, and they could hear the music of 'The Emperor's Hymn.' The crude, brazen sounds were tempered in their passage through the warm, still air, and fell gently on the ear in soft waves, quickening every heart to unaccustomed emotions. Children leaped forward, and old people unconsciously assumed a lightsome vigour.

As they got closer to the park, the bandstand came into view over the railway cutting, and they could hear the music of 'The Emperor's Hymn.' The harsh, loud sounds were softened as they traveled through the warm, calm air, reaching the ears in gentle waves, stirring feelings in everyone. Kids darted ahead, and older folks unknowingly showed a lively energy.

The Park rose in terraces from the railway station to a street of small villas almost on the ridge of the hill. From its gilded gates to its smallest geranium-slips it was brand-new, and most of it was red. The keeper's house, the bandstand, the kiosks, the balustrades, the shelters—all these assailed the eye with a uniform redness of brick and tile which nullified the pallid greens of the turf and the frail trees. The immense crowd, in order to circulate, moved along in tight processions, inspecting one after another the various features of which they had read full descriptions in the 'Staffordshire Signal'—waterfall, grotto, lake, swans, boat, seats, faïence, statues—and scanning with interest the names of the donors so clearly inscribed on such objects of art and craft as from divers motives had been presented to the town by its citizens. Mynors, as he manoeuvred a way for the two girls through the main avenue up to the topmost terrace, gravely judged each thing upon its merits, approving this, condemning that. In deciding that under all the circumstances the Park made a very creditable appearance he only reflected the best local opinion. The town was proud of its achievement, and it had the right to be; for, though this narrow pleasaunce was in itself unlovely, it symbolised the first faint renascence of the longing for beauty in a district long given up to unredeemed ugliness.

The Park rose in terraces from the train station to a street of small villas near the top of the hill. From its golden gates to its tiniest geranium slips, everything was brand new, and most of it was red. The keeper's house, the bandstand, the kiosks, the railings, the shelters—all of these struck the eye with a uniform redness of brick and tile that overwhelmed the pale greens of the grass and the delicate trees. The huge crowd, to navigate through the area, moved along in tight groups, checking out one after another the various features they had read detailed descriptions of in the 'Staffordshire Signal'—waterfall, grotto, lake, swans, boat, seats, ceramics, statues—and looking with interest at the names of the donors clearly inscribed on such artworks and crafts presented to the town by its citizens for different reasons. Mynors, as he guided the two girls along the main avenue to the highest terrace, thoughtfully evaluated each element on its own merits, approving some and criticizing others. By concluding that the Park, under the circumstances, looked quite commendable, he was reflecting the best local opinion. The town was proud of its accomplishment, and it had every right to be; for, although this narrow space was not particularly beautiful, it represented the beginning of a renewed appreciation for beauty in an area that had long been resigned to stark ugliness.

At length, Mynors having encountered many acquaintances, they got past the bandstand and stood on the highest terrace, which was almost deserted. Beneath them, in front, stretched a maze of roofs, dominated by the gold angel of the Town Hall spire. Bursley, the ancient home of the potter, has an antiquity of a thousand years. It lies towards the north end of an extensive valley, which must have been one of the fairest spots in Alfred's England, but which is now defaced by the activities of a quarter of a million of people. Five contiguous towns—Turnhill, Bursley, Hanbridge, Knype, and Longshaw—united by a single winding thoroughfare some eight miles in length, have inundated the valley like a succession of great lakes. Of these five Bursley is the mother, but Hanbridge is the largest. They are mean and forbidding of aspect—sombre, hard-featured, uncouth; and the vaporous poison of their ovens and chimneys has soiled and shrivelled the surrounding country till there is no village lane within a league but what offers a gaunt and ludicrous travesty of rural charms. Nothing could be more prosaic than the huddled, red-brown streets; nothing more seemingly remote from romance. Yet be it said that romance is even here—the romance which, for those who have an eye to perceive it, ever dwells amid the seats of industrial manufacture, softening the coarseness, transfiguring the squalor, of these mighty alchemic operations. Look down into the valley from this terrace-height where love is kindling, embrace the whole smoke-girt amphitheatre in a glance, and it may be that you will suddenly comprehend the secret and superb significance of the vast Doing which goes forward below. Because they seldom think, the townsmen take shame when indicted for having disfigured half a county in order to live. They have not understood that this disfigurement is merely an episode in the unending warfare of man and nature, and calls for no contrition. Here, indeed, is nature repaid for some of her notorious cruelties. She imperiously bids man sustain and reproduce himself, and this is one of the places where in the very act of obedience he wounds and maltreats her. Out beyond the municipal confines, where the subsidiary industries of coal and iron prosper amid a wreck of verdure, the struggle is grim, appalling, heroic—so ruthless is his havoc of her, so indomitable her ceaseless recuperation. On the one side is a wresting from nature's own bowels of the means to waste her; on the other, an undismayed, enduring fortitude. The grass grows; though it is not green, it grows. In the very heart of the valley, hedged about with furnaces, a farm still stands, and at harvest-time the sooty sheaves are gathered in.

At last, Mynors ran into many acquaintances, and they moved past the bandstand to stand on the highest terrace, which was almost empty. Below them, in front, lay a jumble of roofs, dominated by the golden angel on the Town Hall spire. Bursley, the historic home of pottery, has been around for a thousand years. It sits at the northern end of a wide valley, which must have been one of the prettiest places in Alfred's England, but is now marred by the activities of a quarter of a million people. Five neighboring towns—Turnhill, Bursley, Hanbridge, Knype, and Longshaw—connected by a single winding road about eight miles long, have flooded the valley like a series of large lakes. Among these five, Bursley is the oldest, but Hanbridge is the biggest. They all look unwelcoming and harsh—gloomy, tough-looking, and awkward; the toxic smoke from their factories and chimneys has sullied and withered the surrounding countryside until there isn’t a single country lane within a mile that doesn’t offer a stark and ridiculous imitation of rural beauty. Nothing could be more ordinary than the cramped, red-brown streets; nothing more seemingly detached from romance. Yet, it should be noted that romance exists even here—the type that, for those who know how to see it, always lingers amid the industrial scenes, softening the roughness and transforming the squalor of these massive manufacturing processes. Look down into the valley from this high terrace where love is awakening, take in the entire smoke-covered amphitheater in one glance, and you might suddenly grasp the hidden and remarkable significance of the grand activities happening below. Because they rarely reflect, the townspeople feel ashamed when confronted about having disfigured half a county just to survive. They don’t realize that this disfigurement is just an episode in the endless struggle between man and nature, and doesn’t require any remorse. Here, indeed, nature gets some payback for her well-known cruelties. She demands that man sustain and reproduce himself, and this is one of the places where, in the very act of obeying, he injures and mistreats her. Beyond the city's limits, where the supporting industries of coal and iron thrive amidst a destruction of greenery, the struggle is harsh, terrifying, and heroic—so ruthless is his destruction of her, so unyielding her constant recovery. On one side, there’s the extraction from nature’s own depths of the resources to exploit her; on the other, there’s an undaunted, lasting resilience. The grass grows; though it isn’t green, it grows. In the very heart of the valley, surrounded by furnaces, a farm still exists, and at harvest time, the sooty bundles are collected.

The band stopped playing. A whole population was idle in the Park, and it seemed, in the fierce calm of the sunlight, that of all the strenuous weekday vitality of the district only a murmurous hush remained. But everywhere on the horizon, and nearer, furnaces cast their heavy smoke across the borders of the sky: the Doing was never suspended.

The band stopped playing. A whole crowd was still in the park, and in the intense calm of the bright sunlight, it felt like all the busy energy of the area had faded to a soft hush. But all around the horizon, and closer, factories were sending their thick smoke across the sky: the work was never truly paused.

'Mr. Mynors,' said Agnes, still holding his hand, when they had been silent a moment, 'when do those furnaces go out?'

'Mr. Mynors,' Agnes said, still holding his hand after a moment of silence, 'when do those furnaces go out?'

'They don't go out,' he answered, 'unless there is a strike. It costs hundreds and hundreds of pounds to light them again.'

'They don't go out,' he replied, 'unless there's a strike. It costs hundreds and hundreds of pounds to get them started again.'

'Does it?' she said vaguely. 'Father says it's the smoke that stops my gilliflowers from growing.'

'Does it?' she said absently. 'Dad says it's the smoke that's preventing my gilliflowers from growing.'

Mynors turned to Anna. 'Your father seems the picture of health. I saw him out this morning at a quarter to seven, as brisk as a boy. What a constitution!'

Mynors turned to Anna. 'Your dad looks really healthy. I saw him out this morning at a quarter to seven, as lively as a kid. What great health he's got!'

'Yes,' Anna replied, 'he is always up at six.'

'Yeah,' Anna replied, 'he's always up at six.'

'But you aren't, I suppose?'

'But I guess you aren't?'

'Yes, I too.'

"Me too."

'And me too,' Agnes interjected.

"Me too," Agnes interjected.

'And how does Bursley compare with Hanbridge?' Mynors continued. Anna paused before replying.

'So, how does Bursley stack up against Hanbridge?' Mynors asked. Anna took a moment before responding.

'I like it better,' she said. 'At first—last year—I thought I shouldn't.'

'I like it better,' she said. 'At first—last year—I thought I shouldn't.'

'By the way, your father used to preach in Hanbridge circuit——-'

'By the way, your dad used to preach in the Hanbridge circuit——-'

'That was years ago,' she said quickly.

'That was years ago,' she said quickly.

'But why won't he preach here? I dare say you know that we are rather short of local preachers—good ones, that is.'

'But why won't he preach here? I bet you know that we're a bit short on local preachers—good ones, that is.'

'I can't say why father doesn't preach now:' Anna flushed as she spoke. 'You had better ask him that.'

'I can't say why Dad doesn't preach anymore,' Anna said, her face turning red as she spoke. 'You should ask him that.'

'Well, I will do,' he laughed. 'I am coming to see him soon—perhaps one night next week.'

'Well, I will do,' he laughed. 'I’m coming to see him soon—maybe one night next week.'

Anna looked at Henry Mynors as he uttered the astonishing words. The Tellwrights had been in Bursley a year, but no visitor had crossed their doorsteps except the minister, once, and such poor defaulters as came, full of excuse and obsequious conciliation, to pay rent overdue.

Anna watched Henry Mynors as he spoke the shocking words. The Tellwrights had been in Bursley for a year, but no visitors had stepped through their door except for the minister, just once, and a few late payers who came, full of excuses and eager to please, to settle their overdue rent.

'Business, I suppose?' she said, and prayed that he might not be intending to make a mere call of ceremony.

'Business, I guess?' she said, hoping he wasn't just planning a formal visit.

'Yes, business,' he answered lightly. 'But you will be in?'

'Yeah, business,' he replied casually. 'But will you be around?'

'I am always in,' she said. She wondered what the business could be, and felt relieved to know that his visit would have at least some assigned pretext; but already her heart beat with apprehensive perturbation at the thought of his presence in their household.

'I’m always in,' she said. She wondered what the deal could be and felt relieved to know that his visit would have at least some reason behind it; but already her heart raced with nervous anxiety at the thought of him being in their home.

'See!' said Agnes, whose eyes were everywhere, 'There's Miss Sutton.'

'Look!' said Agnes, her eyes darting around, 'There's Miss Sutton.'

Both Mynors and Anna looked sharply round. Beatrice Sutton was coming towards them along the terrace. Stylishly clad in a dress of pink muslin, with harmonious hat, gloves, and sunshade, she made an agreeable and rather effective picture, despite her plain, round face and stoutish figure. She had the air of being a leader. Grafted on to the original simple honesty of her eyes there was the unconsciously-acquired arrogance of one who had always been accustomed to deference. Socially, Beatrice had no peer among the young women who were active in the Wesleyan Sunday-school. Beatrice had been used to teach in the afternoon school, but she had recently advanced her labours from the afternoon to the morning in response to a hint that if she did so the force of her influence and example might lessen the chronic dearth of morning teachers.

Both Mynors and Anna turned sharply. Beatrice Sutton was walking towards them along the terrace. Dressed stylishly in a pink muslin dress, with a matching hat, gloves, and sunshade, she presented a pleasing and somewhat striking image, despite her plain round face and slightly stout figure. She had an air of authority. Alongside the original simple honesty in her eyes, there was an unconscious arrogance typical of someone who had always been treated with deference. Socially, Beatrice had no equal among the young women involved in the Wesleyan Sunday School. She had previously taught in the afternoon sessions, but had recently moved her work to the mornings, responding to a suggestion that doing so might help alleviate the ongoing shortage of morning teachers.

'Good afternoon, Miss Tellwright,' Beatrice said as she came up. 'So you have come to look at the Park.'

'Good afternoon, Miss Tellwright,' Beatrice said as she approached. 'So you've come to check out the Park.'

'Yes,' said Anna, and then stopped awkwardly. In the tone of each there was an obscure constraint, and something in Mynors' smile of salute to Beatrice showed that he too shared it.

'Yes,' Anna said, then paused awkwardly. There was a subtle tension in each of their voices, and something in Mynors' smile as he greeted Beatrice suggested that he felt it too.

'Seen you before,' Beatrice said to him familiarly, without taking his hand; then she bent down and kissed Agnes.

'I've seen you before,' Beatrice said to him casually, without taking his hand; then she bent down and kissed Agnes.

'What are you doing here, mademoiselle?' Mynors asked her.

'What are you doing here, miss?' Mynors asked her.

'Father's just down below, near the lake. He caught sight of you, and sent me up to say that you were to be sure to come in to supper to-night. You will, won't you?'

'Dad's just down below, near the lake. He saw you and sent me up to say that you definitely need to come in for dinner tonight. You will, right?'

'Yes, thanks. I had meant to.'

"Yes, thanks. I meant to."

Anna knew that they were related, and also that Mynors was constantly at the Suttons' house, but the close intimacy between these two came nevertheless like a shock to her. She could not conquer a certain resentment of it, however absurd such a feeling might seem to her intelligence. And this attitude extended not only to the intimacy, but to Beatrice's handsome clothes and facile urbanity, which by contrast emphasised her own poor little frock and tongue-tied manner. The mere existence of Beatrice so near to Mynors was like an affront to her. Yet at heart, and even while admiring this shining daughter of success, she was conscious within herself of a fundamental superiority. The soul of her condescended to the soul of the other one.

Anna knew they were related and that Mynors was always at the Suttons' house, but the closeness between the two still shocked her. She couldn't shake off a certain resentment about it, no matter how silly that feeling might seem to her mind. This feeling extended not just to their intimacy but also to Beatrice’s stylish clothes and effortless charm, which by comparison highlighted her own simple dress and awkward demeanor. Just the fact that Beatrice was so close to Mynors felt like an insult to her. Yet deep down, even while admiring this successful daughter, she was aware of a fundamental superiority within herself. Her soul looked down on the other one.

They began to discuss the Park.

They started to talk about the Park.

'Papa says it will send up the value of that land over there enormously,' said Beatrice, pointing with her ribboned sunshade to some building plots which lay to the north, high up the hill. 'Mr. Tellwright owns most of that, doesn't he?' she added to Anna.

'Dad says it will really boost the value of that land over there,' Beatrice said, pointing with her ribboned sunshade to some building plots that were located to the north, up the hill. 'Mr. Tellwright owns most of that, right?' she added to Anna.

'I dare say he does,' said Anna. It was torture to her to refer to her father's possessions.

'I believe he does,' said Anna. It was painful for her to talk about her father's belongings.

'Of course it will be covered with streets in a few months. Will he build himself, or will he sell it?'

'Of course, there will be streets here in a few months. Will he build it himself, or will he sell it?'

'I haven't the least idea,' Anna answered, with an effort after gaiety of tone, and then turned aside to look at the crowd. There, close against the bandstand, stood her father, a short, stout, ruddy, middle-aged man in a shabby brown suit. He recognised her, stared fixedly, and nodded with his grotesque and ambiguous grin. Then he sidled off towards the entrance of the Park. None of the others had seen him. 'Agnes dear,' she said abruptly, 'we must go now, or we shall be late for tea.'

"I have no idea," Anna replied, trying to sound cheerful, and then she turned to watch the crowd. There, right by the bandstand, was her dad, a short, stocky, red-faced middle-aged man in a worn brown suit. He saw her, stared intently, and nodded with his strange, uncertain grin. Then he moved over towards the park entrance. None of the others noticed him. "Agnes, dear," she said suddenly, "we have to go now, or we’ll be late for tea."

As the two women said good-bye their eyes met, and in the brief second of that encounter each tried to wring from the other the true answer to a question which lay unuttered in her heart. Then, having bidden adieu to Mynors, whose parting glance sang its own song to her, Anna took Agnes by the hand and left him and Beatrice together.

As the two women said goodbye, their eyes met, and in that brief moment, each tried to extract the real answer to a question that remained unspoken in her heart. Then, after saying farewell to Mynors, whose parting look conveyed its own message to her, Anna took Agnes by the hand and left him and Beatrice together.




CHAPTER II

THE MISER'S DAUGHTER

Anna sat in the bay-window of the front parlour, her accustomed place on Sunday evenings in summer, and watched Mr. Tellwright and Agnes disappear down the slope of Trafalgar Road on their way to chapel. Trafalgar Road is the long thoroughfare which, under many aliases, runs through the Five Towns from end to end, uniting them as a river might unite them. Ephraim Tellwright could remember the time when this part of it was a country lane, flanked by meadows and market gardens. Now it was a street of houses up to and beyond Bleakridge, where the Tellwrights lived; on the other side of the hill the houses came only in patches until the far-stretching borders of Hanbridge were reached. Within the municipal limits Bleakridge was the pleasantest quarter of Bursley—Hillport, abode of the highest fashion, had its own government and authority—and to reside 'at the top of Trafalgar Road' was still the final ambition of many citizens, though the natural growth of the town had robbed Bleakridge of some of that exclusive distinction which it once possessed. Trafalgar Road, in its journey to Bleakridge from the centre of the town, underwent certain changes of character. First came a succession of manufactories and small shops; then, at the beginning of the rise, a quarter of a mile of superior cottages; and lastly, on the brow, occurred the houses of the comfortable-detached, semi-detached, and in terraces, with rentals from 25l. to 60l. a year. The Tellwrights lived in Manor Terrace (the name being a last reminder of the great farmstead which formerly occupied the western hill side): their house, of light yellow brick, was two-storied, with a long narrow garden behind, and the rent 30l. Exactly opposite was an antique red mansion, standing back in its own ground—home of the Mynors family for two generations, but now a school, the Mynors family being extinct in the district save for one member. Somewhat higher up, still on the opposite side to Manor Terrace, came an imposing row of four new houses, said to be the best planned and best built in the town, each erected separately and occupied by its owner. The nearest of these four was Councillor Sutton's, valued at 60l. a year. Lower down, below Manor Terrace and on the same side, lived the Wesleyan superintendent minister, the vicar of St. Luke's Church, an alderman, and a doctor.

Anna sat in the bay window of the front parlor, her usual spot on summer Sunday evenings, and watched Mr. Tellwright and Agnes walk down the slope of Trafalgar Road on their way to chapel. Trafalgar Road is the long street that, under many names, runs through the Five Towns from end to end, connecting them like a river. Ephraim Tellwright could remember when this part of it was a country lane, lined with meadows and gardens. Now it was a row of houses stretching to and beyond Bleakridge, where the Tellwrights lived; on the other side of the hill, houses appeared only in patches until reaching the far boundaries of Hanbridge. Within the city limits, Bleakridge was the most desirable area of Bursley—Hillport, home to the elite, had its own government—and living 'at the top of Trafalgar Road' was still the ultimate goal for many locals, even though the town's natural growth had diminished some of Bleakridge's exclusive status. Trafalgar Road, on its route to Bleakridge from the town center, underwent several changes in character. First came a series of factories and small shops; then, at the start of the incline, a stretch of better-quality cottages; finally, at the top, there were the homes of the comfortably off—detached, semi-detached, and in terraces, with rents ranging from £25 to £60 a year. The Tellwrights lived in Manor Terrace (the name being the last reminder of the large farm that used to occupy the western hillside); their house, made of light yellow brick, was two stories high, with a long narrow garden in the back, and the rent was £30. Directly across the street was an old red mansion, set back in its own grounds—home to the Mynors family for two generations, but now a school, as the Mynors family had become extinct in the area except for one member. A bit further up, still on the opposite side from Manor Terrace, was an impressive row of four new houses, said to be the best designed and built in the town, each built separately and owned by its occupant. The closest of these was Councillor Sutton's, valued at £60 a year. Lower down, below Manor Terrace and on the same side, lived the Wesleyan superintendent minister, the vicar of St. Luke's Church, an alderman, and a doctor.

It was nearly six o'clock. The sun shone, but gentlier; and the earth lay cooling in the mild, pensive effulgence of a summer evening. Even the onrush of the steam-car, as it swept with a gay load of passengers to Hanbridge, seemed to be chastened; the bell of the Roman Catholic chapel sounded like the bell of some village church heard in the distance; the quick but sober tramp of the chapel-goers fell peacefully on the ear. The sense of calm increased, and, steeped in this meditative calm, Anna from the open window gazed idly down the perspective of the road, which ended a mile away in the dim concave forms of ovens suffused in a pale mist. A book from the Free Library lay on her lap; she could not read it. She was conscious of nothing save the quiet enchantment of reverie. Her mind, stimulated by the emotions of the afternoon, broke the fetters of habitual self-discipline, and ranged voluptuously free over the whole field of recollection and anticipation. To remember, to hope: that was sufficient joy.

It was almost six o'clock. The sun was shining, but more gently; and the earth was cooling in the soft, thoughtful glow of a summer evening. Even the steam train speeding by with a cheerful load of passengers to Hanbridge seemed more subdued; the bell from the Roman Catholic chapel sounded like a distant village church bell; the quick but steady footsteps of the chapel-goers were calming to hear. The feeling of tranquility deepened, and in this meditative peace, Anna leaned out of the open window, gazing idly down the road, which faded into the distance a mile away in the hazy outline of ovens. A book from the Free Library lay on her lap; she couldn’t bring herself to read it. She felt aware of nothing except the quiet magic of daydreaming. Her mind, inspired by the emotions of the afternoon, broke free from its usual self-discipline and wandered freely across memories and hopes. To remember and to hope: that was enough joy.

In the dissolving views of her own past, from which the rigour and pain seemed to have mysteriously departed, the chief figure was always her father—that sinister and formidable individuality, whom her mind hated but her heart disobediently loved. Ephraim Tellwright[1] was one of the most extraordinary and most mysterious men in the Five Towns. The outer facts of his career were known to all, for his riches made him notorious; but of the secret and intimate man none knew anything except Anna, and what little Anna knew had come to her by divination rather than discernment. A native of Hanbridge, he had inherited a small fortune from his father, who was a prominent Wesleyan Methodist. At thirty, owing mainly to investments in property which his calling of potter's valuer had helped him to choose with advantage, he was worth twenty thousand pounds, and he lived in lodgings on a total expenditure of about a hundred a year. When he was thirty-five he suddenly married, without any perceptible public wooing, the daughter of a wood merchant at Oldcastle, and shortly after the marriage his wife inherited from her father a sum of eighteen thousand pounds. The pair lived narrowly in a small house up at Pireford, between Hanbridge and Oldcastle. They visited no one, and were never seen together except on Sundays. She was a rosy-cheeked, very unassuming and simple woman, who smiled easily and talked with difficulty, and for the rest lived apparently a servile life of satisfaction and content. After five years Anna was born, and in another five years Mrs. Tellwright died of erysipelas. The widower engaged a housekeeper: otherwise his existence proceeded without change. No stranger visited the house, the housekeeper never gossiped; but tales will spread, and people fell into the habit of regarding Tellwright's child and his housekeeper with commiseration.

In the fading memories of her past, which seemed to have lost their harshness and pain, the central figure was always her father—that dark and imposing character, whom her mind resented but her heart stubbornly loved. Ephraim Tellwright[1] was one of the most remarkable and enigmatic men in the Five Towns. Everyone knew the basic facts of his life, as his wealth made him well-known, but no one knew anything about the private man except for Anna, and what little she understood came more from intuition than insight. A native of Hanbridge, he inherited a modest fortune from his father, who was a well-respected Wesleyan Methodist. At thirty, thanks largely to property investments that his job as a potter's valuer helped him select wisely, he was worth twenty thousand pounds and lived in lodgings on an annual budget of around a hundred. When he turned thirty-five, he unexpectedly married the daughter of a wood merchant from Oldcastle, without any noticeable courtship, and shortly after, his wife inherited eighteen thousand pounds from her father. The couple lived frugally in a small house in Pireford, situated between Hanbridge and Oldcastle. They didn't socialize and were only seen together on Sundays. She was a rosy-cheeked, humble woman who smiled easily but found it hard to engage in conversation, leading a life that seemed simple and satisfied. After five years, Anna was born, and five years later, Mrs. Tellwright passed away from erysipelas. The widower hired a housekeeper, and aside from that, his life continued without any changes. No outsiders visited the home, and the housekeeper never gossiped; yet, rumors spread, and people began to view Tellwright's child and his housekeeper with pity.

During all this period he was what is termed 'a good Wesleyan,' preaching and teaching, and spending himself in the various activities of Hanbridge chapel. For many years he had been circuit treasurer. Among Anna's earliest memories was a picture of her father arriving late for supper one Sunday night in autumn after an anniversary service, and pouring out on the white tablecloth the contents of numerous chamois-leather money-bags. She recalled the surprising dexterity with which he counted the coins, the peculiar smell of the bags, and her mother's bland exclamation, 'Eh, Ephraim!' Tellwright belonged by birth to the Old Guard of Methodism; there was in his family a tradition of holy valour for the pure doctrine: his father, a Bursley man, had fought in the fight which preceded the famous Primitive Methodist Secession of 1808 at Bursley, and had also borne a notable part in the Warren affrays of '28, and the disastrous trouble of the Fly-Sheets in '49, when Methodism lost a hundred thousand members. As for Ephraim, he expounded the mystery of the Atonement in village conventicles and grew garrulous with God at prayer-meetings in the big Bethesda chapel; but he did these things as routine, without skill and without enthusiasm, because they gave him an unassailable position within the central group of the society. He was not, in fact, much smitten with either the doctrinal or the spiritual side of Methodism. His chief interest lay in those fiscal schemes of organisation without whose aid no religious propaganda can possibly succeed. It was in the finance of salvation that he rose supreme—the interminable alternation of debt-raising and new liability which provides a lasting excitement for Nonconformists. In the negotiation of mortgages, the artful arrangement of appeals, the planning of anniversaries and of mighty revivals, he was an undisputed leader. To him the circuit was a 'going concern,' and he kept it in motion, serving the Lord in committee and over statements of account. The minister by his pleading might bring sinners to the penitent form, but it was Ephraim Tellwright who reduced the cost per head of souls saved, and so widened the frontiers of the Kingdom of Heaven.

During this time, he was what people call 'a good Wesleyan,' preaching, teaching, and dedicating himself to the various activities at Hanbridge chapel. He had been the circuit treasurer for many years. One of Anna's earliest memories was of her father arriving late for dinner one Sunday night in autumn after an anniversary service, pouring out the contents of several chamois-leather money bags onto the white tablecloth. She remembered how skillfully he counted the coins, the unique smell of the bags, and her mother's soft exclamation, 'Eh, Ephraim!' Tellwright came from the Old Guard of Methodism by birth; his family had a tradition of unwavering commitment to pure doctrine: his father, from Bursley, had fought in the struggle that preceded the famous Primitive Methodist Secession of 1808 at Bursley and had also played a significant role in the Warren disturbances of '28 and the difficult Fly-Sheets issue of '49 when Methodism lost a hundred thousand members. As for Ephraim, he explained the mystery of the Atonement in village gatherings and spoke at length with God during prayer meetings at the large Bethesda chapel; but he approached these activities as routine, lacking both skill and enthusiasm, as they secured him a solid position within the core group of the society. In reality, he wasn't really passionate about either the doctrinal or spiritual aspects of Methodism. His main interest lay in those financial strategies essential for any religious outreach to succeed. It was in the finance of salvation that he truly excelled—the endless cycles of raising debt and new liabilities that provide ongoing excitement for Nonconformists. In negotiating mortgages, skillfully arranging appeals, and planning anniversaries and major revivals, he was an undisputed leader. To him, the circuit was a 'going concern,' and he kept it running, serving the Lord through committee work and managing accounts. While the minister might draw sinners to the altar, it was Ephraim Tellwright who lowered the cost per soul saved, thus expanding the reach of the Kingdom of Heaven.

Three years after the death of his first wife it was rumoured that he would marry again, and that his choice had fallen on a young orphan girl, thirty years his junior, who 'assisted' at the stationer's shop where he bought his daily newspaper. The rumour was well-founded. Anna, then eight years of age, vividly remembered the home-coming of the pale wife, and her own sturdy attempts to explain, excuse, or assuage to this wistful and fragile creature the implacable harshness of her father's temper. Agnes was born within a year, and the pale girl died of puerperal fever. In that year lay a whole tragedy, which could not have been more poignant in its perfection if the year had been a thousand years. Ephraim promptly re-engaged the old housekeeper, a course which filled Anna with secret childish revolt, for Anna was now nine, and accomplished in all domesticity. In another seven years the housekeeper died, a gaunt grey ruin, and Anna at sixteen became mistress of the household, with a small sister to cherish and control. About this time Anna began to perceive that her father was generally regarded as a man of great wealth, having few rivals in the entire region of the Five Towns, Definite knowledge, however, she had none: he never spoke of his affairs; she knew only that he possessed houses and other property in various places, that he always turned first to the money article in the newspaper, and that long envelopes arrived for him by post almost daily. But she had once heard the surmise that he was worth sixty thousand of his own, apart from the fortune of his first wife, Anna's mother. Nevertheless, it did not occur to her to think of her father, in plain terms, as a miser, until one day she happened to read in the 'Staffordshire Signal' some particulars of the last will and testament of William Wilbraham, J.P., who had just died. Mr. Wilbraham had been a famous magnate and benefactor of the Five Towns; his revered name was in every mouth; he had a fine seat, Hillport House, at Hillport; and his superb horses were constantly seen, winged and nervous, in the streets of Bursley and Hanbridge. The 'Signal' said that the net value of his estate was sworn at fifty-nine thousand pounds. This single fact added a definite and startling significance to figures which had previously conveyed nothing to Anna except an idea of vastness. The crude contrast between the things of Hillport House and the things of the six-roomed abode in Manor Terrace gave food for reflection, silent but profound.

Three years after his first wife died, there were rumors that he would marry again, and that he had chosen a young orphan girl, thirty years younger than him, who worked at the stationery shop where he bought his daily newspaper. The rumors were true. Anna, who was then eight, clearly remembered the return of the pale wife and her own attempts to explain, excuse, or comfort this delicate and sad woman regarding her father's unyielding temper. Agnes was born within a year, and the pale woman died from childbirth complications. That year held a tragedy that could not have been more perfect and poignant if it had spanned a thousand years. Ephraim quickly hired the old housekeeper again, which secretly upset nine-year-old Anna, who had become skilled in managing household tasks. Seven years later, the housekeeper died, a tired shadow of herself, and at sixteen, Anna became the head of the household, taking care of her little sister. Around this time, Anna started to notice that her father was seen as a wealthy man, with few rivals in the entire region of the Five Towns. However, she had no concrete knowledge: he never talked about his business; she only knew he owned houses and properties in various places, always read the money section of the newspaper first, and received long envelopes by mail almost daily. She had heard a rumor that he was worth sixty thousand on his own, separate from her mother’s inheritance. Still, it didn't occur to her to think of him as a miser until one day she read in the 'Staffordshire Signal' details about the will of William Wilbraham, J.P., who had just passed away. Mr. Wilbraham was a well-known figure and benefactor of the Five Towns; his respected name was on everyone's lips; he owned a grand estate, Hillport House, and his magnificent horses were often seen galloping through the streets of Bursley and Hanbridge. The 'Signal' reported that the net value of his estate was listed at fifty-nine thousand pounds. This fact added a clear and shocking significance to figures that previously meant nothing to Anna except a sense of vastness. The stark contrast between the grandeur of Hillport House and the modest six-room home in Manor Terrace prompted deep, silent reflection.

Tellwright had long ago retired from business, and three years after the housekeeper died he retired, practically, from religious work, to the grave detriment of the Hanbridge circuit. In reply to sorrowful questioners, he said merely that he was getting old and needed rest, and that there ought to be plenty of younger men to fill his shoes. He gave up everything except his pew in the chapel. The circuit was astounded by this sudden defection of a class-leader, a local preacher, and an officer. It was an inexplicable fall from grace. Yet the solution of the problem was quite simple. Ephraim had lost interest in his religious avocations; they had ceased to amuse him, the old ardour had cooled. The phenomenon is a common enough experience with men who have passed their fiftieth year—men, too, who began with the true and sacred zeal, which Tellwright never felt. The difference in Tellwright's case was that, characteristically, he at once yielded to the new instinct, caring naught for public opinion. Soon afterwards, having purchased a lot of cottage property in Bursley, he decided to migrate to the town of his fathers. He had more than one reason for doing so, but perhaps the chief was that he found the atmosphere of Hanbridge Wesleyan chapel rather uncongenial. The exodus from it was his silent and malicious retort to a silent rebuke.

Tellwright had long since retired from business, and three years after the housekeeper passed away, he effectively stepped back from religious work, which was a significant loss for the Hanbridge circuit. When sorrowful questioners asked him about it, he simply said he was getting old and needed rest, and that there should be plenty of younger men to take his place. He gave up everything except his seat in the chapel. The circuit was shocked by this sudden withdrawal of a class leader, a local preacher, and an officer. It was an inexplicable fall from grace. Yet, the answer to this situation was quite simple. Ephraim had lost interest in his religious duties; they no longer entertained him, and his old passion had faded. This phenomenon is a common experience for men past their fifties—men who, like Tellwright, began with true and sacred zeal, which he never actually felt. The difference in Tellwright's case was that he immediately gave in to the new impulse, disregarding public opinion. Shortly after, having bought some cottage property in Bursley, he decided to move back to the town of his ancestors. He had multiple reasons for this decision, but perhaps the main one was that he found the atmosphere at the Hanbridge Wesleyan chapel rather unwelcoming. His departure was his quiet and spiteful response to a silent criticism.

He appeared now to grow younger, discarding in some measure a certain morose taciturnity which had hitherto marked his demeanour. He went amiably about in the manner of a veteran determined to enjoy the brief existence of life's winter. His stout, stiff, deliberate yet alert figure became a familiar object to Bursley: that ruddy face, with its small blue eyes, smooth upper lip, and short grey beard under the smooth chin, seemed to pervade the streets, offering everywhere the conundrum of its vague smile. Though no friend ever crossed his doorstep, he had dozens of acquaintances of the footpath. He was not, however, a facile talker, and he seldom gave an opinion; nor were his remarks often noticeably shrewd. He existed within himself, unrevealed. To the crowd, of course, he was a marvellous legend, and moving always in the glory of that legend he received their wondering awe—an awe tinged with contempt for his lack of ostentation and public splendour. Commercial men with whom he had transacted business liked to discuss his abilities, thus disseminating that solid respect for him which had sprung from a personal experience of those abilities, and which not even the shabbiness of his clothes could weaken.

He seemed to grow younger now, shedding some of the gloomy silence that had previously defined him. He moved around cheerfully, like a seasoned person determined to enjoy the fleeting season of life. His sturdy, stiff, deliberate yet alert figure became a common sight in Bursley: that ruddy face, with its small blue eyes, smooth upper lip, and short grey beard under a smooth chin, seemed to fill the streets, presenting the mystery of its vague smile everywhere. Although no friend ever stepped foot in his home, he had plenty of acquaintances on the street. However, he wasn’t an easy conversationalist and rarely shared his opinions; his comments weren’t often particularly insightful. He lived within himself, remaining a mystery. To the crowd, he was a remarkable legend, and always surrounded by the aura of that legend, he accepted their curious admiration—admiration laced with disdain for his lack of showiness and public flair. Business people with whom he had dealt liked to talk about his skills, spreading that solid respect for him that had come from personal experience of those skills, which even the shabby state of his clothes couldn’t diminish.

Anna was disturbed by the arrival at the front door of the milk-girl. Alternately with her father, she stayed at home on Sunday evenings, partly to receive the evening milk and partly to guard the house. The Persian cat with one ear preceded her to the door as soon as he heard the clatter of the can. The stout little milk-girl dispensed one pint of milk into Anna's jug, and spilt an eleemosynary supply on the step for the cat. 'He does like it fresh, Miss,' said the milk-girl, smiling at the greedy cat, and then, with a 'Lovely evenin',' departed down the street, one fat red arm stretched horizontally out to balance the weight of the can in the other. Anna leaned idly against the doorpost, waiting while the cat finished, until at length the swaying figure of the milk-girl disappeared in the dip of the road. Suddenly she darted within, shutting the door, and stood on the hall-mat in a startled attitude of dismay. She had caught sight of Henry Mynors in the distance, approaching the house. At that moment the kitchen clock struck seven, and Mynors, according to the rule of a lifetime, should have been in his place in the 'orchestra' (or, as some term it, the 'singing-seat') of the chapel, where he was an admired baritone. Anna dared not conjecture what impulse had led him into this extraordinary, incredible deviation. She dared not conjecture, but despite herself she knew, and the knowledge shocked her sensitive and peremptory conscience. Her heart began to beat rapidly; she was in distress. Aware that her father and sister had left her alone, did he mean to call? It was absolutely impossible, yet she feared it, and blushed, all solitary there in the passage, for shame. Now she heard his sharp, decided footsteps, and through the glazed panels of the door she could see the outline of his form. He stopped; his hand was on the gate, and she ceased to breathe. He pushed the gate open, and then, at the whisper of some blessed angel, he closed it again and continued his way up the street. After a few moments Anna carried the milk into the kitchen, and stood by the dresser, moveless, each muscle braced in the intensity of profound contemplation. Gradually the tears rose to her eyes and fell; they were the tincture of a strange and mystic joy, too poignant to be endured. As it were under compulsion she ran outside, and down the garden path to the low wall which looked over the grey fields of the valley up to Hillport. Exactly opposite, a mile and a half away, on the ridge, was Hillport Church, dark and clear against the orange sky. To the right, and nearer, lay the central masses of the town, tier on tier of richly-coloured ovens and chimneys. Along the field-paths couples moved slowly. All was quiescent, languorous, beautiful in the glow of the sun's stately declension. Anna put her arms on the wall. Far more impressively than in the afternoon she realised that this was the end of one epoch in her career and the beginning of another. Enthralled by austere traditions and that stern conscience of hers, she had never permitted herself to dream of the possibility of an escape from the parental servitude. She had never looked beyond the horizons of her present world, but had sought spiritual satisfaction in the ideas of duty and sacrifice. The worst tyrannies of her father never dulled the sense of her duty to him; and, without perhaps being aware of it, she had rather despised love and the dalliance of the sexes. In her attitude towards such things there had been not only a little contempt but also some disapproval, as though man were destined for higher ends. Now she saw, in a quick revelation, that it was the lovers, and not she, who had the right to scorn. She saw how miserably narrow, tepid, and trickling the stream of her life had been, and had threatened to be. Now it gushed forth warm, impetuous, and full, opening out new and delicious vistas. She lived; and she was finding the sight to see, the courage to enjoy. Now, as she leaned over the wall, she would not have cared if Henry Mynors indeed had called that night. She perceived something splendid and free in his abandonment of habit and discretion at the bidding of a desire. To be the magnet which could draw that pattern and exemplar of seemliness from the strict orbit of virtuous custom! It was she, the miser's shabby daughter, who had caused this amazing phenomenon. The thought intoxicated her. Without the support of the wall she might have fallen. In a sort of trance she murmured these words: 'He loves me.'

Anna was unsettled by the arrival of the milk girl at the front door. She alternated with her father, staying home on Sunday evenings, partly to receive the evening milk and partly to keep an eye on the house. The Persian cat with one ear raced to the door as soon as it heard the clattering of the milk can. The plump milk girl poured a pint of milk into Anna's jug and spilled a little on the step for the cat. "He really likes his milk fresh, Miss," she said with a smile at the eager cat, then added, "Lovely evening," as she headed down the street, one fat red arm stretched out to balance the weight of the can in the other. Anna leaned casually against the door post, waiting for the cat to finish, until finally, the swaying figure of the milk girl disappeared into the dip of the road. Suddenly, she dashed inside, shut the door, and stood on the hall mat in a startled pose of distress. She had spotted Henry Mynors in the distance, walking toward the house. At that moment, the kitchen clock struck seven, and Mynors, following a lifelong routine, should have been in his seat in the "orchestra" (or as some call it, the "singing-seat") of the chapel, where he was a well-regarded baritone. Anna didn't dare speculate what had prompted this unexpected and unbelievable change in him. She didn't want to think about it, but despite herself, she knew, and the awareness shook her sensitive and resolute conscience. Her heart raced; she felt troubled. Knowing her father and sister had left her alone, did he mean to come over? It seemed absolutely impossible, yet she feared it and felt embarrassed standing there in the hallway, all by herself. Now she heard his sharp, purposeful footsteps, and through the glazed panels of the door, she could see his outline. He stopped; his hand was on the gate, and she held her breath. He pushed the gate open, then, as if guided by some heavenly whisper, he closed it again and walked away up the street. After a few moments, Anna took the milk into the kitchen and stood by the dresser, motionless, every muscle tense in deep contemplation. Gradually, tears welled up in her eyes and fell; they were mixed with a strange and mystical joy, too intense to bear. Compelled somehow, she ran outside and down the garden path to the low wall overlooking the grey fields of the valley up to Hillport. Directly ahead, a mile and a half away on the ridge, was Hillport Church, dark and clear against the orange sky. To the right, nearer, were the central masses of the town, layer upon layer of richly colored ovens and chimneys. Couples walked slowly along the field paths. Everything was calm, languorous, beautiful in the soft glow of the setting sun. Anna rested her arms on the wall. More powerfully than in the afternoon, she realized that this marked the end of one chapter in her life and the beginning of another. Captivated by strict traditions and her stern conscience, she had never allowed herself to imagine escaping her parental obligations. She had never looked beyond the limits of her current life, seeking spiritual fulfillment in duty and sacrifice. The harshest tyranny from her father never dulled her sense of duty to him; and perhaps without realizing it, she had held some disdain for love and the flirtations between men and women. In her outlook toward such matters, there had been not only some contempt but also disapproval, as if men were destined for higher purposes. Now she experienced a sudden insight: it was the lovers, not she, who had the right to judge. She recognized how sadly narrow, lukewarm, and stagnant the current of her life had been and how it threatened to remain. Now it flowed forth warm, vibrant, and full, opening up new and delightful perspectives. She felt alive; she was gaining the vision to see and the courage to enjoy. As she leaned over the wall, she wouldn't have cared if Henry Mynors had indeed come that night. She sensed something magnificent and liberating in his rejection of routine and propriety for the sake of desire. To be the draw that could pull that model of decorum from the strict orbit of virtuous custom! It was she, the miser's unassuming daughter, who had caused this incredible event. The thought exhilarated her. Without the wall's support, she might have collapsed. In a sort of trance, she murmured, "He loves me."

This was Anna Tellwright, the ascetic, the prosaic, the impassive.

This was Anna Tellwright, the self-denying, the practical, the unemotional.

After an interval which to her was as much like a minute as a century, she went back into the house. As she entered by the kitchen she heard an impatient knocking at the front door.

After a time that felt as brief as a minute yet as long as a century to her, she returned to the house. As she entered through the kitchen, she heard some frustrated knocking at the front door.

'At last,' said her father grimly, when she opened the door. In two words he had resumed his terrible sway over her. Agnes looked timidly from one to the other and slipped past them into the house.

“At last,” her father said grimly when she opened the door. In just two words, he had regained his frightening control over her. Agnes glanced nervously between them and slipped past into the house.

'I was in the garden,' Anna explained. 'Have you been here long?' She tried to smile apologetically.

'I was in the garden,' Anna explained. 'Have you been here long?' She tried to smile apologetically.

'Only about a quarter of an hour,' he answered, with a grimness still more portentous.

'Just about fifteen minutes,' he replied, with an even more serious tone.

'He won't speak again to-night,' she thought fearfully. But she was mistaken. After he had carefully hung his best hat on the hat-rack, he turned towards her, and said, with a queer smile:

'He won't speak again tonight,' she thought fearfully. But she was mistaken. After he had carefully hung his best hat on the hat rack, he turned towards her and said, with a strange smile:

'Ye've been day-dreaming, eh, Sis?'

"You've been daydreaming, huh, Sis?"

'Sis' was her pet name, used often by Agnes, but by her father only at the very rarest intervals. She was staggered at this change of front, so unaccountable in this man, who, when she had unwittingly annoyed him, was capable of keeping an awful silence for days together. What did he know? What had those old eyes seen?

'Sis' was her nickname, frequently used by Agnes, but her dad only said it on the rarest occasions. She was shocked by this sudden shift in behavior from a man who could go days without speaking after she upset him, even if it was unintentional. What did he know? What had those old eyes witnessed?

'I forgot,' she stammered, gathering herself together happily, 'I forgot the time.' She felt that after all there was a bond between them which nothing could break—the tie of blood. They were father and daughter, united by sympathies obscure but fundamental. Kissing was not in the Tellwright blood, but she had a fleeting wish to hug the tyrant.

"I forgot," she said awkwardly, pulling herself together with a smile, "I forgot the time." She realized that there was a connection between them that nothing could sever—the bond of family. They were father and daughter, linked by emotions that were deep but hard to explain. Kissing wasn’t in the Tellwright bloodline, but she briefly wished to hug the tyrant.


[1] Tellwright: tile-wright, a name specially characteristic of, and possibly originating in, this clay-manufacturing district.

[1] Tellwright: tile maker, a name that is particularly representative of, and likely comes from, this clay-producing area.




CHAPTER III

THE BIRTHDAY

The next morning there was no outward sign that anything unusual had occurred. As the clock in the kitchen struck eight Anna carried to the back parlour a tray on which were a dish of bacon and a coffee-pot. Breakfast was already laid for three. She threw a housekeeper's glance over the table, and called: 'Father!' Mr. Tellwright was re-setting some encaustic tiles in the lobby. He came in, coatless, and, dropping a trowel on the hearth, sat down at the end of the table nearest the fireplace. Anna sat opposite to him, and poured out the coffee.

The next morning, there was no visible sign that anything out of the ordinary had happened. As the kitchen clock struck eight, Anna carried a tray with a dish of bacon and a coffee pot into the back parlor. Breakfast was already set for three. She took a quick look at the table and called, "Dad!" Mr. Tellwright was in the lobby, fixing some encaustic tiles. He came in without his coat, dropped a trowel on the hearth, and sat down at the end of the table closest to the fireplace. Anna sat across from him and poured the coffee.

On the dish were six pieces of bacon. He put one piece on a plate, and set it carefully in front of Agnes's vacant chair, two he passed to Anna, three he kept for himself.

On the dish were six pieces of bacon. He put one piece on a plate and carefully set it in front of Agnes's empty chair, passed two to Anna, and kept three for himself.

'Where's Agnes?' he inquired.

"Where's Agnes?" he asked.

'Coming—she's finishing her arithmetic.'

'Coming—she's wrapping up math.'

In the middle of the table was an unaccustomed small jug containing gilly-flowers. Mr. Tellwright noticed it instantly.

In the middle of the table was an unfamiliar small jug holding gilly-flowers. Mr. Tellwright noticed it right away.

'What an we gotten here?' he said, indicating the jug.

'What have we got here?' he said, pointing to the jug.

'Agnes gave me them first thing when she got up. She's grown them herself, you know,' Anna said, and then added: 'It's my birthday.'

'Agnes gave them to me first thing when she got up. She's grown them herself, you know,' Anna said, and then added: 'It's my birthday.'

'Ay!' he exclaimed, with a trace of satire in his voice. 'Thou'rt a woman now, lass.'

"Ay!" he exclaimed, with a hint of sarcasm in his voice. "You're a woman now, girl."

No further remark on that matter was made during the meal.

No more comments on that topic were made during the meal.

Agnes ran in, all pinafore and legs. With a toss backwards of her light golden hair she slipped silently into her seat, cautiously glancing at the master of the house. Then she began to stir her coffee.

Agnes burst in, all pinafore and legs. With a quick flip of her light golden hair, she quietly took her seat, carefully looking at the head of the household. Then she started to stir her coffee.

'Now, young woman,' Tellwright said curtly.

'Now, young lady,' Tellwright said sharply.

She looked a startled interrogative.

She looked startled and questioning.

'We're waiting,' he explained.

'We're waiting,' he said.

'Oh!' said Agnes, confused. 'I thought you'd said it. "God sanctify this food to our use and us to His service for Christ's sake, Amen."'

'Oh!' said Agnes, confused. 'I thought you said it. "God, bless this food for our use and us for Your service for Christ's sake, Amen."'

The breakfast proceeded in silence. Breakfast at eight, dinner at noon, tea at four, supper at eight: all the meals in this house occurred with absolute precision and sameness. Mr. Tellwright seldom spoke, and his example imposed silence on the girls, who felt as nuns feel when assisting at some grave but monotonous and perfunctory rite. The room was not a cheerful one in the morning, since the window was small and the aspect westerly. Besides the table and three horse-hair chairs, the furniture consisted of an arm-chair, a bent-wood rocking chair, and a sewing-machine. A fatigued Brussels carpet covered the floor. Over the mantelpiece was an engraving of 'The Light of the World,' in a frame of polished brown wood. On the other walls were some family photographs in black frames. A two-light chandelier hung from the ceiling, weighed down on one side by a patent gas-saving mantle and a glass shade; over this the ceiling was deeply discoloured. On either side of the chimney-breast were cupboards about three feet high; some cardboard boxes, a work-basket, and Agnes's school books lay on the tops of these cupboards. On the window-sill was a pot of mignonette in a saucer. The window was wide open, and flies buzzed to and fro, constantly rebounding from the window panes with terrible thuds. In the blue-paved yard beyond the cat was licking himself in the sunlight with an air of being wholly absorbed in his task.

The breakfast went by in silence. Breakfast at eight, lunch at noon, tea at four, dinner at eight: all the meals in this house happened with strict regularity and sameness. Mr. Tellwright rarely spoke, and his silence made the girls quiet too, feeling like nuns witnessing a serious but dull and routine ritual. The room wasn't very bright in the morning because the window was small and faced west. Besides the table and three horsehair chairs, the furniture included an armchair, a bent-wood rocking chair, and a sewing machine. A worn Brussels carpet covered the floor. Above the mantelpiece was an engraving of 'The Light of the World' in a polished brown wooden frame. On the other walls were some family photos in black frames. A two-light chandelier hung from the ceiling, lopsided because of a gas-saving mantle and glass shade; above it, the ceiling was badly discolored. On either side of the fireplace were cupboards about three feet tall; some cardboard boxes, a work basket, and Agnes's school books rested on top of these cupboards. On the windowsill was a pot of mignonette in a saucer. The window was wide open, and flies buzzed around, constantly bouncing off the window panes with loud thuds. In the blue-tiled yard outside, a cat was licking itself in the sunlight, completely focused on the task.

Mr. Tellwright demanded a second and last cup of coffee, and having drunk it pushed away his plate as a sign that he had finished. Then he took from the mantelpiece at his right hand a bundle of letters and opened them methodically. When he had arranged the correspondence in a flattened pile, he put on his steel-rimmed spectacles and began to read.

Mr. Tellwright requested a second and final cup of coffee, and after drinking it, he pushed his plate away to signal that he was done. Then he picked up a stack of letters from the mantelpiece to his right and started opening them one by one. Once he had stacked the correspondence neatly, he put on his steel-rimmed glasses and began to read.

'Can I return thanks, father?' Agnes asked, and he nodded, looking at her fixedly over his spectacles.

'Can I say thank you, Dad?' Agnes asked, and he nodded, looking at her intensely over his glasses.

'Thank God for our good breakfast, Amen.'

'Thank God for our nice breakfast, Amen.'

In two minutes the table was cleared, and Mr. Tellwright was alone. As he read laboriously through communications from solicitors, secretaries of companies, and tenants, he could hear his daughters talking together in the kitchen. Anna was washing the breakfast things while Agnes wiped. Then there were flying steps across the yard: Agnes had gone to school.

In just two minutes, the table was cleared, and Mr. Tellwright found himself alone. As he painstakingly read through messages from lawyers, company secretaries, and tenants, he could hear his daughters chatting in the kitchen. Anna was washing the breakfast dishes while Agnes dried them. Then he heard quick footsteps across the yard: Agnes had left for school.

After he had mastered his correspondence, Mr. Tellwright took up the trowel again and finished the tile-setting in the lobby. Then he resumed his coat, and, gathering together the letters from the table in the back parlour, went into the front parlour and shut the door. This room was his office. The principal things in it were an old oak bureau and an old oak desk-chair which had come to him from his first wife's father; on the walls were some sombre landscapes in oil, received from the same source; there was no carpet on the floor, and only one other chair. A safe stood in the corner opposite the door. On the mantelpiece were some books—Woodfall's 'Landlord and Tenant,' Jordan's 'Guide to Company Law,' Whitaker's Almanack, and a Gazetteer of the Five Towns. Several wire files, loaded with papers, hung from the mantelpiece. With the exception of a mahogany what-not with a Bible on it, which stood in front of the window, there was nothing else whatever in the room. He sat down to the bureau and opened it, and took from one of the pigeon-holes a packet of various documents: these he examined one by one, from time to time referring to a list. Then he unlocked the safe and extracted from it another bundle of documents which had evidently been placed ready. With these in his hand, he opened the door, and called out:

After he finished his correspondence, Mr. Tellwright picked up the trowel again and completed the tile-setting in the lobby. Then he put on his coat and gathered the letters from the table in the back parlor, went into the front parlor, and closed the door. This room was his office. The main items in it were an old oak bureau and an old oak desk chair that he inherited from his first wife's father; the walls were adorned with some dark landscapes in oil from the same source; there was no carpet on the floor and only one other chair. A safe stood in the corner opposite the door. On the mantelpiece were some books—Woodfall's 'Landlord and Tenant,' Jordan's 'Guide to Company Law,' Whitaker's Almanack, and a Gazetteer of the Five Towns. Several wire files filled with papers hung from the mantelpiece. Aside from a mahogany what-not with a Bible on it, which was in front of the window, there was nothing else in the room. He sat down at the bureau and opened it, taking out a packet of various documents from one of the pigeonholes: he examined them one by one, occasionally checking a list. Then he unlocked the safe and pulled out another bundle of documents that had clearly been prepared. With these in hand, he opened the door and called out:

'Anna.'

'Anna.'

'Yes, father;' her voice came from the kitchen.

'Yes, Dad;' her voice came from the kitchen.

'I want ye.'

'I want you.'

'In a minute. I'm peeling potatoes.'

'In a minute. I'm peeling potatoes.'

When she came in, she found him seated at the bureau as usual. He did not look round.

When she walked in, she saw him sitting at the desk as usual. He didn’t turn around.

'Yes, father.'

'Yes, Dad.'

She stood there in her print dress and white apron, full in the eye of the sun, waiting for him. She could not guess what she had been summoned for. As a rule, she never saw her father between breakfast and dinner. At length he turned.

She stood there in her printed dress and white apron, directly in the sunlight, waiting for him. She had no idea why she had been called. Usually, she never saw her father between breakfast and dinner. Finally, he turned.

'Anna,' he said in his harsh, abrupt tones, and then stopped for a moment before continuing. His thick, short fingers held the list which he had previously been consulting. She waited in bewilderment. 'It's your birthday, ye told me. I hadna' forgotten. Ye're of age to-day, and there's summat for ye. Your mother had a fortune of her own, and under your grandfeyther's will it comes to you when you're twenty-one. I'm the trustee. Your mother had eighteen thousand pounds i' Government stock.' He laid a slight sneering emphasis on the last two words. 'That was near twenty-five year ago. I've nigh on trebled it for ye, what wi' good investments and interest accumulating. Thou'rt worth'—here he changed to the second personal singular, a habit with him—'thou'rt worth this day as near fifty thousand as makes no matter, Anna. And that's a tidy bit.'

'Anna,' he said in his harsh, abrupt voice, and then paused for a moment before continuing. His thick, short fingers held the list he had been looking at earlier. She waited, confused. 'It’s your birthday, you told me. I didn’t forget. You’re twenty-one today, and I’ve got something for you. Your mother had her own fortune, and according to your grandfather’s will, it comes to you when you turn twenty-one. I’m the trustee. Your mother had eighteen thousand pounds in government stock.' He put a slight sneer on the last two words. 'That was almost twenty-five years ago. I've nearly tripled it for you, thanks to good investments and accumulating interest. You’re worth—' here he switched to a more informal tone, which was his habit—'you’re worth close to fifty thousand today, Anna. And that’s a nice sum.'

'Fifty thousand—pounds!' she exclaimed aghast.

'Fifty thousand—pounds!' she exclaimed in shock.

'Ay, lass.'

'Hey, girl.'

She tried to speak calmly. 'Do you mean it's mine, father?'

She tried to speak calmly. 'Are you saying it's mine, Dad?'

'It's thine, under thy grandfeyther's will—haven't I told thee? I'm bound by law for to give it to thee this day, and thou mun give me a receipt in due form for the securities. Here they are, and here's the list. Tak' the list, Anna, and read it to me while I check off.'

"It's yours, according to your grandfather's will—didn't I tell you? I’m legally required to give it to you today, and you need to give me a proper receipt for the securities. Here they are, and here’s the list. Take the list, Anna, and read it to me while I check them off."

She mechanically took the blue paper and read: 'Toft End Colliery and Brickworks Limited, five hundred shares of ten pounds.'

She automatically picked up the blue paper and read: 'Toft End Colliery and Brickworks Limited, five hundred shares at ten pounds each.'

'They paid ten per cent. last year,' he said, 'and with coal up as it is they'll pay fiftane this. Let's see what thy arithmetic is worth, lass. How much is fiftane per cent. on five thousand pun?'

'They paid ten percent last year,' he said, 'and with coal prices so high, they'll pay fifteen this year. Let's see how good your math is, girl. How much is fifteen percent of five thousand pounds?'

'Seven hundred and fifty pounds,' she said, getting the correct answer by a superhuman effort worthy of that occasion.

'Seven hundred and fifty pounds,' she said, arriving at the right answer through an incredible effort deserving of that moment.

'Right,' said her father, pleased. 'Recollect that's more till two pun a day. Go on.'

'Right,' her father said, pleased. 'Remember that's more than two pounds a day. Go on.'

'North Staffordshire Railway Company ordinary stock, ten thousand and two hundred pounds.'

'North Staffordshire Railway Company ordinary stock, £10,200.'

'Right. Th' owd North Stafford's getting up i' th' world. It'll be a five per cent. line yet. Then thou mun sell out.'

'Right. The old North Stafford is improving. It will be a five percent line yet. Then you must sell out.'

She had only a vague idea of his meaning, and continued: 'Five Towns Waterworks Company Limited consolidated stock, eight thousand five hundred pounds.'

She had just a blurry understanding of what he meant and continued: 'Five Towns Waterworks Company Limited consolidated stock, eight thousand five hundred pounds.'

'That's a tit-bit, lass,' he interjected, looking absently over his spectacles at something outside in the road. 'You canna' pick that up on shardrucks.'

'That's a tidbit, girl,' he interrupted, glancing absentmindedly over his glasses at something outside on the road. 'You can’t find that on shardrucks.'

'Norris's Brewery Limited, six hundred ordinary shares of ten pounds.'

'Norris's Brewery Limited, six hundred regular shares of ten pounds.'

'Twenty per cent.,' said the old man. 'Twenty per cent. regular.' He made no attempt to conceal his pride in these investments. And he had the right to be proud of them. They were the finest in the market, the aristocracy of investments, based on commercial enterprises of which every business man in the Five Towns knew the entire soundness. They conferred distinction on the possessor, like a great picture or a rare volume. They stifled all questions and insinuations. Put before any jury of the Five Towns as evidence of character, they would almost have exculpated a murderer.

"Twenty percent," said the old man. "Twenty percent, guaranteed." He didn't try to hide his pride in these investments. And he had every reason to be proud of them. They were the best in the market, the elite of investments, based on business ventures that every entrepreneur in the Five Towns recognized as solid. They added prestige to the owner, like a masterpiece or a rare book. They silenced any questions or doubts. Presented before any jury in the Five Towns as proof of character, they could nearly absolve a murderer.

Anna continued reading the list, which seemed endless: long before she had reached the last item her brain was a menagerie of monstrous figures. The list included, besides all sorts of shares English and American, sundry properties in the Five Towns, and among these was the earthenware manufactory in Edward Street occupied by Titus Price, the Sunday-school superintendent. Anna was a little alarmed to find herself the owner of this works; she knew that her father had had some difficult moments with Titus Price, and that the property was not without grave disadvantages.

Anna kept reading the list, which felt endless: long before she got to the last item, her mind was a jumble of strange figures. The list contained various types of shares, both English and American, as well as several properties in the Five Towns, including the pottery factory on Edward Street run by Titus Price, the Sunday school superintendent. Anna was a bit worried to discover she owned this factory; she knew her father had faced some tough times with Titus Price and that the property had serious drawbacks.

'That all!' Tellwright asked, at length.

'Is that all?' Tellwright asked, finally.

'That's all.'

'That's it.'

'Total face value,' he went on, 'as I value it, forty-eight thousand and fifty pounds, producing a net annual income of three thousand two hundred and ninety pounds or thereabouts. There's not many in this district as 'as gotten that to their names, Anna—no, nor half that—let 'em be who they will.'

'The total value,' he continued, 'as I see it, is forty-eight thousand fifty pounds, generating a net annual income of about three thousand two hundred ninety pounds. There aren't many in this area who have that much to their name, Anna—no, not even half of that—no matter who they are.'

Anna had sensations such as a child might have who has received a traction-engine to play with in a back yard. 'What am I to do with it?' she asked plaintively.

Anna felt like a child who had just gotten a toy steamroller to play with in the backyard. "What am I supposed to do with this?" she asked sadly.

'Do wi' it?' he repeated, and stood up and faced her, putting his lips together: 'Do wi' it, did ye say?'

'Do it?' he repeated, standing up and facing her, pressing his lips together: 'Do it, did you say?'

'Yes.'

Yes.

'Tak' care on it, my girl. Tak' care on it. And remember it's thine. Thou mun sign this list, and all these transfers and fal-lals, and then thou mun go to th' Bank, and tell Mester Lovatt I've sent thee. There's four hundred pound there. He'll give thee a cheque-book. I've told him all about it. Thou'll have thy own account, and be sure thou keeps it straight.'

"Take care of it, my girl. Take care of it. And remember it's yours. You need to sign this list, along with all these transfers and things, and then you need to go to the bank and tell Mr. Lovatt I've sent you. There’s four hundred pounds there. He’ll give you a checkbook. I’ve told him all about it. You’ll have your own account, so make sure you keep it organized."

'I shan't know a bit what to do, father, and so it's no use talking,' she said quietly.

'I don't know at all what to do, dad, so there's really no point in discussing it,' she said softly.

'I'll learn ye,' he replied. 'Here, tak' th' pen, and let's have thy signature.'

"I'll teach you," he replied. "Here, take the pen, and let's get your signature."

She signed her name many times and put her finger on many seals. Then Tellwright gathered up everything into a bundle, and gave it to her to hold.

She signed her name several times and pressed her finger on multiple seals. Then Tellwright collected everything into a bundle and handed it to her to hold.

'That's the lot,' he said. 'Have ye gotten 'em?'

'That's everything,' he said. 'Have you got them?'

'Yes,' she said.

'Yeah,' she said.

They both smiled, self-consciously. As for Tellwright, he was evidently impressed by the grandeur of this superb renunciation on his part. 'Shall I keep 'em for ye?'

They both smiled, a bit awkwardly. As for Tellwright, he was clearly impressed by the impressive sacrifice he was making. 'Should I hold them for you?'

'Yes, please.'

"Sure, please."

'Then give 'em me.'

'Then give them to me.'

He took back all the documents.

He took all the documents back.

'When shall I call at the Bank, father?'

'When should I stop by the bank, Dad?'

'Better call this afternoon—afore three, mind ye.'

'Better call this afternoon—before three, keep that in mind.'

'Very well. But I shan't know what to do.'

'Okay. But I won't know what to do.'

'You've gotten a tongue in that noddle of yours, haven't ye?' he said. 'Now go and get along wi' them potatoes.'

'You've got a mouth on you, haven't you?' he said. 'Now go and deal with those potatoes.'

Anna returned to the kitchen. She felt no elation or ferment of any kind; she had not begun to realise the significance of what had occurred. Like the soldier whom a bullet has struck, she only knew vaguely that something had occurred. She peeled the potatoes with more than her usual thrifty care; the peel was so thin as to be almost transparent. It seemed to her that she could not arrange or examine her emotions until after she had met Henry Mynors again. More than anything else she wished to see him: it was as if out of the mere sight of him something definite might emerge, as if when her eyes had rested on him, and not before, she might perceive some simple solution of the problems which she had obscurely discerned ahead of her.

Anna went back to the kitchen. She didn’t feel any excitement or turmoil; she hadn’t started to grasp the significance of what had happened. Like a soldier who has just been hit by a bullet, she only vaguely sensed that something had taken place. She peeled the potatoes with more care than usual; the peel was so thin it was nearly transparent. It seemed to her that she couldn’t sort out or reflect on her feelings until after she saw Henry Mynors again. More than anything, she wanted to see him: it felt like just seeing him might help something clear up, as if once her eyes had fallen on him, and not before, she might find a simple solution to the problems she had sensed lurking ahead.

During dinner a boy brought a note for her father. He read it, snorted, and threw it across the table to Anna.

During dinner, a boy handed a note to her father. He read it, snorted, and tossed it across the table to Anna.

'Here,' he said, 'that's your affair.'

'Here,' he said, 'that's your thing.'

The letter was from Titus Price: it said that he was sorry to be compelled to break his promise, but it was quite impossible for him to pay twenty pounds on account of rent that day; he would endeavour to pay at least twenty pounds in a week's time.

The letter was from Titus Price: it said that he was sorry to have to break his promise, but it was totally impossible for him to pay twenty pounds for rent today; he would try to pay at least twenty pounds within a week.

'You'd better call there, after you've been to th' Bank,' said Tellwright, 'and get summat out of him, if it's only ten pun.'

'You'd better call them after you've been to the bank,' said Tellwright, 'and get something out of him, even if it's just ten pounds.'

'Must I go to Edward Street?'

'Do I have to go to Edward Street?'

'Yes.'

Yes.

'What am I to say? I've never been there before.'

'What should I say? I've never been there before.'

'Well, it's high time as ye began to look after your own property. You mun see owd Price, and tell him ye canna accept any excuses.'

'Well, it's about time you started taking care of your own property. You need to see old Price and tell him you can't accept any excuses.'

'How much does he owe?'

'How much does he owe?'

'He owes ye a hundred and twenty-five pun altogether—he's five quarters in arrear.'

'He owes you a total of one hundred and twenty-five pounds—he's five quarters behind.'

'A hundred and——! Well, I never!' Anna was aghast. The sum appeared larger to her than all the thousands and tens of thousands which she had received in the morning. She reflected that the weekly bills of the household amounted to about a sovereign, and that the total of this debt of Price's would therefore keep them in food for two years. The idea of being in debt was abhorrent to her. She could not conceive how a man who was in debt could sleep at nights. 'Mr. Price ought to be ashamed of himself,' she said warmly. 'I'm sure he's quite able to pay.' The image of the sleek and stout superintendent of the Sunday-school, arrayed in his rich, almost voluptuous, broadcloth, offended her profoundly. That he, debtor and promise-breaker, should have the effrontery to pray for the souls of children, to chastise their petty furtive crimes, was nearly incredible.

'A hundred and—! Well, I can’t believe it!' Anna was shocked. The amount seemed larger to her than all the thousands and tens of thousands she had received in the morning. She realized that the weekly household bills came to about a pound, and that the total of this debt from Price would feed them for two years. The thought of being in debt was repulsive to her. She couldn't imagine how a man in debt could sleep at night. 'Mr. Price should be ashamed of himself,' she said passionately. 'I'm sure he can pay.' The image of the sleek and plump superintendent of the Sunday school, dressed in his rich, almost indulgent, broadcloth, deeply offended her. That he, a debtor and promise-breaker, would have the nerve to pray for the souls of children and to scold their minor sneaky offenses was nearly unbelievable.

'Oh! Price is all right,' her father remarked, with an apparent benignity which surprised her. 'He'll pay when he can.'

'Oh! Price is all right,' her father said, with a cheerful attitude that caught her off guard. 'He'll pay when he can.'

'I think it's a shame,' she repeated emphatically.

"I think it's a shame," she said strongly.

Agnes looked with a mystified air from one to the other, instinctively divining that something very extraordinary had happened during her absence at school.

Agnes looked at each of them, confused, sensing that something very unusual had occurred while she was away at school.

'Ye mun'na be too hard, Anna,' said Tellwright. 'Supposing ye sold owd Titus up? What then? D'ye reckon ye'd get a tenant for them ramshackle works? A thousand pound spent wouldn't 'tice a tenant. That Edward Street property was one o' ye grandfeyther's specs; 'twere none o' mine. You'd best tak' what ye can get.'

'You shouldn't be too harsh, Anna,' said Tellwright. 'What if you sell old Titus? What then? Do you think you'd find a tenant for those run-down buildings? Even a thousand pounds spent wouldn't attract a tenant. That property on Edward Street was one of your grandfather's projects; it wasn’t mine. You'd be better off taking whatever you can get.'

Anna felt a little ashamed of herself, not because of her bad policy, but because she saw that Mr. Price might have been handicapped by the faults of her property.

Anna felt somewhat embarrassed, not because of her poor decision, but because she realized that Mr. Price might have been held back by the issues with her property.

That afternoon it was a shy and timid Anna who swung back the heavy polished and glazed portals of the Bursley branch of the Birmingham, Sheffield and district Bank, the opulent and spacious erection which stands commandingly at the top of St. Luke's Square. She looked about her, across broad counters, enormous ledgers, and rows of bent heads, and wondered whom she should address. Then a bearded gentleman, who was weighing gold in a balance, caught sight of her: he slid the gold into a drawer, and whisked round the end of the counter with a celerity which was, at any rate, not born of practice, for he, the cashier, had not done such a thing for years.

That afternoon, a shy and timid Anna pushed open the heavy, polished doors of the Bursley branch of the Birmingham, Sheffield and District Bank, the lavish and spacious building that stands prominently at the top of St. Luke's Square. She glanced around at the wide counters, huge ledgers, and rows of bent heads, unsure of whom to approach. Then a bearded gentleman, who was weighing gold on a scale, noticed her: he slid the gold into a drawer and quickly moved around the end of the counter with a speed that clearly wasn’t due to practice, since he, the cashier, hadn't done that in years.

'Good afternoon, Miss Tellwright.'

'Good afternoon, Ms. Tellwright.'

'Good afternoon. I——'

Good afternoon. I——

'May I trouble you to step into the manager's room?' and he drew her forward, while every clerk's eye watched. Anna tried not to blush, but she could feel the red mounting even to her temples.

'Could you please step into the manager's room?' he said, pulling her forward as every clerk watched. Anna tried not to blush, but she could feel her face getting hot, even up to her temples.

'Delightful weather we're having. But of course we've the right to expect it at this time of year.' He opened a door on the glass of which was painted 'Manager,' and bowed. 'Mr. Lovatt—Miss Tellwright.'

"Lovely weather we're having. But of course, we have the right to expect this at this time of year." He opened a door that had 'Manager' painted on the glass and bowed. "Mr. Lovatt—Miss Tellwright."

Mr. Lovatt greeted his new customer with a formal and rather fatigued politeness, and invited her to sit in a large leather armchair in front of a large table; on this table lay a large open book. Anna had once in her life been to the dentist's; this interview reminded her of that experience.

Mr. Lovatt welcomed his new customer with a formal and somewhat tired politeness, and offered her a seat in a large leather armchair in front of a big table; on this table rested a large open book. Anna had only been to the dentist once in her life; this meeting brought that experience back to her.

'Your father told me I might expect you to-day,' said Mr. Lovatt in his high-pitched, perfunctory tones. Richard Lovatt was probably the most influential man in Bursley. Every Saturday morning he irrigated the whole town with fertilising gold. By a single negative he could have ruined scores of upright merchants and manufacturers. He had only to stop a man in the street and murmur, 'By the way, your overdraft——,' in order to spread discord and desolation through a refined and pious home. His estimate of human nature was falsified by no common illusions; he had the impassive and frosty gaze of a criminal judge. Many men deemed they had cause to hate him, but no one did hate him: all recognised that he was set far above hatred.

"Your dad mentioned I could expect you today," said Mr. Lovatt in his high, indifferent voice. Richard Lovatt was likely the most powerful man in Bursley. Every Saturday morning, he spread financial support throughout the town. With just one word, he could have destroyed countless honest merchants and manufacturers. He only had to stop someone on the street and say, "By the way, your overdraft—," to bring chaos and despair into a respectable and religious household. His view of human nature wasn't clouded by any common misconceptions; he had the cold, unyielding stare of a judge. Many men felt they had reasons to dislike him, but no one actually hated him: everyone acknowledged that he was far beyond hatred.

'Kindly sign your full name here,' he said, pointing to a spot on the large open page of the book, 'and your ordinary signature, which you will attach to cheques, here.'

'Please sign your full name here,' he said, pointing to a spot on the large open page of the book, 'and your usual signature, which you use for checks, here.'

Anna wrote, but in doing so she became aware that she had no ordinary signature; she was obliged to invent one.

Anna wrote, but as she did, she realized that she didn’t have a typical signature; she needed to create one.

'Do you wish to draw anything out now? There is already a credit of four hundred and twenty pounds in your favour,' said Mr. Lovatt, after he had handed her a cheque-book, a deposit-book, and a pass-book.

'Do you want to withdraw anything now? There’s already a credit of four hundred and twenty pounds in your favor,' said Mr. Lovatt, after he handed her a checkbook, a deposit book, and a passbook.

'Oh, no, thank you,' Anna answered quickly. She keenly desired some money, but she well knew that courage would fail her to demand it without her father's consent; moreover, she was in a whirl of uncertainty as to the uses of the three books, though Mr. Lovatt had expounded them severally to her in simple language.

'Oh, no, thank you,' Anna replied quickly. She really wanted some money, but she knew she wouldn't have the courage to ask for it without her father's approval; plus, she was in a state of confusion about the purpose of the three books, even though Mr. Lovatt had explained them to her in straightforward terms.

'Good-day.'

'Hello.'

'Good-day, Miss Tellwright.'

'Good day, Miss Tellwright.'

'My compliments to your father.'

'Cheers to your dad.'

His final glance said half cynically, half in pity: 'You are naïve and unspoilt now, but these eyes will see yours harden like the rest. Wretched victim of gold, you are only one in a procession, after all.'

His last look was a mix of cynicism and pity: 'You’re innocent and untouched now, but these eyes will see yours toughen up like everyone else. You’re just another victim of money, after all.'

Outside, Anna thought that everyone had been very agreeable to her. Her complacency increased at a bound. She no longer felt ashamed of her shabby cotton dress. She surmised that people would find it convenient to ignore any difference which might exist between her costume and that of other girls.

Outside, Anna felt like everyone had been really nice to her. Her confidence surged. She didn’t feel embarrassed by her worn-out cotton dress anymore. She figured that people would probably choose to overlook any differences between her outfit and those of the other girls.

She went on to Edward Street, a short steep thoroughfare at the eastern extremity of the town, leading into a rough road across unoccupied land dotted with the mouths of abandoned pits: this road climbed up to Toft End, a mean annexe of the town about half a mile east of Bleakridge. From Toft End, lying on the highest hill in the district, one had a panoramic view of Hanbridge and Bursley, with Hillport to the west, and all the moorland and mining villages to the north and north-east. Titus Price and his son lived in what had once been a farm-house at Toft End; every morning and evening they traversed the desolate and featureless grey road between their dwelling and the works.

She walked down Edward Street, a short, steep road at the eastern edge of the town, leading into a rough path across vacant land scattered with the openings of abandoned pits. This path climbed up to Toft End, a shabby extension of the town about half a mile east of Bleakridge. From Toft End, located on the highest hill in the area, there was a stunning view of Hanbridge and Bursley, with Hillport to the west, and all the moorland and mining villages to the north and northeast. Titus Price and his son lived in what had once been a farmhouse at Toft End; every morning and evening, they walked the desolate and unremarkable grey road between their home and the works.

Anna had never been in Edward Street before. It was a miserable quarter—two rows of blackened infinitesimal cottages, and her manufactory at the end—a frontier post of the town. Price's works was small, old-fashioned, and out of repair—one of those properties which are forlorn from the beginning, which bring despair into the hearts of a succession of owners, and which, being ultimately deserted, seem to stand for ever in pitiable ruin. The arched entrance for carts into the yard was at the top of the steepest rise of the street, when it might as well have been at the bottom; and this was but one example of the architect's fine disregard for the principle of economy in working—that principle to which in the scheming of manufactories everything else is now so strictly subordinated. Ephraim Tellwright used to say (but not to Titus Price) that the situation of that archway cost five pounds a year in horseflesh, and that five pounds was the interest on a hundred. The place was badly located, badly planned and badly constructed. Its faults defied improvement. Titus Price remained in it only because he was chained there by arrears of rent; Tellwright hesitated to sell it only because the rent was a hundred a year, and the whole freehold would not have fetched eight hundred. He promised repairs in exchange for payment of arrears which he knew would never be paid, and his policy was to squeeze the last penny out of Price without forcing him into bankruptcy. Such was the predicament when Anna assumed ownership. As she surveyed the irregular and huddled frontage from the opposite side of the street, her first feeling was one of depression at the broken and dirty panes of the windows. A man in shirt-sleeves was standing on the weighing platform under the archway; his back was towards her, but she could see the smoke issuing in puffs from his pipe. She crossed the road. Hearing her footfalls, the man turned round: it was Titus Price himself. He was wearing an apron, but no cap; the sleeves of his shirt were rolled up, exposing forearms covered with auburn hair. His puffed, heavy face, and general bigness and untidiness, gave the idea of a vast and torpid male slattern. Anna was astounded by the contrast between the Titus of Sunday and the Titus of Monday: a single glance compelled her to readjust all her notions of the man. She stammered a greeting, and he replied, and then they were both silent for a moment: in the pause Mr. Price thrust his pipe between apron and waistcoat.

Anna had never been to Edward Street before. It was a dreary area—two rows of tiny, rundown cottages, with her factory at the end—a distant outpost of the town. Price's factory was small, old-fashioned, and in disrepair—one of those places that seem doomed from the start, bringing despair to a series of owners and ultimately becoming a sad ruin. The arched entrance for trucks into the yard was at the top of the steepest part of the street, when it could have just as easily been at the bottom; this was just one example of the architect's total disregard for the principle of cost-effectiveness in operation—a principle that today governs everything in manufacturing. Ephraim Tellwright used to say (but not to Titus Price) that the location of that archway cost five pounds a year in horse expenses, and that five pounds was the interest on a hundred. The place was poorly situated, poorly designed, and poorly built. Its flaws were beyond any chance of improvement. Titus Price stayed there only because he was stuck with unpaid rent; Tellwright was hesitant to sell it only because the rent was a hundred a year, and the entire freehold wouldn't have sold for eight hundred. He promised repairs in exchange for payments on debts he knew would never come, and his strategy was to squeeze every last penny out of Price without pushing him into bankruptcy. That was the situation when Anna took ownership. As she looked at the irregular and cluttered facade from across the street, her first thought was one of sadness at the broken and dirty windowpanes. A man in his shirtsleeves stood on the weighing platform under the arch; his back was to her, but she could see the smoke puffing from his pipe. She crossed the street. Hearing her footsteps, the man turned around: it was Titus Price himself. He was wearing an apron but no cap; his shirt sleeves were rolled up, showing forearms covered in reddish-brown hair. His bloated, heavy face and overall size and untidiness gave the impression of a large, lazy man. Anna was shocked by the contrast between the Sunday Titus and the Monday Titus: a quick glance made her rethink everything she thought she knew about him. She stammered a greeting, he responded, and then they both fell silent for a moment: during the pause, Mr. Price shoved his pipe between his apron and waistcoat.

'Come inside, Miss Tellwright,' he said, with a sickly, conciliatory smile. 'Come into the office, will ye?'

'Come inside, Miss Tellwright,' he said, with a weak, reassuring smile. 'Come into the office, will you?'

She followed him without a word through the archway. To the right was an open door into the packing-house, where a man surrounded by straw was packing basins in a crate: with swift, precise movements, twisting straw between basin and basin, he forced piles of ware into a space inconceivably small. Mr. Price lingered to watch him for a few seconds, and passed on. They were in the yard, a small quadrangle paved with black, greasy mud. In one corner a load of coal had been cast; in another lay a heap of broken saggars. Decrepit doorways led to the various 'shops' on the ground floor; those on the upper floor were reached by narrow wooden stairs, which seemed to cling insecurely to the exterior walls. Up one of these stairways Mr. Price climbed with heavy, elephantine movements: Anna prudently waited till he had reached the top before beginning to ascend. He pushed open a flimsy door, and with a nod bade her enter. The office was a long narrow room, the dirtiest that Anna had ever seen. If such was the condition of the master's quarters, she thought, what must the workshops be like? The ceiling, which bulged downwards, was as black as the floor, which sank away in the middle till it was hollow like a saucer. The revolution of an engine somewhere below shook everything with a periodic muffled thud. A greyish light came through one small window. By the window was a large double desk, with chairs facing each other. One of these chairs was occupied by Willie Price. The youth did not observe at first that another person had come in with his father. He was casting up figures in an account book, and murmuring numbers to himself. He wore an office coat, short at the wrists and torn at the elbows, and a battered felt hat was thrust far back over his head so that the brim rested on his dirty collar. He turned round at length, and, on seeing Anna, blushed brilliant crimson, and rose, scraping the legs of his chair horribly across the floor. Tall, thin, and ungainly in every motion, he had the look of a ninny: it was the fact that at school all the boys by a common instinct had combined to tease him, and that on the works the young paintresses continually made private sport of him. Anna, however, had not the least impulse to mock him in her thoughts. For her there was nothing in his blue eyes but simplicity and good intentions. Beside him she felt old, sagacious, crafty: it seemed to her that some one ought to shield that transparent and confiding soul from his father and the intriguing world.

She followed him silently through the archway. To the right was an open door leading into the packing house, where a man surrounded by straw was packing basins into a crate. With quick, precise movements, he twisted straw between each basin, squeezing stacks of goods into a space that seemed impossibly small. Mr. Price paused to watch him for a few seconds before moving on. They were in the yard, a small square area paved with black, greasy mud. In one corner, a pile of coal had been dumped; in another, there was a heap of broken saggars. Worn doorways led to the various workshops on the ground floor; those on the upper floor could be reached by narrow wooden stairs that seemed to cling unsteadily to the outside walls. Mr. Price climbed up one of these stairways with heavy, clumsy movements. Anna wisely waited until he reached the top before starting up after him. He pushed open a flimsy door and nodded for her to enter. The office was a long, narrow room, the dirtiest Anna had ever seen. If the master's quarters looked like this, she thought, what would the workshops be like? The ceiling sagged and was as black as the floor, which dipped in the middle like a hollow dish. The thumping of an engine somewhere below shook everything at regular intervals. A gray light filtered through one small window. By the window was a large double desk, with chairs facing each other. One of those chairs was occupied by Willie Price. At first, the young man didn’t notice that another person had come in with his father. He was calculating numbers in an account book and murmuring to himself. He wore an office coat that was short at the wrists and torn at the elbows, and a battered felt hat was pushed far back on his head, with the brim resting on his dirty collar. Eventually, he turned around, and when he saw Anna, he blushed bright red and stood up, scraping the legs of his chair loudly across the floor. Tall, thin, and awkward in every movement, he looked foolish: all the boys at school had teased him, and the young women at the factory often poked fun at him. However, Anna had no desire to make fun of him in her thoughts. To her, his blue eyes reflected only simplicity and good intentions. Next to him, she felt older, wiser, and more cunning; she thought someone should protect that innocent and trusting soul from his father and the complicated world.

He spoke to her and lifted his hat, holding it afterwards in his great bony hand.

He talked to her and tipped his hat, holding it afterward in his large, bony hand.

'Get down to th' entry, Will,' said his father, and Willie, with an apologetic sort of cough, slipped silently away through the door.

'Get down to the entrance, Will,' said his father, and Willie, with a slightly apologetic cough, quietly slipped out through the door.

'Sit down, Miss Tellwright,' said old Price, and she took the Windsor chair that had been occupied by Willie. Her tenant fell into the seat opposite—a leathern chair from which the stuffing had exuded, and with one of its arms broken. 'I hear as ye father is going into partnership with young Mynors—Henry Mynors.'

'Sit down, Miss Tellwright,' said old Price, and she took the Windsor chair that had been occupied by Willie. Her tenant settled into the seat opposite—a leather chair with its stuffing poking out and one of its arms broken. 'I hear your father is going into partnership with young Mynors—Henry Mynors.'

Anna started at this surprising item of news, which was entirely fresh to her. 'Father has said nothing to me about it,' she replied, coldly.

Anna was taken aback by this surprising news, which was completely new to her. 'Dad hasn't told me anything about it,' she replied coldly.

'Oh! Happen I've said too much. If so, you'll excuse me, Miss. A smart fellow, Mynors. Now you should see his little works: not very much bigger than this, but there's everything you can think of there—all the latest machinery and dodges, and not over-rented, I'm told. The biggest fool i' Bursley couldn't help but make money there. This 'ere works 'ere, Miss Tellwright, wants mendin' with a new 'un.'

'Oh! I might have said too much. If so, please forgive me, Miss. Mynors is a clever guy. You should see his little factory: not much bigger than this, but it has everything you can imagine—all the latest machinery and tricks, and I hear it's reasonably priced. Even the biggest fool in Bursley couldn't fail to make money there. This factory here, Miss Tellwright, needs fixing up with a new one.'

'It looks very dirty, I must say,' said Anna.

'It looks really dirty, I have to say,' Anna said.

'Dirty!' he laughed—a short, acrid laugh—'I suppose you've called about the rent.'

'Dirty!' he laughed—a brief, sharp laugh—'I guess you called about the rent.'

'Yes, father asked me to call.'

'Yeah, Dad asked me to call.'

'Let me see, this place belongs to you i' your own right, doesn't it, Miss?'

'Let me see, this place belongs to you by your own right, doesn’t it, Miss?'

'Yes,' said Anna. 'It's mine—from my grandfather, you know.'

'Yeah,' said Anna. 'It's mine—from my grandpa, you know.'

'Ah! Well, I'm sorry for to tell ye as I can't pay anything now—no, not a cent. But I'll pay twenty pounds in a week. Tell ye father I'll pay twenty pound in a week.'

'Ah! Well, I'm sorry to say that I can't pay anything right now—no, not a penny. But I'll pay twenty pounds in a week. Tell your father I'll pay twenty pounds in a week.'

'That's what you said last week,' Anna remarked, with more brusqueness than she had intended. At first she was fearful at her own temerity in thus addressing a superintendent of the Sunday-school; then, as nothing happened, she felt reassured, and strong in the justice of her position.

'That's what you said last week,' Anna remarked, more bluntly than she meant to. At first, she was afraid of her boldness in speaking to a superintendent of the Sunday school; then, as nothing happened, she felt reassured and confident in the righteousness of her stance.

'Yes,' he admitted obsequiously. 'But I've been disappointed. One of our best customers put us off, to tell ye the truth. Money's tight, very tight. It's got to be give and take in these days, as ye father knows. And I may as well speak plain to ye, Miss Tellwright. We canna' stay here; we shall be compelled to give ye notice. What's amiss with this bank[1] is that it wants pullin' down.' He went off into a rapid enumeration of ninety-and-nine alterations and repairs that must be done without the loss of a moment, and concluded: 'You tell ye father what I've told ye, and say as I'll send up twenty pounds next week. I can't pay anything now; I've nothing by me at all.'

'Yes,' he said obediently. 'But I've been let down. One of our best customers canceled on us, to be honest. Money is tight, really tight. It’s all about give and take these days, as your father knows. And I might as well be straightforward with you, Miss Tellwright. We can’t stay here; we’ll have to give you notice. What’s wrong with this bank[1] is that it needs to be torn down.' He quickly listed off a hundred changes and repairs that needed to be made immediately, then added: 'You tell your father what I've said, and let him know I'll send up twenty pounds next week. I can't pay anything right now; I don’t have anything on me at all.'

'Father said particularly I was to be sure and get something on account.' There was a flinty hardness in her tone which astonished herself perhaps more than Titus Price. A long pause followed, and then Mr. Price drew a breath, seeming to nerve himself to a tremendous sacrificial deed.

'Father said I definitely needed to make sure I got something on account.' There was a tough edge to her voice that surprised her, maybe even more than it surprised Titus Price. A long pause followed, and then Mr. Price took a deep breath, as if he were gearing up for something really big and sacrificial.

'I tell ye what I'll do. I'll give ye ten pounds now, and I'll do what I can next week. I'll do what I can. There!'

'I’ll tell you what I’ll do. I’ll give you ten pounds now, and I’ll do what I can next week. I’ll do what I can. There!'

'Thank you,' said Anna. She was amazed at her success.

'Thank you,' said Anna. She was amazed by her success.

He unlocked the desk, and his head disappeared under the lifted lid. Anna gazed through the window. Like many women, and not a few men, in the Five Towns, she was wholly ignorant of the staple manufacture. The interior of a works was almost as strange to her as it would have been to a farm-hand from Sussex. A girl came out of a door on the opposite side of the quadrangle: the creature was clothed in clayey rags, and carried on her right shoulder a board laden with biscuit[2] cups. She began to mount one of the wooden stairways, and as she did so the board, six feet in length, swayed alarmingly to and fro. Anna expected to see it fall with a destructive crash, but the girl went up in safety, and with a nonchalant jerk of the shoulder aimed the end of the board through another door and vanished from sight. To Anna it was a thrilling feat, but she noticed that a man who stood in the yard did not even turn his head to watch it. Mr. Price recalled her to the business of her errand.

He unlocked the desk, and his head disappeared under the lid. Anna looked out the window. Like many women, and not a few men, in the Five Towns, she had no idea about the main manufacturing process. The inside of a factory was almost as unfamiliar to her as it would be to a farmhand from Sussex. A girl emerged from a door on the other side of the courtyard: she was dressed in dirty rags and was balancing a board loaded with biscuit cups on her right shoulder. She started to climb one of the wooden staircases, and as she did, the board, six feet long, swayed dangerously back and forth. Anna braced herself for it to fall with a loud crash, but the girl made it up safely and with a casual jerk of her shoulder, directed the end of the board through another door and disappeared from view. To Anna, it was an exciting moment, but she noticed that a man standing in the yard didn’t even bother to look. Mr. Price brought her back to the purpose of her visit.

'Here's two fives,' he said, shutting down the desk with the sigh of a crocodile.

'Here are two fives,' he said, closing the desk with a sigh like a crocodile.

'Liar! You said you had nothing!' her unspoken thought ran, and at the same instant the Sunday-school and everything connected with it grievously sank in her estimation; she contrasted this scene with that on the previous day with the peccant schoolgirl: it was an hour of disillusion. Taking the notes, she gave a receipt and rose to go.

'Liar! You said you had nothing!' her unspoken thought raced through her mind, and at that moment, the Sunday school and everything related to it dropped significantly in her view; she compared this scene with the one from the day before involving the guilty schoolgirl: it was an hour of disillusionment. Taking the notes, she issued a receipt and stood up to leave.

'Tell ye father'—it seemed to Anna that this phrase was always on his lips—'tell ye father he must come down and look at the state this place is in,' said Mr. Price, enheartened by the heroic payment of ten pounds. Anna said nothing; she thought a fire would do more good than anything else to the foul, squalid buildings: the passing fancy coincided with Mr. Price's secret and most intense desire.

'Tell your father'—it felt like Anna heard this phrase constantly from him—'tell your father he needs to come down and see how messy this place is,' said Mr. Price, feeling uplifted by the bold payment of ten pounds. Anna didn't respond; she believed a fire would do more good than anything else for the filthy, rundown buildings: her fleeting thought aligned perfectly with Mr. Price's hidden and strong wish.

Outside she saw Willie Price superintending the lifting of a crate on to a railway lorry. After twirling in the air, the crate sank safely into the waggon. Young Price was perspiring.

Outside, she saw Willie Price overseeing the loading of a crate onto a train truck. After spinning in the air, the crate landed safely in the wagon. Young Price was sweating.

'Warm afternoon, Miss Tellwright,' he called to her as she passed, with his pleasant bashful smile. She gave an affirmative. Then he came to her, still smiling, his face full of an intention to say something, however insignificant.

'Warm afternoon, Miss Tellwright,' he called out to her as she walked by, with his nice, shy smile. She gave a nod in response. Then he approached her, still smiling, his face showing that he wanted to say something, no matter how trivial.

'I suppose you'll be at the Special Teachers' Meeting to-morrow night,' he remarked.

'I guess you'll be at the Special Teachers' Meeting tomorrow night,' he said.

'I hope to be,' she said. That was all: William had achieved his small-talk: they parted.

'I hope to be,' she said. That was it: William had managed his small talk; they went their separate ways.

'So father and Mr. Mynors are going into partnership,' she kept saying to herself on the way home.

'So Dad and Mr. Mynors are going into business together,' she kept telling herself on the way home.


[1] Bank: manufactory.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__] Bank: factory.

[2] Biscuit: a term applied to ware which has been fired only once.

[2] Biscuit: a term used for pottery that has been fired only once.




CHAPTER IV

A VISIT

The Special Teachers' Meeting to which Willie Price had referred was one of the final preliminaries to a Revival—that is, a revival of godliness and Christian grace—about to be undertaken by the Wesleyan Methodist Society in Bursley. Its object was to arrange for a personal visitation of the parents of Sunday-school scholars in their homes. Hitherto Anna had felt but little interest in the Revival: it had several times been brought indirectly before her notice, but she had regarded it as a phenomenon which recurred at intervals in the cycle of religious activity, and as not in any way affecting herself. The gradual centring of public interest, however—that mysterious movement which, defying analysis, gathers force as it proceeds, and ends by coercing the most indifferent—had already modified her attitude towards this forthcoming event. It got about that the preacher who had been engaged, a specialist in revivals, was a man of miraculous powers: the number of souls which he had snatched from eternal torment was precisely stated, and it amounted to tens of thousands. He played the cornet to the glory of God, and his cornet was of silver: his more distant past had been ineffably wicked, and the faint rumour of that dead wickedness clung to his name like a piquant odour. As Anna walked up Trafalgar Road from Price's she observed that the hoardings had been billed with great posters announcing the Revival and the revivalist, who was to commence his work on Friday night.

The Special Teachers' Meeting that Willie Price mentioned was one of the last steps towards a Revival—that is, a revival of faith and Christian values—set to take place by the Wesleyan Methodist Society in Bursley. Its purpose was to plan a personal visit to the homes of the parents of Sunday-school students. Until now, Anna had felt little interest in the Revival: it had been brought up a few times in passing, but she saw it as an event that happened occasionally in the cycle of religious activities and didn’t think it would affect her. However, the growing public interest—a mysterious wave that builds momentum as it goes, eventually overwhelming even the most indifferent—had begun to shift her perspective on this upcoming event. Word had spread that the preacher hired for the occasion, a revival expert, was a man with miraculous abilities: the number of souls he had saved from eternal damnation was specifically stated to be in the tens of thousands. He played the cornet for the glory of God, and his cornet was made of silver; his past was notoriously sinful, and the faint whispers of that past still lingered around his name like a captivating scent. As Anna walked up Trafalgar Road from Price's, she noticed that the billboards were plastered with large posters announcing the Revival and the revivalist, who was set to begin his work on Friday night.

During tea Mr. Tellwright interrupted his perusal of the evening 'Signal' to give utterance to a rather remarkable speech.

During tea, Mr. Tellwright paused in his reading of the evening 'Signal' to deliver a rather notable speech.

'Bless us!' he said. 'Th' old trumpeter 'll turn the town upside down!'

'Bless us!' he said. 'The old trumpeter will turn the town upside down!'

'Do you mean the revivalist, father?' Anna asked.

'Are you talking about the revivalist, Dad?' Anna asked.

'Ay!'

'Hey!'

'He's a beautiful man,' Agnes exclaimed with enthusiasm. 'Our teacher showed us his portrait after school this afternoon. I never saw such a beautiful man.'

'He’s a stunning man,' Agnes exclaimed excitedly. 'Our teacher showed us his portrait after school this afternoon. I’ve never seen such a beautiful man.'

Her father gazed hard at the child for an instant, cup in hand, and then turned to Anna with a slightly sardonic air.

Her father stared intensely at the child for a moment, cup in hand, and then looked at Anna with a hint of sarcasm.

'What are you doing i' this Revival, Anna?'

'What are you doing in this Revival, Anna?'

'Nothing,' she said. 'Only there's a teachers' meeting about it to-morrow night, and I have to go to that. Young Mr. Price mentioned it to me specially to-day.'

'Nothing,' she said. 'Just that there's a teachers' meeting about it tomorrow night, and I have to attend. Young Mr. Price specifically brought it up to me today.'

A pause followed.

A break followed.

'Didst get anything out o' Price?' Tellwright asked.

"Did you get anything out of Price?" Tellwright asked.

'Yes; he gave me ten pounds. He wants you to go and look over the works—says they're falling to pieces.'

'Yeah, he gave me ten pounds. He wants you to go check out the place—says it's falling apart.'

'Cheque, I reckon?'

'Check, I guess?'

She corrected the surmise.

She corrected the assumption.

'Better give me them notes, Anna,' he said after tea. 'I'm going to th' Bank i' th' morning, and I'll pay 'em in to your account.'

'Better give me those notes, Anna,' he said after tea. 'I'm going to the bank in the morning, and I'll deposit them into your account.'

There was no reason why she should not have suggested the propriety of keeping at least one of the notes for her private use. But she dared not. She had never any money of her own, not a penny; and the effective possession of five pounds seemed far too audacious a dream. She hesitated to imagine her father's reply to such a request, even to frame the request to herself. The thing, viewed close, was utterly impossible. And when she relinquished the notes she also, without being asked, gave up her cheque-book, deposit-book, and pass-book. She did this while ardently desiring to refrain from doing it, as it were under the compulsion of an invincible instinct. Afterwards she felt more at ease, as though some disturbing question had been settled once and for all.

There was no reason she couldn’t have suggested keeping at least one of the notes for her own use. But she didn’t dare. She never had any money of her own, not even a penny; the idea of actually having five pounds felt like an impossible dream. She couldn’t even imagine how her father would respond to such a request, let alone actually frame the request in her mind. When she thought about it closely, it seemed completely impossible. And when she handed over the notes, she also, without being asked, gave up her checkbook, deposit book, and passbook. She did this while really wanting to hold onto them, almost as if she were compelled by an uncontrollable instinct. Afterward, she felt more relaxed, as if some troubling issue had been settled once and for all.

During the whole of that evening she timorously expected Mynors, saying to herself however that he certainly would not call before Thursday. On Tuesday evening she started early for the teachers' meeting. Her intention was to arrive among the first and to choose a seat in obscurity, since she knew well that every eye would be upon her. She was divided between the desire to see Mynors and the desire to avoid the ordeal of being seen by her colleagues in his presence. She trembled lest she should be incapable of commanding her mien so as to appear unconscious of this inspection by curious eyes.

During the entire evening, she nervously waited for Mynors, telling herself that he definitely wouldn’t show up before Thursday. On Tuesday evening, she left early for the teachers' meeting. Her plan was to arrive early and pick a seat away from everyone since she knew all eyes would be on her. She felt torn between wanting to see Mynors and wanting to avoid the uncomfortable situation of being seen by her colleagues with him. She was anxious that she might not be able to keep her composure and look like she was unaware of the curious gazes on her.

The meeting was held in a large class-room, furnished with wooden seats, a chair and a small table. On the grey distempered walls hung a few Biblical cartoons depicting scenes in the life of Joseph and his brethren—but without reference to Potiphar's wife. From the whitewashed ceiling depended a T-shaped gas-fitting, one burner of which showed a glimmer, though the sun had not yet set. The evening was oppressively warm, and through the wide-open window came the faint effluvium of populous cottages and the distant but raucous cries of children at play. When Anna entered a group of young men were talking eagerly round the table; among these was Willie Price, who greeted her. No others had come: she sat down in a corner by the door, invisible except from within the room. Gradually the place began to fill. Then at last Mynors entered: Anna recognised his authoritative step before she saw him. He walked quickly to the chair in front of the table, and, including all in a friendly and generous smile, said that in the absence of Mr. Titus Price it fell to him to take the chair; he was glad that so many had made a point of being present. Everyone sat down. He gave out a hymn, and led the singing himself, attacking the first note with an assurance born of practice. Then he prayed, and as he prayed Anna gazed at him intently. He was standing up, the ends of his fingers pressed against the top of the table. Very carefully dressed as usual, he wore a brilliant new red necktie, and a gardenia in his button-hole. He seemed happy, wholesome, earnest, and unaffected. He had the elasticity of youth with the firm wisdom of age. And it was as if he had never been younger and would never grow older, remaining always at just thirty and in his prime. Incomparable to the rest, he was clearly born to lead. He fulfilled his functions with tact, grace, and dignity. In such an affair as this present he disclosed the attributes of the skilled workman, whose easy and exact movements are a joy and wonder to the beholder. And behind all was the man, his excellent and strong nature, his kindliness, his sincerity. Yes, to Anna, Mynors was perfect that night; the reality of him exceeded her dreamy meditations. Fearful on the brink of an ecstatic bliss, she could scarcely believe that from the enticements of a thousand women this paragon had been preserved for her. Like most of us, she lacked the high courage to grasp happiness boldly and without apprehension; she had not learnt that nothing is too good to be true.

The meeting took place in a big classroom, filled with wooden benches, a chair, and a small table. On the gray walls hung a few Biblical illustrations showing scenes from Joseph's life, excluding Potiphar's wife. From the whitewashed ceiling hung a T-shaped gas fixture, one burner flickering even though the sun hadn’t set yet. The evening was uncomfortably warm, and through the wide-open window came the faint smell of crowded cottages and the distant, loud sounds of children playing. When Anna walked in, a group of young men were animatedly discussing things at the table; among them was Willie Price, who greeted her. No one else had arrived yet, so she sat down in a corner by the door, mostly hidden from view. Slowly, the room started to fill up. Finally, Mynors entered: Anna recognized his confident footsteps before she saw him. He walked quickly to the chair in front of the table, and with a friendly and welcoming smile, announced that in the absence of Mr. Titus Price, he would chair the meeting; he was happy so many had made the effort to come. Everyone took their seats. He announced a hymn and led the singing himself, starting the first note with confidence from practice. Then he prayed, and as he prayed, Anna stared at him intently. He was standing with his fingertips resting on the table. Always dressed carefully, he wore a bright new red tie and a gardenia in his buttonhole. He seemed cheerful, healthy, sincere, and genuine. He had the energy of youth combined with the solid wisdom of age. It was as if he had never been younger and would never grow older, always remaining at thirty and in his prime. Unlike anyone else, he was clearly meant to lead. He carried out his duties with tact, grace, and dignity. In situations like this one, he revealed the qualities of a skilled craftsman, whose effortless yet precise movements are a joy to watch. And behind it all was the man himself, his strong and admirable character, his kindness, his honesty. Yes, to Anna, Mynors was perfect that night; the reality of him surpassed her dreamy thoughts. Fearful at the edge of overwhelming happiness, she could hardly believe that from the allure of a thousand women, this ideal man had been meant for her. Like most of us, she didn’t have the courage to seize happiness boldly and without fear; she hadn't learned that nothing is too good to be true.

Mynors' prayer was a cogent appeal for the success of the Revival. He knew what he wanted, and confidently asked for it, approaching God with humility but with self-respect. The prayer was punctuated by Amens from various parts of the room. The atmosphere became suddenly fervent, emotional and devout. Here was lofty endeavour, idealism, a burning spirituality; and not all the pettinesses unavoidable in such an organisation as a Sunday-school could hide the difference between this impassioned altruism and the ignoble selfishness of the worldly. Anna felt, as she had often felt before, but more acutely now, that she existed only on the fringe of the Methodist society. She had not been converted; technically she was a lost creature: the converted knew it, and in some subtle way their bearing towards her, and others in her case, always showed that they knew it. Why did she teach? Not from the impulse of religious zeal. Why was she allowed to have charge of a class of immortal souls? The blind could not lead the blind, nor the lost save the lost. These considerations troubled her. Conscience pricked, accusing her of a continual pretence. The rôle of professing Christian, through false shame, had seemed distasteful to her: she had said that she could never stand up and say, 'I am for Christ,' without being uncomfortable. But now she was ashamed of her inability to profess Christ. She could conceive herself proud and happy in the very part which formerly she had despised. It was these believers, workers, exhorters, wrestlers with Satan, who had the right to disdain; not she. At that moment, as if divining her thoughts, Mynors prayed for those among them who were not converted. She blushed, and when the prayer was finished she feared lest every eye might seek hers in inquiry; but no one seemed to notice her.

Mynors' prayer was a powerful request for the success of the Revival. He knew what he wanted and confidently asked for it, approaching God with humility but also with self-respect. The prayer was accompanied by Amens from different areas of the room. The atmosphere suddenly became intense, emotional, and devout. Here was noble ambition, idealism, a fervent spirituality; and not all the small issues that come with a Sunday-school could mask the contrast between this passionate selflessness and the petty selfishness of the worldly. Anna felt, as she often had before but more keenly now, that she existed only on the outskirts of the Methodist community. She had not been converted; technically, she was considered lost: the converted knew this, and in some subtle way, their attitude towards her and others in her situation always reflected that understanding. Why did she teach? Not out of religious enthusiasm. Why was she allowed to oversee a class of eternal souls? The blind couldn't lead the blind, nor could the lost save the lost. These thoughts troubled her. Her conscience nagged at her, accusing her of ongoing pretense. The role of professing Christian, out of false shame, had seemed unappealing to her: she had said she could never stand up and say, 'I am for Christ,' without feeling uncomfortable. But now she felt ashamed of her inability to profess Christ. She could imagine herself proud and happy in the very role that she had once scorned. It was these believers, workers, encouragers, fighters against Satan, who had the right to scorn; not her. At that moment, as if sensing her thoughts, Mynors prayed for those among them who were not converted. She blushed, and when the prayer ended, she feared that every eye might turn to hers in question; but no one seemed to notice her.

Mynors sat down, and, seated, began to explain the arrangements for the Revival. He made it plain that prayers without industry would not achieve success. His remarks revealed the fact that underneath the broad religious structure of the enterprise, and supporting it, there was a basis of individual diplomacy and solicitation. The town had been mapped out into districts, and each of these was being importuned, as at an election: by the thoroughness and instancy of this canvass, quite as much as by the intensity of prayerful desire, would Christ conquer. The affair was a campaign before it was a prostration at the Throne of Grace. He spoke of the children, saying that in connection with these they, the teachers, had at once the highest privilege and the most sacred responsibility. He told of a special service for the children, and the need of visiting them in their homes and inviting the parents also to this feast of God. He wished every teacher during to-morrow and the next day and the next day to go through the list of his or her scholars' names, and call if possible at every house. There must be no shirking. 'Will you ladies do that?' he exclaimed with an appealing, serious smile. 'Will you, Miss Dickinson? Will you, Miss Machin? Will you, Mrs. Salt? Will you, Miss Sutton? Will you——' Until at last it came: 'Will you, Miss Tellwright?' 'I will,' she answered, with averted eyes. 'Thank you. Thank you all.'

Mynors sat down and, once seated, began to explain the plans for the Revival. He made it clear that prayers alone wouldn’t lead to success without action. His comments highlighted that beneath the broad religious framework of the event, there was a foundation of individual diplomacy and effort. The town had been divided into districts, and each one was being approached, much like during an election campaign: the thoroughness and urgency of this outreach, along with the intensity of prayerful longing, would lead to Christ’s victory. This effort was more of a campaign than just a submission at the Throne of Grace. He mentioned the children, noting that in relation to them, the teachers had both the highest privilege and the most sacred duty. He talked about a special service for the children and the necessity of visiting them in their homes, inviting their parents to this feast of God. He wanted every teacher to go through the list of their students' names and, if possible, visit every house over the next few days. There must be no avoiding this task. 'Will you ladies do that?' he asked with an earnest, hopeful smile. 'Will you, Miss Dickinson? Will you, Miss Machin? Will you, Mrs. Salt? Will you, Miss Sutton? Will you——' Until finally it came: 'Will you, Miss Tellwright?' 'I will,' she replied, looking away. 'Thank you. Thank you all.'

Some others spoke, hopefully, enthusiastically, and one or two prayed. Then Mynors rose: 'May the blessing of God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost rest upon us now and for ever.' 'Amen,' someone ejaculated. The meeting was over.

Some others spoke with hope and enthusiasm, and one or two prayed. Then Mynors stood up: 'May the blessing of God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit be with us now and forever.' 'Amen,' someone exclaimed. The meeting was over.

Anna passed rapidly out of he door, down the Quadrangle, and into Trafalgar Road. She was the first to leave, daring not to stay in the room a moment. She had seen him; he had not altered since Sunday; there was no disillusion, but a deepening of the original impression. Caught up by the soaring of his spirit, her spirit lifted, and she was conscious of vague but intense longing skyward. She could not reason or think in that dizzying hour, but she made resolutions which had no verbal form, yielding eagerly to his influence and his appeal. Not till she had reached the bottom of Duck Bank and was breasting the first rise towards Bleakridge did her pace slacken. Then a voice called to her from behind. She recognised it, and turned sharply beneath the shock. Mynors raised his hat and greeted her.

Anna quickly stepped out the door, down the Quadrangle, and onto Trafalgar Road. She was the first one to leave, not daring to stay in the room for even a moment. She had seen him; he hadn’t changed since Sunday; there wasn't any disillusionment, just a deepening of her original impression. Lifted by his soaring spirit, her own spirit soared, and she felt a vague but intense longing for something greater. She couldn’t reason or think clearly in that dizzying moment, but she made resolutions that were unspoken, eagerly yielding to his influence and charm. It wasn't until she reached the bottom of Duck Bank and was climbing the first slope toward Bleakridge that her pace slowed. Then, a voice called out to her from behind. She recognized it and turned sharply in surprise. Mynors tipped his hat and greeted her.

'I'm coming to see your father,' he said.

'I'm here to see your dad,' he said.

'Yes?' she said, and gave him her hand.

'Yes?' she said, and held out her hand to him.

'It was a very satisfactory meeting to-night,' he began, and in a moment they were talking seriously of the Revival. With the most oblique delicacy, the most perfect assumption of equality between them, he allowed her to perceive his genuine and profound anxiety for her spiritual welfare. The atmosphere of the meeting was still round about him, the divine fire still uncooled. 'I hope you will come to the first service on Friday night,' he pleaded.

'It was a really satisfying meeting tonight,' he started, and soon they were seriously discussing the Revival. With the utmost subtlety and a perfect sense of equality between them, he let her see his genuine and deep concern for her spiritual well-being. The vibe of the meeting was still around him, the divine energy still alive. 'I hope you'll come to the first service on Friday night,' he urged.

'I must,' she replied. 'Oh, yes. I shall come.'

'I have to,' she said. 'Oh, definitely. I'll be there.'

'That is good,' he said. 'I particularly wanted your promise.'

'That’s great,' he said. 'I really wanted your promise.'

They were at the door of the house. Agnes, obviously expectant and excited, answered the bell. With an effort Anna and Mynors passed into a lighter mood.

They were at the door of the house. Agnes, clearly eager and excited, answered the doorbell. With some effort, Anna and Mynors managed to shift into a lighter mood.

'Father said you were coming, Mr. Mynors,' said Agnes, and, turning to Anna, 'I've set supper all myself.'

'Dad said you were coming, Mr. Mynors,' Agnes said, and turning to Anna, 'I made dinner all by myself.'

'Have you?' Mynors laughed. 'Capital! You must let me give you a kiss for that.' He bent down and kissed her, she holding up her face to his with no reluctance. Anna looked on, smiling.

'Have you?' Mynors laughed. 'Awesome! You have to let me give you a kiss for that.' He leaned down and kissed her, and she lifted her face to his without hesitation. Anna watched, smiling.

Mr. Tellwright sat near the window of the back parlour, reading the paper. Twilight was at hand. He lowered his head as Mynors entered with Agnes in train, so as to see over his spectacles, which were half-way down his nose.

Mr. Tellwright sat by the window in the back room, reading the newspaper. Twilight was approaching. He tilted his head as Mynors walked in with Agnes following, so he could see over his glasses, which were resting halfway down his nose.

'How d'ye do, Mr. Mynors? I was just going to begin my supper. I don't wait, you know,' and he glanced at the table.

'How do you do, Mr. Mynors? I was just about to start my dinner. I don't wait, you know,' and he looked at the table.

'Quite right,' said Mynors, 'so long as you wouldn't eat it all. Would he have eaten it all, Agnes, do you think?' Agnes pressed her head against Mynors' arm and laughed shyly. The old man sardonically chuckled.

'Exactly,' said Mynors, 'as long as you wouldn't eat it all. Do you think he would have eaten it all, Agnes?' Agnes leaned her head against Mynors' arm and laughed shyly. The old man chuckled sarcastically.

Anna, who was still in the passage, wondered what could be on the table. If it was only the usual morsel of cheese she felt that she should expire of mortification. She peeped: the cheese was at one end, and at the other a joint of beef, scarcely touched.

Anna, still in the hallway, wondered what might be on the table. If it was just the usual piece of cheese, she felt she would die of embarrassment. She peeked: the cheese was at one end, and at the other was a joint of beef, barely touched.

'Nay, nay,' said Tellwright, as if he had been engaged some seconds upon the joke, 'I'd have saved ye the bone.'

'Nah, nah,' said Tellwright, as if he had been thinking about the joke for a while, 'I'd have saved you the bone.'

Anna went upstairs to take off her hat, and immediately Agnes flew after her. The child was breathless with news.

Anna went upstairs to take off her hat, and right after her, Agnes rushed up. The kid was out of breath with excitement to share some news.

'Oh, Anna! As soon as you'd gone out father told me that Mr. Mynors was coming for supper. Did you know before?'

'Oh, Anna! As soon as you left, Dad told me that Mr. Mynors was coming for dinner. Did you know beforehand?'

'Not till Mr. Mynors told me, dear.' It was characteristic of her father to say nothing until the last moment.

'Not until Mr. Mynors told me, dear.' It was typical of her father to remain silent until the very last moment.

'Yes, and he told me to put an extra plate, and I asked him if I had better put the beef on the table, and first he said "No," cross—you know—and then he said I could please myself, so I put it on. Why has Mr. Mynors come, Anna?'

'Yes, and he told me to set an extra plate, and I asked him if I should put the beef on the table, and at first he said "No," annoyed—you know—and then he said I could decide for myself, so I put it on. Why did Mr. Mynors come, Anna?'

'How should I know? Some business between him and father, I expect.'

'How am I supposed to know? I guess there's some business going on between him and my dad.'

'It's very queer,' said Agnes positively, with the child's aptitude for looking a fact squarely in the face.

'It's really weird,' said Agnes confidently, with the child's ability to confront the truth directly.

'Why "queer"?'

'Why use "queer"?'

'You know it is, Anna,' she frowned, and then breaking into a joyous anile: 'But isn't he nice? I think he's lovely.'

'You know it is, Anna,' she frowned, and then breaking into a joyful smile: 'But isn't he great? I think he's wonderful.'

'Yes,' Anna assented coldly.

"Yes," Anna replied coldly.

'But really?' Agnes persisted.

'But seriously?' Agnes persisted.

Anna brushed her hair and determined not to put on the apron which she usually wore in the house.

Anna brushed her hair and decided not to put on the apron she usually wore at home.

'Am I tidy, Anna?'

"Am I organized, Anna?"

'Yes. Run downstairs now. I am coming directly.'

'Yes. Run downstairs now. I’ll be there right away.'

'I want to wait for you,' Agnes pouted.

'I want to wait for you,' Agnes said with a pout.

'Very well, dear.'

'Okay, dear.'

They entered the parlour together, and Henry Mynors jumped up from his chair, and would not sit at table until they were seated. Then Mr. Tellwright carved the beef, giving each of them a very small piece, and taking only cheese for himself. Agnes handed the water-jug and the bread. Mynors talked about nothing in especial, but he talked and laughed the whole time; he even made the old man laugh, by a comical phrase aimed at Agnes's mad passion for gilly-flowers. He seemed not to have detected any shortcomings in the table appointments—the coarse cloth and plates, the chipped tumblers, the pewter cruet, and the stumpy knives—which caused anguish in the heart of the housewife. He might have sat at such a table every night of his life.

They walked into the living room together, and Henry Mynors jumped up from his chair and wouldn’t sit down until they were settled. Then Mr. Tellwright carved the beef, giving each of them a very small piece, and chose only cheese for himself. Agnes passed around the water jug and the bread. Mynors talked about nothing specific but chatted and laughed the entire time; he even got the old man to laugh with a funny comment about Agnes’s crazy obsession with gilly-flowers. He didn’t seem to notice any flaws in the table setting—the rough cloth and plates, the chipped glasses, the pewter condiment set, and the short knives—that caused distress for the housewife. He could have sat at such a table every night of his life.

'May I trouble you for a little more beef?' he asked presently, and Anna fancied a shade of mischief in his tone as he thus forced the old man into a tardy hospitality. 'Thanks. And a morsel of fat.'

'Could I ask you for a bit more beef?' he asked after a moment, and Anna thought she detected a hint of mischief in his tone as he nudged the old man into a reluctant hospitality. 'Thanks. And a piece of fat.'

She wondered whether he guessed that she was worth fifty thousand pounds, and her father worth perhaps more.

She wondered if he realized she was worth fifty thousand pounds, and her father probably worth even more.

But on the whole Anna enjoyed the meal. She was sorry when they had finished and Agnes had thanked God for the beef. It was not without considerable reluctance that she rose and left the side of the man whose arm she could have touched at any time during the previous twenty minutes. She had felt happy and perturbed in being so near to him, so intimate and free; already she knew his face by heart. The two girls carried the plates and dishes into the kitchen, Agnes making the last journey with the tablecloth, which Mynors had assisted her to fold.

But overall, Anna enjoyed the meal. She felt a bit sad when they finished and Agnes said a prayer to thank God for the beef. With some hesitation, she got up and left the side of the man whose arm she could have reached out to touch at any moment in the last twenty minutes. She had felt both happy and uneasy being so close to him, so comfortable and free; already, she knew his face by heart. The two girls carried the plates and dishes into the kitchen, with Agnes making the last trip with the tablecloth, which Mynors had helped her fold.

'Shut the door, Agnes,' said the old man, getting up to light the gas. It was an order of dismissal to both his daughters. 'Let me light that,' Mynors exclaimed, and the gas was lighted before Mr. Tellwright had struck a match. Mynors turned on the full force of gas. Then Mr. Tellwright carefully lowered it. The summer quarter's gas-bill at that house did not exceed five shillings.

'Close the door, Agnes,' said the old man, standing up to turn on the gas. It was a signal for both of his daughters to leave. 'Let me handle that,' Mynors said, and the gas was lit before Mr. Tellwright could even strike a match. Mynors cranked up the gas to full power, and then Mr. Tellwright carefully turned it down. The gas bill for the summer quarter at that house was no more than five shillings.

Through the open windows of the kitchen and parlour, Anna could hear the voices of the two men in conversation, Mynors' vivacious and changeful, her father's monotonous, curt, and heavy. Once she caught the old man's hard dry chuckle. The washing-up was done, Agnes had accomplished her home-lessons; the grandfather's clock chimed the half-hour after nine.

Through the open windows of the kitchen and living room, Anna could hear the voices of the two men talking, Mynors' lively and unpredictable, her father's steady, abrupt, and heavy. Once she heard the old man's dry, harsh laugh. The dishes were done, Agnes had finished her homework; the grandfather clock chimed half-past nine.

'You must go to bed, Agnes.'

'You need to go to bed, Agnes.'

'Mustn't I say good-night to him?'

'Shouldn't I say good night to him?'

'No, I will say good-night for you.'

'No, I will say good night for you.'

'Don't forget to. I shall ask you in the morning.'

'Don't forget to. I'll ask you in the morning.'

The regular sound of talk still came from the parlour. A full moon passed along the cloudless sky. By its light and that of a glimmer of gas, Anna sat cleaning silver, or rather nickel, at the kitchen table. The spoons and forks were already clean, but she felt compelled to busy herself with something. At length the talk stopped and she heard the scraping of chair-legs. Should she return to the parlour? Or should she——? Even while she hesitated, the kitchen door opened.

The steady sound of conversation still came from the living room. A full moon moved across the clear sky. By its light and the faint glow of a gas lamp, Anna sat cleaning silver, or rather nickel, at the kitchen table. The spoons and forks were already spotless, but she felt the need to keep herself occupied. Eventually, the conversation faded, and she heard the scraping of chair legs. Should she go back to the living room? Or should she——? Even as she hesitated, the kitchen door swung open.

'Excuse me coming in here,' said Mynors. 'I wanted to say good-night to you.'

'Sorry to barge in here,' said Mynors. 'I just wanted to say goodnight to you.'

She sprang up and he took her hand. Could he feel the agitation of that hand?

She jumped up and he took her hand. Could he feel the anxiety in that hand?

'Good-night.'

'Goodnight.'

'Good-night.' He said it again.

'Good night.' He said it again.

'And Agnes wished me to say good-night to you for her.'

'And Agnes asked me to say good-night to you for her.'

'Did she?' He smiled; till then his face had been serious. 'You won't forget Friday?'

"Did she?" He smiled; up until then, his face had been serious. "You won't forget Friday?"

'As if I could!' she murmured after he had gone.

'As if I could!' she whispered after he had left.




CHAPTER V

THE REVIVAL

Anna spent the two following afternoons in visiting the houses of her school-children. She had no talent for such work, which demands the vocal rather than the meditative temperament, and the apparent futility of her labours would have disgusted and disheartened her had she not been sustained and urged forward by the still active influence of Mynors and the teachers' meeting. There were fifteen names in her class-book, and she went to each house, except four whose tenants were impeccable Wesleyan families and would have considered themselves insulted by a quasi-didactic visit from an upstart like Anna. Of the eleven, some parents were rude to her; others begged, and she had nothing to give; others made perfunctory promises; only two seemed to regard her as anything but a somewhat tiresome impertinence. The fault was doubtless her own. Nevertheless she found joy in the uncongenial and ill-performed task—the cold, fierce joy of the nun in her penance. When it was done she said 'I have done it,' as one who has sworn to do it come what might, yet without quite expecting to succeed.

Anna spent the next two afternoons visiting the homes of her students. She had no skill for this kind of work, which requires a more outgoing nature than a contemplative one, and the obvious pointlessness of her efforts would have frustrated and discouraged her if she hadn’t been pushed forward by the ongoing influence of Mynors and the teachers' meeting. There were fifteen names in her class book, and she visited each house except for four, whose residents were respectable Wesleyan families and would have felt insulted by a semi-educational visit from someone like Anna. Of the eleven homes she visited, some parents were rude to her; others pleaded for help, but she had nothing to offer; some made half-hearted promises; and only two treated her as anything more than an annoying intrusion. The fault was surely her own. Still, she found some joy in the unappealing and poorly executed task—the cold, fierce joy of a nun in her penance. When it was over, she said, "I have done it," like someone who has vowed to complete a task regardless of the outcome, yet without truly expecting to succeed.

On the Friday afternoon, during tea, a boy brought up a large foolscap packet addressed to Mr. Tellwright. 'From Mr. Mynors,' the boy said. Tellwright opened it leisurely after the boy had gone, and took out some sheets covered with figures which he carefully examined. 'Anna,' he said, as she was clearing away the tea things, 'I understand thou'rt going to the Revival meeting to-night. I shall have a message as thou mun give to Mr. Mynors.'

On Friday afternoon, during tea, a boy delivered a large envelope addressed to Mr. Tellwright. "From Mr. Mynors," the boy said. Tellwright opened it slowly after the boy left and took out some sheets filled with numbers that he carefully looked over. "Anna," he said, as she was clearing away the teacups, "I hear you're going to the Revival meeting tonight. I'll have a message for you to give to Mr. Mynors."

When she went upstairs to dress, she saw the Suttons' landau standing outside their house on the opposite side of the road. Mrs. Sutton came down the front steps and got into the carriage, and was followed by a little restless, nervous, alert man who carried in his hand a black case of peculiar form. 'The Revivalist!' Anna exclaimed, remembering that he was to stay with the Suttons during the Revival week. Then this was the renowned crusader, and the case held his renowned cornet! The carriage drove off down Trafalgar Road, and Anna could see that the little man was talking vehemently and incessantly to Mrs. Sutton, who listened with evident interest; at the same time the man's eyes were everywhere, absorbing all details of the street and houses with unquenchable curiosity.

When she went upstairs to get dressed, she noticed the Suttons' landau parked outside their house across the street. Mrs. Sutton came down the front steps and got into the carriage, followed by a small, restless, nervous man holding a uniquely shaped black case. "The Revivalist!" Anna exclaimed, remembering he would be staying with the Suttons during Revival week. So this was the famous crusader, and the case must contain his famous cornet! The carriage drove off down Trafalgar Road, and Anna could see the little man chatting animatedly and non-stop with Mrs. Sutton, who listened with clear interest; at the same time, his eyes were darting around, taking in every detail of the street and houses with insatiable curiosity.

'What is the message for Mr. Mynors, father?' she asked in the parlour, putting on her cotton gloves.

'What’s the message for Mr. Mynors, Dad?' she asked in the living room, putting on her cotton gloves.

'Oh!' he said, and then paused. 'Shut th' door, lass.'

'Oh!' he said, and then paused. 'Shut the door, girl.'

She shut it, not knowing what this cautiousness foreshadowed. Agnes was in the kitchen.

She closed it, unsure of what this caution meant. Agnes was in the kitchen.

'It's o' this'n,' Tellwright began. 'Young Mynors wants a partner wi' a couple o' thousand pounds, and he come to me. Ye understand; 'tis what they call a sleeping partner he's after. He'll give a third share in his concern for two thousand pound now. I've looked into it and there's money in it. He's no fool and he's gotten hold of a good thing. He sent me up his stock-taking and balance sheet to-day, and I've been o'er the place mysen. I'm telling thee this, lass, because I have na' two thousand o' my own idle just now, and I thought as thou might happen like th' investment.'

"It's about this," Tellwright started. "Young Mynors wants a partner with a couple of thousand pounds, and he came to me. You understand; he's looking for what they call a sleeping partner. He'll give a third share in his business for two thousand pounds now. I've checked it out, and there's money to be made. He's no fool, and he's picked up a good opportunity. He sent me his stock-taking and balance sheet today, and I've gone over everything myself. I'm telling you this, girl, because I don’t have two thousand of my own lying around right now, and I thought you might be interested in the investment."

'But father——'

'But dad——'

'Listen. I know as there's only four hundred o' thine in th' Bank now, but next week 'll see the beginning o' July and dividends coming in. I've reckoned as ye'll have nigh on fourteen hundred i' dividends and interests, and I can lend ye a couple o' hundred in case o' necessity. It's a rare chance; thou's best tak' it.'

Listen. I know there’s only four hundred of yours in the Bank right now, but next week is the start of July and dividends will be coming in. I’ve calculated that you’ll have nearly fourteen hundred in dividends and interest, and I can lend you a couple of hundred if you need it. It’s a great opportunity; you should definitely take it.

'Of course, if you think it's all right, father, that's enough,' she said without animation.

'Of course, if you think it's okay, Dad, that's all that matters,' she said without any enthusiasm.

'Am' na I telling thee I think it's all right?' he remarked sharply. 'You mun tell Mynors as I say it's satisfactory. Tell him that, see? I say it's satisfactory. I shall want for to see him later on. He told me he couldna' come up any night next week, so ask him to make it the week after. There's no hurry. Dunna' forget.'

'Am I telling you I think it's all good?' he said sharply. 'You need to tell Mynors that I said it's satisfactory. Tell him that, got it? I say it's satisfactory. I’ll want to see him later. He told me he couldn't come up any night next week, so ask him to make it the week after. There’s no rush. Don’t forget.'

What surprised Anna most in the affair was that Henry Mynors should have been able to tempt her father into a speculation. Ephraim Tellwright the investor was usually as shy as a well-fed trout, and this capture of him by a youngster only two years established in business might fairly be regarded as a prodigious feat. It was indeed the highest distinction of Mynors' commercial career. Henry was so prominently active in the Wesleyan Society that the members of that society, especially the women, were apt to ignore the other side of his individuality. They knew him supreme as a religious worker; they did not realise the likelihood of his becoming supreme in the staple manufacture. Left an orphan at seventeen, Mynors belonged to a family now otherwise extinct in the Five Towns—one of those families which by virtue of numbers, variety, and personal force seem to permeate a whole district, to be a calculable item of it, an essential part of its identity. The elders of the Mynors blood had once occupied the red house opposite Tellwright's, now used as a school, and had there reared many children: the school building was still known as 'Mynors's' by old-fashioned people. Then the parents died in middle age: one daughter married in the North, another in the South; a third went to China as a missionary and died of fever; the eldest son died; the second had vanished into Canada and was reported a scapegrace; the third was a sea-captain. Henry (the youngest) alone was left, and of all the family Henry was the only one to be connected with the earthenware trade. There was no inherited money, and during ten years he had worked for a large firm in Turnhill, as clerk, as traveller, and last as manager, living always quietly in lodgings. In the fullness of time he gave notice to leave, was offered a partnership, and refused it. Taking a newly erected manufactory in Bursley near the canal, he started in business for himself, and it became known that, at the age of twenty-eight, he had saved fifteen hundred pounds. Equally expert in the labyrinths of manufacture and in the niceties of the markets (he was reckoned a peerless traveller), Mynors inevitably flourished. His order-books were filled and flowing over at remunerative prices, and insufficiency of capital was the sole peril to which he was exposed. By the raising of a finger he could have had a dozen working and moneyed partners, but he had no desire for a working partner. What he wanted was a capitalist who had confidence in him, Mynors. In Ephraim Tellwright he found the man. Whether it was by instinct, good luck, or skilful diplomacy that Mynors secured this invaluable prize no one could positively say, and perhaps even he himself could not have catalogued all the obscure motives that had guided him to the shrewd miser of Manor Terrace.

What surprised Anna the most about the situation was that Henry Mynors had managed to tempt her father into an investment. Ephraim Tellwright, the investor, was usually as cautious as a well-fed trout, and this capture by a young man who had only been in business for two years was quite an achievement. It was indeed the pinnacle of Mynors's career. Henry was so active in the Wesleyan Society that its members, especially the women, tended to overlook other aspects of his character. They knew him primarily as a dedicated religious worker; they didn’t realize his potential to excel in the ceramics industry. Left an orphan at seventeen, Mynors came from a family that had become extinct in the Five Towns—a family that, due to its size, variety, and character, seemed to have a lasting impact on the area, becoming a notable part of its identity. The older Mynors family had once lived in the red house across from Tellwright's, which is now a school, where they raised many children; old-fashioned locals still referred to the school as "Mynors's." Then, the parents died in their middle age: one daughter married in the North, another in the South; a third went to China as a missionary and died of fever; the eldest son passed away; the second disappeared to Canada and was considered a troublemaker; the third became a sea captain. Henry (the youngest) was the last remaining, and he was the only one in the family connected to the ceramics trade. There was no inherited wealth, and for ten years he worked for a large firm in Turnhill as a clerk, a salesman, and finally a manager, living quietly in lodgings. Eventually, he gave notice and was offered a partnership, which he declined. Taking a newly built factory in Bursley near the canal, he started his own business, and it became known that, at just twenty-eight, he had saved fifteen hundred pounds. Equally skilled in manufacturing processes and market strategies (he was considered an exceptional salesman), Mynors thrived. His order books were overflowing with profitable sales, and the only risk he faced was a lack of capital. With just a gesture, he could have attracted numerous working partners, but he had no interest in one. What he wanted was an investor who believed in him, and in Ephraim Tellwright, he found that person. Whether Mynors secured this valuable partnership through instinct, fortune, or savvy negotiation was unclear, and perhaps even he couldn’t identify all the hidden motivations that led him to the shrewd miser of Manor Terrace.

Anna had meant to reach chapel before the commencement of the meeting, but the interview with her father threw her late. As she entered the porch an officer told her that the body of the chapel was quite full and that she should go into the gallery, where a few seats were left near the choir. She obeyed: pew-holders had no rights at that service. The scene in the auditorium astonished her, effectually putting an end to the worldly preoccupation caused by her father's news. The historic chapel was crowded almost in every part, and the congregation—impressed, excited, eager—sang the opening hymn with unprecedented vigour and sincerity; above the rest could be heard the trained voices of a large choir, and even the choir, usually perfunctory, seemed to share the general fervour. In the vast mahogany pulpit the Reverend Reginald Banks, the superintendent minister, a stout pale-faced man with pendent cheeks and cold grey eyes, stood impassively regarding the assemblage, and by his side was the revivalist, a manikin in comparison with his colleague; on the broad balustrade of the pulpit lay the cornet. The fiery and inquisitive eyes of the revivalist probed into the furthest corners of the chapel; apparently no detail of any single face or of the florid decoration escaped him, and as Anna crept into a small empty pew next to the east wall she felt that she too had been separately observed. Mr. Banks gave out the last verse of the hymn, and simultaneously with the leading chord from the organ the revivalist seized his cornet and joined the melody. Massive yet exultant, the tones rose clear over the mighty volume of vocal sound, an incitement to victorious effort. The effect was instant: an ecstatic tremor seemed to pass through the congregation, like wind through ripe corn, and at the close of the hymn it was not until the revivalist had put down his cornet that the people resumed their seats. Amid the frou-frou of dresses and subdued clearing of throats, Mr. Banks retired softly to the back of the pulpit, and the revivalist, mounting a stool, suddenly dominated the congregation. His glance swept masterfully across the chapel and round the gallery. He raised one hand with the stilling action of a mesmerist, and the people, either kneeling or inclined against the front of the pews, hid their faces from those eyes. It was as though the man had in a moment measured their iniquities, and had courageously resolved to intercede for them with God, but was not very sanguine as to the result. Everyone except the organist, who was searching his tune-book for the next tune, seemed to feel humbled, bitterly ashamed, as it were caught in the act of sin. There was a solemn and terrible pause.

Anna had planned to get to chapel before the meeting started, but her talk with her father made her late. When she walked into the porch, an officer informed her that the main part of the chapel was pretty full and suggested she head to the gallery, where a few seats were still available near the choir. She complied: pew-holders had no special rights for that service. The scene in the auditorium shocked her, effectively distracting her from the worries brought on by her father's news. The historic chapel was packed almost everywhere, and the congregation—impressed, excited, eager—sang the opening hymn with an intensity and sincerity she had never seen before; above all, the trained voices of a large choir were loud, and even the choir, usually routine, seemed to catch the overall enthusiasm. In the grand mahogany pulpit stood the Reverend Reginald Banks, the superintendent minister, a stout, pale-faced man with drooping cheeks and cold grey eyes, staring impassively at the crowd. Next to him was the revivalist, a small man compared to his colleague; on the wide balustrade of the pulpit rested the cornet. The fiery and inquisitive eyes of the revivalist scanned every corner of the chapel; it seemed like no detail of anyone's face or the elaborate decorations escaped him, and as Anna slipped into a small empty pew beside the east wall, she felt as if she too was being scrutinized. Mr. Banks announced the last verse of the hymn, and just as the organ played its leading chord, the revivalist grabbed his cornet and joined the melody. Powerful yet uplifting, the tones soared clearly above the massive vocal sound, encouraging everyone to give their all. The impact was immediate: an ecstatic shiver seemed to flow through the congregation, like a breeze across ripe corn, and when the hymn ended, it was only after the revivalist lowered his cornet that the people settled back into their seats. Amid the rustling of dresses and quiet throat clearing, Mr. Banks quietly moved to the back of the pulpit, while the revivalist climbed onto a stool, suddenly commanding the congregation's attention. His gaze swept authoritatively across the chapel and around the gallery. He raised one hand with a calming gesture, and the people, either kneeling or leaning against the front of the pews, hid their faces from his eyes. It felt as though he had, in an instant, assessed their wrongdoings and boldly decided to plead with God on their behalf, though he didn't seem very hopeful about the outcome. Everyone except the organist, who was looking through his tune book for the next song, seemed to feel humbled, deeply ashamed, as if caught in the act of wrongdoing. There was a heavy and chilling pause.

Then the revivalist began:

Then the revivalist started:

'Behold us, O dread God, suppliants for Thy mercy—'

'Look upon us, O fearsome God, as we plead for Your mercy—'

His voice was rich and full, but at the same time sharp and decisive. The burning eyes were shut tight, and Anna, who had a profile view of his face, saw that every muscle of it was drawn tense. The man possessed an extraordinary histrionic gift, and he used it with imagination. He had two audiences, God and the congregation. God was not more distant from him than the congregation, or less real to him, or less a heart to be influenced. Declamatory and full of effects carefully calculated—a work of art, in fact—his appeal showed no error of discretion in its approach to the Eternal. There was no minimising of committed sin, nor yet an insincere and grovelling self-accusation. A tyrant could not have taken offence at its tone, which seemed to pacify God while rendering the human audience still more contrite. The conclusion of the catalogue of wickedness and swift confident turn to Christ's Cross was marvellously impressive. The congregation burst out into sighs, groans, blessings, and Amens; and the pillars of distant rural conventicles who had travelled from the confines of the circuit to its centre in order to partake of this spiritual excitation began to feel that they would not be disappointed.

His voice was rich and full, but also sharp and decisive. The burning eyes were tightly shut, and Anna, who had a side view of his face, noticed that every muscle was tense. The man had an extraordinary talent for performance, which he used creatively. He had two audiences: God and the congregation. God was just as close to him as the congregation, equally real, and equally a heart to be moved. His speech was dramatic and full of carefully crafted effects—it was a work of art, really. His appeal made no mistakes in its approach to the Eternal. There was no downplaying of sin, nor any insincere self-blame. A tyrant couldn't have been offended by its tone, which seemed to appease God while making the human audience even more contrite. The way he wrapped up the list of wrongdoings and confidently directed them to Christ's Cross was incredibly moving. The congregation erupted into sighs, groans, blessings, and Amens; and the attendees from far-off rural areas who had traveled to this gathering to experience this spiritual uplift began to feel that they would not be let down.

'Let the Holy Ghost descend upon us now,' the revivalist pleaded with restrained passion; and then, opening his eyes and looking at the clock in front of the gallery, he repeated, 'Now, now, at twenty-one minutes past seven.' Then his eyes, without shifting, seemed to ignore the clock, to gaze through it into some unworldly dimension, and he murmured in a soft dramatic whisper: 'I see the Divine Dove!——'

'Let the Holy Spirit come upon us now,' the revivalist urged with controlled passion; and then, opening his eyes and glancing at the clock in front of the gallery, he said again, 'Now, now, at twenty-one minutes past seven.' Then his gaze, without moving, seemed to overlook the clock, staring through it into some otherworldly realm, and he whispered softly and dramatically: 'I see the Divine Dove!——'

The doors, closed during prayer, were opened, and more people entered. A youth came into Anna's pew.

The doors that had been closed during prayer swung open, and more people came in. A young man walked into Anna's pew.

The superintendent minister gave out another hymn, and when this was finished the revivalist, who had been resting in a chair, came forward again. 'Friends and fellow-sinners,' he said, 'a lot of you, fools that you are, have come here to-night to hear me play my cornet. Well, you have heard me. I have played the cornet, and I will play it again. I would play it on my head if by so doing I could bring sinners to Christ. I have been called a mountebank. I am one. I glory in it. I am God's mountebank, doing God's precious business in my own way. But God's precious business cannot be carried on, even by a mountebank, without money, and there will be a collection towards the expenses of the Revival. During the collection we will sing "Rock of Ages," and you shall hear my cornet again. If you feel willing to give us your sixpences, give; but if you resent a collection,' here he adopted a tone of ferocious sarcasm, 'keep your miserable sixpences and get sixpenny-worth of miserable enjoyment out of them elsewhere.'

The superintendent minister called for another hymn, and once that was done, the revivalist, who had been resting in a chair, stepped forward again. “Friends and fellow-sinners,” he said, “many of you, foolish as you are, came here tonight to hear me play my cornet. Well, you’ve heard me. I’ve played the cornet, and I will play it again. I’d play it on my head if it would bring sinners to Christ. People have called me a fraud. I own it. I take pride in it. I’m God’s fraud, doing God’s important work in my own way. But God’s important work can’t happen, even with a fraud, without money, and there will be a collection to cover the Revival expenses. During the collection, we’ll sing 'Rock of Ages,' and you’ll hear my cornet again. If you’re willing to share your sixpences, please do; but if you’re against the collection,” here he shifted to a tone of fierce sarcasm, “keep your pathetic sixpences and spend them elsewhere for a bit of miserable enjoyment.”

As the meeting proceeded, submitting itself more and more to the imperious hypnotism of the revivalist, Anna gradually became oppressed by a vague sensation which was partly sorrow and partly an inexplicable dull anger—anger at her own penitence. She felt as if everything was wrong and could never by any possibility be righted. After two exhortations, from the minister and the revivalist, and another hymn, the revivalist once more prayed, and as he did so Anna looked stealthily about in a sick, preoccupied way. The youth at her side stared glumly in front of him. In the orchestra Henry Mynors was whispering to the organist. Down in the body of the chapel the atmosphere was electric, perilous, overcharged with spiritual emotion. She was glad she was not down there. The voice of the revivalist ceased, but he kept the attitude of supplication. Sobs were heard in various quarters, and here and there an elder of the chapel could be seen talking quietly to some convicted sinner. The revivalist began softly to sing 'Jesu, lover of my soul,' and most of the congregation, standing up, joined him; but the sinners stricken of the Spirit remained abjectly bent, tortured by conscience, pulled this way by Christ and that by Satan. A few rose and went to the Communion rails, there to kneel in the sight of all. Mr. Banks descended from the pulpit and opening the wicket which led to the Communion table spoke to these over the rails, reassuringly, as a nurse to a child. Other sinners, desirous of fuller and more intimate guidance, passed down the aisles and so into the preacher's vestry at the eastern end of the chapel, and were followed thither by class-leaders and other proved servants of God: among these last were Titus Price and Mr. Sutton.

As the meeting went on, becoming more and more influenced by the powerful charisma of the revivalist, Anna gradually felt overwhelmed by a strange mix of sadness and an unidentifiable, dull anger—anger at her own remorse. She sensed that everything was wrong and could never possibly be fixed. After two speeches from the minister and the revivalist, and another hymn, the revivalist prayed again, and as he did, Anna glanced around furtively, feeling sick and distracted. The young man next to her stared blankly ahead. In the orchestra, Henry Mynors was whispering to the organist. Down in the main area of the chapel, the atmosphere was charged, intense, heavy with spiritual emotion. She was relieved she wasn’t down there. The revivalist's voice faded, but he maintained a posture of prayer. Sobs could be heard from various corners, and now and then, an elder from the chapel could be seen quietly speaking to a contrite sinner. The revivalist began softly singing 'Jesu, lover of my soul,' and most of the congregation stood up to join him; however, the sinners troubled by the Spirit remained hunched over, tortured by their conscience, pulled in different directions by Christ and Satan. A few people stood up and went to the Communion rails, kneeling in front of everyone. Mr. Banks came down from the pulpit and, opening the gate that led to the Communion table, spoke to them reassuringly, like a nurse to a child. Other sinners, seeking deeper and more personal guidance, made their way down the aisles into the preacher's vestry at the east end of the chapel, followed by class leaders and other trusted servants of God, including Titus Price and Mr. Sutton.

'The blood of Christ atones,' said the revivalist solemnly at the end of the hymn. 'The spirit of Christ is working among us. Let us engage in private prayer. Let us drive the devil out of this chapel.'

'The blood of Christ saves us,' said the revivalist seriously at the end of the hymn. 'The spirit of Christ is active among us. Let’s take a moment for private prayer. Let’s cast the devil out of this chapel.'

More sighs and groans followed. Then someone cried out in sharp, shrill tones, 'Praise Him;' and another cried, 'Praise Him;' and an old woman's quavering voice sang the words, 'I know that my Redeemer liveth.' Anna was in despair at her own predicament, and the sense of sin was not more strong than the sense of being confused and publicly shamed. A man opened the pew-door, and sitting down by the youth's side began to talk with him. It was Henry Mynors. Anna looked steadily away, at the wall, fearful lest he should address her too. Presently the youth got up with a frenzied gesture and walked out of the gallery, followed by Mynors. In a moment she saw the youth stepping awkwardly along the aisle beneath, towards the inquiry room, his head forward, and the lower lip hanging as though he were sulky.

More sighs and groans filled the air. Then someone shouted in sharp, high-pitched tones, "Praise Him!" and another echoed, "Praise Him!" An old woman's shaky voice sang the words, "I know that my Redeemer lives." Anna felt hopeless about her own situation, and the weight of her sin was matched only by her sense of confusion and public shame. A man opened the pew door and sat down beside the young man, starting a conversation. It was Henry Mynors. Anna looked away at the wall, worried he might speak to her as well. Soon, the young man stood up with a frantic gesture and walked out of the gallery, followed by Mynors. In a moment, she saw the young man awkwardly making his way down the aisle below, heading toward the inquiry room, his head down and his lower lip pouting as if he were sulking.

Anna was now in the profoundest misery. The weight of her sins, of her ingratitude to God, lay on her like a physical and intolerable load, and she lost all feeling of shame, as a sea-sick voyager loses shame after an hour of nausea. She knew then that she could no longer go on living as aforetime. She shuddered at the thought of her tremendous responsibility to Agnes—Agnes who took her for perfection. She recollected all her sins individually—lies, sloth, envy, vanity, even theft in her infancy. She heaped up all the wickedness of a lifetime, hysterically augmented it, and found a horrid pleasure in the exaggeration. Her virtuous acts shrank into nothingness.

Anna was now in deep despair. The burden of her sins and her ingratitude to God weighed on her like an unbearable load, and she lost all sense of shame, just like a seasick traveler loses shame after an hour of nausea. She realized she could no longer live as she had before. The thought of her huge responsibility to Agnes—who saw her as perfect—sent shivers down her spine. She recalled all her sins one by one—lies, laziness, envy, vanity, even stealing as a child. She gathered up all the wrongs of her life, exaggerated them in a panic, and found a disturbing pleasure in the exaggeration. Her virtuous deeds seemed to vanish into nothing.

A man, and then another, emerged from the vestry door with beaming, happy face. These were saved; they had yielded to Christ's persuasive invitation. Anna tried to imagine herself converted, or in the process of being converted. She could not. She could only sit moveless, dull, and abject. She did not stir, even when the congregation rose for another hymn. In what did conversion consist? Was it to say the words, 'I believe'? She repeated to herself softly, 'I believe; I believe.' But nothing happened. Of course she believed. She had never doubted, or dreamed of doubting, that Jesus died on the Cross to save her soul—her soul—from eternal damnation. She was probably unaware that any person in Christendom had doubted that fact so fundamental to her. What, then, was lacking? What was belief? What was faith?

A man, followed by another, came out from the vestry door with bright, happy faces. They were saved; they had accepted Christ's compelling invitation. Anna tried to picture herself converted, or in the process of being converted. She couldn’t. All she could do was sit still, feeling dull and defeated. She didn’t move, even when the congregation stood up for another hymn. What did conversion really mean? Was it just saying the words, "I believe"? She quietly repeated to herself, "I believe; I believe." But nothing changed. Of course she believed. She had never doubted or even considered doubting that Jesus died on the Cross to save her soul—her soul—from eternal damnation. She probably didn’t realize that anyone in Christianity could doubt such a fundamental truth to her. So what was missing? What was belief? What was faith?

A venerable class-leader came from the vestry, and, slowly climbing the pulpit stairs, whispered in the ear of the revivalist. The latter faced the congregation with a cry of joy. 'Lord,' he exclaimed, 'we bless Thee that seventeen souls have found Thee! Lord, let the full crop be gathered, for the fields are white unto harvest.' There was an exuberant chorus of praise to God.

A respected class leader came from the back room and, slowly climbing the pulpit stairs, whispered in the revivalist's ear. The revivalist turned to the congregation with a joyful shout. "Lord," he exclaimed, "we thank You that seventeen souls have found You! Lord, let the full harvest be gathered, for the fields are ripe for picking." The congregation broke into an enthusiastic chorus of praise to God.

The door of the pew was opened gently, and Anna started to see Mrs. Sutton at her side. She at once guessed that Mynors had sent to her this angel of consolation.

The door of the pew was opened softly, and Anna noticed Mrs. Sutton next to her. She immediately suspected that Mynors had sent her this angel of comfort.

'Are you near the light, dear Anna?' Mrs. Sutton began.

'Are you close to the light, dear Anna?' Mrs. Sutton started.

Anna searched for an answer. She now sat huddled up in the corner of the pew, her face partially turned towards Mrs. Sutton, who looked mildly into her eyes. 'I don't know,' Anna stammered, feeling like a naughty school-girl. A doubt whether the whole affair was not after all absurd flashed through her, and was gone.

Anna searched for an answer. She sat curled up in the corner of the pew, her face partly turned toward Mrs. Sutton, who was looking gently into her eyes. "I don’t know," Anna stammered, feeling like a naughty schoolgirl. A fleeting doubt about whether the whole situation was, after all, ridiculous crossed her mind and quickly vanished.

'But it is quite simple,' said Mrs. Sutton. 'I cannot tell you anything that you do not know. Cast out pride. Cast out pride—that is it. Nothing but earthly pride prevents you from realising the saving power of Christ. You are afraid, Anna, afraid to be humble. Be brave. It is so simple, so easy. If one will but submit.'

'But it's really simple,' Mrs. Sutton said. 'I can't tell you anything you don't already know. Let go of your pride. Let go of your pride—that's the key. Nothing but worldly pride is stopping you from seeing the saving power of Christ. You're afraid, Anna, afraid to be humble. Be brave. It's so simple, so easy. If you just submit.'

Anna said nothing, had nothing to say, was conscious of nothing save excessive discomfort.

Anna said nothing, had nothing to say, and was aware of nothing except for her overwhelming discomfort.

'Where do you feel your difficulty to be?' asked Mrs. Sutton.

'Where do you think your difficulty lies?' asked Mrs. Sutton.

'I don't know,' she answered wearily.

"I don't know," she replied wearily.

'The happiness that awaits you is unspeakable. I have followed Christ for nearly fifty years, and my happiness increases daily. Sometimes I do not know how to contain it all. It surges above all the trials and disappointments of this world. Oh, Anna, if you will but believe!'

'The happiness that awaits you is beyond words. I've followed Christ for nearly fifty years, and my happiness grows every day. Sometimes I don’t know how to hold it all in. It rises above all the challenges and disappointments of this world. Oh, Anna, if only you would believe!'

The ageing woman's thin, distinguished face, crowned with abundant grey hair, glistened with love and compassion, and as Anna's eyes rested upon it Anna felt that here was something tangible, something to lay hold on.

The older woman's thin, distinguished face, topped with plenty of grey hair, shone with love and compassion, and as Anna's eyes focused on it, she felt that there was something real, something she could cling to.

'I think I do believe,' she said weakly.

'I think I believe,' she said weakly.

'You "think"? Are you sure? Are you not deceiving yourself? Belief is not with the lips: it is with the heart.'

'You "think"? Are you sure? Are you just kidding yourself? Belief isn’t just about what you say; it’s about what you feel deep down.'

There was a pause. Mr. Banks could be heard praying.

There was a pause. Mr. Banks could be heard praying.

'I will go home,' Anna whispered at length, 'and think it out for myself.'

'I’m going home,' Anna whispered eventually, 'and I'll figure it out for myself.'

'Do, my dear girl, and God will help you.'

'Go ahead, my dear girl, and God will help you.'

Mrs. Sutton bent and kissed Anna affectionately, and then hurried away to offer her ministrations elsewhere. As Anna left the chapel, she encountered the chapel-keeper pacing regularly to and fro across the length of the broad steps. In the porch was a notice that cabinet photographs of the revivalist could be purchased on application, at one shilling each.

Mrs. Sutton leaned down and gave Anna a warm kiss, then quickly went off to help others. As Anna exited the chapel, she saw the chapel-keeper walking back and forth across the wide steps. In the entrance, there was a sign saying that you could buy cabinet photographs of the revivalist upon request, for one shilling each.




CHAPTER VI

WILLIE

Anna closed the bedroom door softly; through the open window came the tones of Cauldon Church clock, famous for their sonority, and richness, announcing eleven. Agnes lay asleep under the blue-and-white counterpane, on the side of the bed next the wall, the bed-clothes pushed down and disclosing the upper half of her night-gowned figure. She slept in absolute repose, with flushed cheek and every muscle lax, her hair by some chance drawn in a perfect straight line diagonally across the pillow. Anna glanced at her sister, the image of physical innocence and childish security, and then, depositing the candle, went to the window and looked out.

Anna quietly closed the bedroom door; through the open window, the sounds of Cauldon Church clock, known for its deep and rich tones, announced eleven. Agnes was asleep under the blue-and-white bedspread, on the side of the bed next to the wall, the covers pushed down and revealing the upper half of her nightgown-clad figure. She slept peacefully, her cheek flushed and every muscle relaxed, her hair, by some chance, drawn in a perfect straight line diagonally across the pillow. Anna looked at her sister, the picture of physical innocence and childlike security, and then, setting down the candle, went to the window to look outside.

The bedroom was over the kitchen and faced south. The moon was hidden by clouds, but clear stretches of sky showed thick-studded clusters of stars brightly winking. To the far right across the fields the silhouette of Hillport Church could just be discerned on the ridge. In front, several miles away, the blast-furnaces of Cauldon Bar Ironworks shot up vast wreaths of yellow flame with canopies of tinted smoke. Still more distant were a thousand other lights crowning chimney and kiln, and nearer, on the waste lands west of Bleakridge, long fields of burning ironstone glowed with all the strange colours of decadence. The entire landscape was illuminated and transformed by these unique pyrotechnics of labour atoning for its grime, and dull, weird sounds, as of the breathings and sighings of gigantic nocturnal creatures, filled the enchanted air. It was a romantic scene, a romantic summer night, balmy, delicate, and wrapped in meditation. But Anna saw nothing there save the repulsive evidences of manufacture, had never seen anything else.

The bedroom was above the kitchen and faced south. The moon was covered by clouds, but clear patches of sky revealed thick clusters of stars twinkling brightly. To the far right across the fields, you could just make out the outline of Hillport Church on the ridge. In front, several miles away, the blast furnaces of Cauldon Bar Ironworks shot up huge plumes of yellow flames with billowing smoke. Even farther away were countless other lights atop chimneys and kilns, and closer, on the barren lands west of Bleakridge, long fields of burning ironstone glowed with all the unusual colors of decay. The whole landscape was lit up and transformed by these unique displays of labor making up for its grime, and dull, strange sounds, like the breathing and sighing of massive nocturnal creatures, filled the enchanted air. It was a romantic scene, a romantic summer night—warm, delicate, and full of contemplation. But Anna saw nothing there except the disgusting signs of manufacturing; she had never seen anything else.

She was still horribly, acutely miserable, exhausted by the fruitless search for some solution of the enigma of sin—her sin in particular—and of redemption. She had cogitated in a vain circle until she was no longer capable of reasoned ideas. She gazed at the stars and into the illimitable spaces beyond them, and thought of life and its inconceivable littleness, as millions had done before in the presence of that same firmament. Then, after a time, her brain resumed its nightmare-like task. She began to probe herself anew. Would it have availed if she had walked publicly to the penitential form at the Communion rail, and, ranging herself with the working men and women, proved by that overt deed the sincerity of her contrition? She wished ardently that she had done so, yet knew well that such an act would always be impossible for her, even though the evasion of it meant eternal torture. Undoubtedly, as Mrs. Sutton had implied, she was proud, stiff-necked, obstinate in iniquity.

She was still incredibly, painfully miserable, worn out from the pointless search for some answer to the puzzle of sin—her sin, specifically—and redemption. She had thought in circles until she could no longer form rational ideas. She stared at the stars and the endless spaces beyond them, reflecting on life and its unimaginable insignificance, just like millions had done before under that same sky. After a while, her mind went back to its tormenting work. She started to examine herself again. Would it have made a difference if she had publicly walked to the penitential form at the Communion rail, standing with the working men and women, proving her sincere remorse through that visible act? She desperately wished she had done it, yet knew deep down that such an act would always be impossible for her, even though avoiding it meant eternal suffering. Undoubtedly, as Mrs. Sutton had suggested, she was proud, stubborn, and resistant to change.

Agnes stirred slightly in her sleep, and Anna, aroused, dropped the blind, turned towards the room and began to undress, slowly, with reflective pauses. Her melancholy became grim, sardonic; if she was doomed to destruction, so let it be. Suddenly, half-glad, she knelt down and prayed, prayed that pride might be cast out, burying her face in the coverlet and caging the passionate effusion in a whisper lest Agnes should be disturbed. Having prayed, she still knelt quiescent; her eyes were dry and burning. The last car thundered up the road, shaking the house, and she rose, finished undressing, blew out the candle, and slipped into bed by Agnes's side.

Agnes stirred a bit in her sleep, and Anna, waking up, pulled down the blind, turned towards the room, and started to undress slowly, pausing to think. Her sadness turned dark and sarcastic; if she was meant to be destroyed, then so be it. Suddenly, feeling a mix of emotions, she knelt down and prayed, asking for her pride to be removed, burying her face in the blanket and keeping her passionate words quiet so Agnes wouldn’t wake up. After praying, she stayed on her knees, still and silent; her eyes felt dry and hot. The last bus rumbled down the road, shaking the house, and she stood up, finished undressing, blew out the candle, and slipped into bed next to Agnes.

She could not sleep, did not attempt to sleep, but abandoned herself meekly to despair. Her thoughts covered again the interminable round, and again, and yet again. In the twilight of the brief summer night her accustomed eyes could distinguish every object in the room, all the bits of furniture which had been bought from Hanbridge and with which she had been familiar since her memory began: everything appeared mean, despicable, cheerless; there was nothing to inspire. She dreamed impossibly of a high spirituality which should metamorphose all, change her life, lend glamour to the most pitiful surroundings, ennoble the most ignominious burdens—a spirituality never to be hers.

She couldn't sleep, didn't even try to sleep, but quietly gave in to despair. Her thoughts went round and round, over and over again. In the dim light of the short summer night, her familiar eyes could make out every object in the room, all the pieces of furniture she had known since she could remember, all bought from Hanbridge; everything seemed small, worthless, dull; there was nothing to inspire her. She dreamed unrealistically of a higher spirituality that could change everything, transform her life, bring glamour to the most miserable surroundings, and elevate the most shameful burdens—a spirituality that would never belong to her.

At any rate she would tell her father in the morning that she was convicted of sin, and, however hopelessly, seeking salvation; she would tell both her father and Agnes at breakfast. The task would be difficult, but she swore to do it. She resolved, she endeavoured to sleep, and did sleep uneasily for a short period. When she woke the great business of the dawn had begun. She left the bed, and drawing up the blind looked forth. The furnace fires were paling; a few milky clouds sailed in the vast pallid blue. It was cool just then, and she shivered. She went to the glass, and examined her face carefully, but it gave no signs whatever of the inward warfare. She saw her plain and mended night-gown. Suppose she were married to Mynors! Suppose he lay asleep in the bed where Agnes lay asleep! Involuntarily she glanced at Agnes to certify that the child and none else was indeed there, and got into bed hurriedly and hid herself because she was ashamed to have had such a fancy. But she continued to think of Mynors. She envied him for his cheerfulness, his joy, his goodness, his dignity, his tact, his sex. She envied every man. Even in the sphere of religion, men were not fettered like women. No man, she thought, would acquiesce in the futility to which she was already half resigned; a man would either wring salvation from the heavenly powers or race gloriously to hell. Mynors—Mynors was a god!

At any rate, she would tell her father in the morning that she felt guilty and was, despite feeling hopeless, seeking redemption; she would share this with both her father and Agnes at breakfast. The task would be tough, but she promised herself she would do it. She resolved to try to sleep, and managed to drift off uneasily for a short time. When she woke up, the day was already beginning. She got out of bed, pulled up the blind, and looked outside. The furnace fires were fading; a few milky clouds floated in the vast pale blue sky. It was cool at that moment, and she shivered. She went to the mirror and examined her face closely, but it showed no signs of the internal struggle. She noticed her plain, patched nightgown. What if she were married to Mynors? What if he were sleeping in the bed where Agnes was? Unconsciously, she glanced at Agnes to confirm that the child was indeed there, then hurried back under the covers, feeling embarrassed about her thoughts. But she couldn’t help but think about Mynors. She envied him for his happiness, joy, kindness, dignity, tact, and masculinity. She envied every man. Even in the realm of religion, men weren’t as restricted as women. No man, she thought, would accept the futility that she was already partially resigned to; a man would either wrest salvation from the heavenly powers or boldly race to hell. Mynors—Mynors was like a god!

She recollected her resolution to speak to her father and Agnes at breakfast, and shudderingly confirmed it, but less stoutly than before. Then an announcement made by Mr. Banks in chapel on the previous evening presented itself, as though she was listening to it for the first time. It was the announcement of a prayer-meeting for workers in the Revival, to be held that (Saturday) morning at seven o'clock. She instantly decided to go to the meeting, and the decision seemed to give her new hope. Perhaps there she might find peace. On that faint expectancy she fell asleep again and did not wake till half-past six, after her usual hour. She heard noises in the yard; it was her father going towards the garden with a wheelbarrow. She dressed quickly, and when she had pinned on her hat she woke Agnes.

She remembered her decision to talk to her dad and Agnes at breakfast, and nervously confirmed it, but not as confidently as before. Then she recalled something Mr. Banks announced in chapel the night before, as if she were hearing it for the first time. It was the announcement of a prayer meeting for workers in the Revival, set for that Saturday morning at seven o'clock. She immediately decided to attend the meeting, and the choice seemed to fill her with new hope. Maybe there she could find some peace. With that small flicker of hope, she fell asleep again and didn’t wake up until half-past six, after her usual time. She heard sounds in the yard; it was her dad heading toward the garden with a wheelbarrow. She got dressed quickly, and after putting on her hat, she woke Agnes.

'Going out, Sis?' the child asked sleepily, seeing her attire.

'Are you going out, Sis?' the child asked sleepily, noticing her outfit.

'Yes, dear. I am going to the seven o'clock prayer-meeting. And you must get breakfast. You can—can't you?'

'Yes, dear. I'm going to the 7 o'clock prayer meeting. And you need to make breakfast. You can do that, can't you?'

The child assented, glad of the chance.

The child agreed, happy for the opportunity.

'But what are you going to the prayer-meeting for?'

'But what are you going to the prayer meeting for?'

Anna hesitated. Why not confess? No. 'I must go,' she said quietly at length. 'I shall be back before eight.'

Anna hesitated. Why not confess? No. "I have to go," she said quietly after a while. "I’ll be back before eight."

'Does father know?' Agnes enquired apprehensively.

"Does Dad know?" Agnes asked nervously.

'No, dear.'

'No, sweetheart.'

Anna shut the door quickly, went softly downstairs and along the passage, and crept into the street like a thief.

Anna quickly shut the door, quietly went downstairs and down the hallway, and slipped out into the street like a thief.

Men and women and boys and girls were on their way to work, with hurried clattering steps, some munching thick pieces of bread as they went, all self-centred, apparently morose and not quite awake. The dust lay thick in the arid gutters, and in drifts across the pavement; as the night-wind had blown it. Vehicular traffic had not begun, and blinds were still drawn; and though the footpaths were busy the street had a deserted and forlorn aspect. Anna walked hastily down the road, avoiding the glances of such as looked at her, but peering furtively at the faces of those who ignored her. All seemed callous—hoggishly careless of the everlasting verities. At first it appeared strange to her that the potent revival in the Wesleyan chapel had produced no effect on these preoccupied people. Bursley, then, continued its dull and even course. She wondered whether any of them guessed that she was going to the prayer-meeting and secretly sneered at her therefore.

Men, women, boys, and girls were heading to work, their hurried footsteps clattering as some chewed on thick pieces of bread. They all seemed wrapped up in themselves, looking a bit gloomy and not fully awake. Dust was thick in the dry gutters and piled up on the pavement, blown there by the night wind. Traffic hadn't started yet, and blinds were still closed; even though there were people on the sidewalks, the street felt deserted and abandoned. Anna walked quickly down the road, avoiding the gazes of those who looked at her, but sneaking glances at the faces of those who ignored her. Everyone seemed indifferent—blissfully unconcerned about the deeper truths of life. At first, it struck her as odd that the powerful revival at the Wesleyan chapel hadn't influenced these distracted people. Bursley continued its dull routine. She wondered if any of them suspected she was on her way to the prayer meeting and secretly mocked her for it.

When she had climbed Duck Bank she found to her surprise that the doors of the chapel were fast closed, though it was ten minutes past seven. Was there to be no prayer-meeting? A momentary sensation of relief flashed through her, and then she saw that the gate of the school-yard was open. She should have known that early morning prayers were never offered up in the chapel, but in the lecture-hall. She crossed the quadrangle with beating heart, feeling now that she had embarked on a frightful enterprise. The door of the lecture-hall was ajar; she pushed it and went in. At the other end of the hall a meagre handful of worshippers were collected, and on the raised platform stood Mr. Banks, vapid, perfunctory and fatigued. He gave out a verse, and pitched the tune—too high, but the singers with a heroic effect accomplished the verse without breaking down. The singing was thin and feeble, and the eagerness of one or two voices seemed strained, as though with a determination to make the best of things. Mynors was not present, and Anna did not know whether to be sorry or glad at this. She recognised that save herself all present were old believers, tried warriors of the Lord. There was only one other woman, Miss Sarah Vodrey, an aged spinster who kept house for Titus Price and his son, and found her sole diversion in the variety of her religious experiences. Before the hymn was finished a young man joined the assembly; it was the youth who had sat near Anna on the previous night, an ecstatic and naïve bliss shone from his face. In his prayer the minister drew the attention of the Deity to the fact that although a score or more of souls had been ingathered at the first service, the Methodists of Bursley were by no means satisfied. They wanted more; they wanted the whole of Bursley; and they would be content with no less. He begged that their earnest work might not be shamed before the world by a partial success. In conclusion he sought the blessing of God on the revivalist and asked that this tireless enthusiast might be led to husband his strength: at which there was a fervent Amen.

When she climbed Duck Bank, she was surprised to find the chapel doors firmly shut, even though it was already ten minutes past seven. Was there not going to be a prayer meeting? A brief sensation of relief washed over her, but then she noticed that the schoolyard gate was open. She should have realized that early morning prayers weren’t held in the chapel, but in the lecture hall. With a racing heart, she crossed the quadrangle, now feeling that she had embarked on a daunting task. The door to the lecture hall was slightly open; she pushed it and walked in. At the far end of the hall, a small group of worshippers had gathered, and on the raised platform stood Mr. Banks, dull, routine, and exhausted. He announced a verse and started the tune—too high, but the singers heroically managed the verse without faltering. The singing was weak and thin, and the enthusiasm from one or two voices seemed forced, as if they were trying to make the best of the situation. Mynors wasn’t there, and Anna didn’t know whether to feel disappointed or relieved about that. She noticed that aside from herself, everyone else present were long-time believers, seasoned warriors of the Lord. There was only one other woman, Miss Sarah Vodrey, an elderly spinster who managed a home for Titus Price and his son, finding her only diversion in the variety of her religious experiences. Before the hymn ended, a young man joined the group; it was the guy who had sat near Anna the previous night, an expression of ecstatic and naïve bliss on his face. In his prayer, the minister drew God’s attention to the fact that while more than twenty souls had been gathered at the first service, the Methodists of Bursley were far from satisfied. They wanted more; they wanted all of Bursley, and would settle for nothing less. He prayed that their sincere efforts wouldn’t be embarrassed by only a partial success. At the end, he sought God’s blessing on the revivalist and asked that this tireless enthusiast be guided to conserve his strength, to which there was a heartfelt Amen.

Several men prayed, and a pause ensued, all still kneeling.

Several men prayed, and then there was a moment of silence, all still kneeling.

Then the minister said in a tone of oily politeness:

Then the minister said in a tone of smooth politeness:

'Will a sister pray?'

'Will a sister pray for me?'

Another pause followed.

Another pause occurred.

'Sister Tellwright?'

'Sister Tellwright?'

Anna would have welcomed death and damnation. She clasped her hands tightly, and longed for the endless moment to pass. At last Sarah Vodrey gave a preliminary cough. Miss Vodrey was always happy to pray aloud, and her invocations usually began with the same phrase: 'Lord, we thank Thee that this day finds us with our bodies out of the grave and our souls out of hell.'

Anna would have welcomed death and damnation. She clasped her hands tightly and wished for the endless moment to pass. Finally, Sarah Vodrey cleared her throat. Miss Vodrey was always eager to pray out loud, and her prayers usually started with the same line: 'Lord, we thank You that this day finds us with our bodies out of the grave and our souls out of hell.'

Afterwards the minister gave out another hymn, and as soon as the singing commenced Anna slipped away. Once in the yard, she breathed a sigh of relief. Peace at the prayer-meeting? It was like coming out of prison. Peace was farther off than ever. Nay, she had actually forgotten her soul in the sensations of shame and discomfort. She had contrived only to make herself ridiculous, and perhaps the pious at their breakfast-tables would discuss her and her father, and their money, and the queer life they led.

Afterwards, the minister started another hymn, and as soon as the singing began, Anna slipped away. Once outside in the yard, she let out a sigh of relief. Was there really peace at the prayer meeting? It felt like being released from prison. Peace was further away than ever. In fact, she had completely forgotten about her own feelings while caught up in shame and discomfort. All she managed to do was make herself look ridiculous, and maybe the pious people at their breakfast tables would talk about her, her father, their money, and the strange life they led.

If Mynors had but been present!

If Mynors had only been there!

She walked out into the street. It was twenty minutes to eight by the town-hall clock. The last workmen's car of the morning was just leaving Bursley: it was packed inside and outside, and the conductor hung insecurely on the step. At the gates of the manufactory opposite the chapel, a man in a white smock stood placidly smoking a pipe. A prayer-meeting was a little thing, a trifle in the immense and regular activity of the town: this thought necessarily occurred to Anna. She hurried homewards, wondering what her father would say about that morning's unusual excursion. A couple of hundred yards distant from home she saw, to her astonishment, Agnes emerging from the front-door of the house. The child ran rapidly down the street, not observing Anna till they were close upon each other.

She walked out into the street. It was twenty minutes to eight on the town hall clock. The last workmen's bus of the morning was just leaving Bursley: it was packed inside and out, and the driver was awkwardly clinging to the step. At the gates of the factory across from the chapel, a man in a white coat was calmly smoking a pipe. A prayer meeting was a small thing, just a minor event in the vast and regular hustle of the town: this thought definitely crossed Anna's mind. She hurried home, wondering what her father would think about that morning's unusual outing. A couple of hundred yards from home, she was surprised to see Agnes coming out the front door of the house. The child raced down the street, not noticing Anna until they were nearly on top of each other.

'Oh, Anna! You forgot to buy the bacon yesterday. There isn't a scrap, and father's fearfully angry. He gave me sixpence, and I'm going down to Leal's to get some as quick as ever I can.'

'Oh, Anna! You forgot to buy the bacon yesterday. There isn't a single bit, and Dad is really angry. He gave me sixpence, and I'm heading down to Leal's to get some as fast as I can.'

It was a thunderbolt to Anna, this seemingly petty misadventure. As she entered the house she felt a tear on her cheek. She was ashamed to weep, but she wept. This, after the fiasco of the prayer-meeting, was a climax of woe; it overtopped and extinguished all the rest; her soul was nothing to her now. She quickly took off her hat and ran to the kitchen. Agnes had put the breakfast-things on the tray ready for setting; the bread was cut, the coffee portioned into the jug; the fire burned bright, and the kettle sang. Anna took the cloth from the drawer in the oak dresser, and went to the parlour to lay the table. Mr. Tellwright was at the end of the garden, pointing the wall, his back to the house. The table set, Anna observed that the room was only partly dusted: there was a duster on the mantelpiece; she seized it to finish, and at that moment the kitchen clock struck eight. Simultaneously Mr. Tellwright dropped his trowel, and came towards the house. She doggedly dusted one chair, and then, turning coward, flew away upstairs; the kitchen was barred to her since her father would enter by the kitchen door.

It was a shock to Anna, this seemingly trivial mishap. As she walked into the house, she felt a tear roll down her cheek. She was embarrassed to cry, but she couldn’t help it. After the disaster of the prayer meeting, this was the peak of her misery; it overshadowed and erased everything else; her soul felt empty now. She quickly took off her hat and ran to the kitchen. Agnes had set the breakfast items on the tray, ready to be placed on the table; the bread was sliced, and the coffee was measured into the jug; the fire burned brightly, and the kettle whistled. Anna grabbed the cloth from the drawer in the oak dresser and went to the parlor to set the table. Mr. Tellwright was at the end of the garden, pointing at the wall, with his back to the house. Once the table was set, Anna noticed that the room was only partially dusted: there was a duster on the mantelpiece; she picked it up to finish the job, and at that moment, the kitchen clock struck eight. At the same time, Mr. Tellwright dropped his trowel and came toward the house. She stubbornly dusted one chair, and then, feeling scared, ran upstairs; the kitchen was off-limits to her since her father would come in through the kitchen door.

She had forgotten to buy bacon, and breakfast would be late: it was a calamity unique in her experience! She stood at the door of her bedroom, and waited, vehemently, for Agnes's return. At last the child raced breathlessly in; Anna flew to meet her. With incredible speed the bacon was whipped out of its wrapper, and Anna picked up the knife. At the first stroke she cut herself, and Agnes was obliged to bind the finger with rag. The clock struck the half-hour like a knell. It was twenty minutes to nine, forty minutes behind time, when the two girls hurried into the parlour, Anna bearing the bacon and hot plates, Agnes the bread and coffee. Mr. Tellwright sat upright and ferocious in his chair, the image of offence and wrath. Instead of reading his letters he had fed full of this ineffable grievance. The meal began in a desolating silence. The male creature's terrible displeasure permeated the whole room like an ether, invisible but carrying vibrations to the heart. Then, when he had eaten one piece of bacon, and cut his envelopes, the miser began to empty himself of some of his anger in stormy tones that might have uprooted trees. Anna ought to feel thoroughly ashamed. He could not imagine what she had been thinking of. Why didn't she tell him she was going to the prayer-meeting? Why did she go to the prayer-meeting, disarranging the whole household? How came she to forget the bacon? It was gross carelessness. A pretty example to her little sister! The fact was that since her birthday she had gotten above hersen. She was careless and extravagant. Look how thick the bacon was cut. He should not stand it much longer. And her finger all red, and the blood dropping on the cloth: a nice sight at a meal! Go and tie it up again.

She had forgotten to buy bacon, and breakfast would be late: it was a complete disaster for her! She stood at the door of her bedroom, anxiously waiting for Agnes to come back. Finally, the child burst in, out of breath; Anna rushed to meet her. In no time, the bacon was taken out of its wrapper, and Anna picked up the knife. With the first cut, she accidentally sliced her finger, and Agnes had to wrap it up with a rag. The clock struck half-past like a funeral bell. It was twenty minutes to nine, forty minutes behind schedule, when the two girls hurried into the living room, Anna carrying the bacon and hot plates, Agnes with the bread and coffee. Mr. Tellwright sat upright and furious in his chair, radiating offense and anger. Instead of reading his letters, he was consumed by this unbearable grievance. The meal started in a heavy silence. The man's terrible displeasure filled the room like an invisible gas, sending vibrations straight to the heart. Then, after eating one piece of bacon and opening his letters, he began to unleash some of his anger in loud tones that could’ve shaken trees. Anna should be thoroughly ashamed. He couldn’t understand what she had been thinking. Why didn’t she tell him she was going to the prayer meeting? Why did she go to the prayer meeting and throw the whole household into chaos? How could she forget the bacon? It was simply careless. What a great example for her little sister! The truth was that since her birthday, she had gotten above herself. She was careless and extravagant. Just look how thick the bacon was cut. He couldn’t tolerate it much longer. And her finger was all red, blood dripping onto the cloth: a lovely sight for a meal! Go and wrap it up again.

Without a word she left the room to obey. Of course she had no defence. Agnes, her tears falling, pecked her food timidly like a bird, not daring to stir from her chair, even to assist at the finger.

Without saying anything, she left the room to comply. Of course, she had no way to defend herself. Agnes, with tears streaming down her face, nibbled at her food timidly like a bird, not daring to get up from her chair, even to help with the finger food.

'What did Mr. Mynors say?' Tellwright inquired fiercely when Anna had come back into the room.

'What did Mr. Mynors say?' Tellwright asked sharply when Anna came back into the room.

'Mr. Mynors?' she murmured, at a loss, but vaguely apprehending further trouble.

'Mr. Mynors?' she whispered, confused but sensing more trouble ahead.

'Did ye see him?'

'Did you see him?'

'Yes, father.'

'Yes, Dad.'

'Did ye give him my message?'

'Did you give him my message?'

'I forgot it.' God in heaven! She had forgotten the message!

'I forgot it.' God in heaven! She had forgotten the message!

With a devastating grunt Mr. Tellwright walked speechless out of the room. The girls cleared the table, exchanging sympathy with a single mute glance. Anna's one satisfaction was that, even if she had remembered the message, she could not possibly have delivered it.

With a heavy grunt, Mr. Tellwright walked out of the room without saying a word. The girls cleared the table, sharing a silent look of sympathy. Anna's only comfort was that, even if she had remembered the message, she definitely couldn't have delivered it.

Ephraim Tellwright stayed in the front parlour till half-past ten o'clock, unseen but felt, like an angry god behind a cloud. The consciousness that he was there, unappeased and dangerous, remained uppermost in the minds of the two girls during the morning. At half-past ten he opened the door.

Ephraim Tellwright stayed in the front parlor until 10:30, unseen but felt, like an angry god behind a cloud. The awareness that he was there, unyielding and threatening, lingered in the thoughts of the two girls throughout the morning. At 10:30, he opened the door.

'Agnes!' he commanded, and Agnes ran to him from the kitchen with the speed of propitiation.

'Agnes!' he called, and Agnes rushed to him from the kitchen with an eagerness to please.

'Yes, father.'

'Yes, Dad.'

'Take this note down to Price's, and don't wait for an answer.'

'Take this note to Price's, and don’t wait for a reply.'

'Yes, father.'

'Yeah, dad.'

She was back in twenty minutes. Anna was sweeping the lobby.

She returned in twenty minutes. Anna was sweeping the lobby.

'If Mr. Mynors calls while I'm out, you mun tell him to wait,' Mr. Tellwright said to Agnes, pointedly ignoring Anna's presence. Then, having brushed his greenish hat on his sleeve he went off towards town to buy meat and vegetables. He always did Saturday's marketing himself. At the butcher's and in the St. Luke's covered market he was a familiar and redoubtable figure. Among the salespeople who stood the market was a wrinkled, hardy old potato-woman from the other side of Moorthorne: every Saturday the miser bested her in their higgling-match, and nearly every Saturday she scornfully threw at him the same joke: 'Get thee along to th' post-office, Master Terrick:[1] happen they'll give thee sixpenn'orth o' stamps for fivepence ha'penny.' He seldom failed to laugh heartily at this.

'If Mr. Mynors calls while I'm out, you need to tell him to wait,' Mr. Tellwright said to Agnes, pointedly ignoring Anna's presence. Then, after brushing his greenish hat with his sleeve, he headed toward town to buy meat and vegetables. He always did Saturday's shopping himself. At the butcher's and in the St. Luke's covered market, he was a familiar and formidable figure. Among the vendors in the market was a wrinkled, tough old potato woman from the other side of Moorthorne: every Saturday, the miser outsmarted her in their bargaining match, and nearly every Saturday she mockingly threw the same joke at him: 'Get along to the post office, Master Terrick: maybe they'll give you sixpence worth of stamps for fivepence and a half.' He usually laughed heartily at this.

At dinner the girls could perceive that the shadow of his displeasure had slightly lifted, though he kept a frowning silence. Expert in all the symptoms of his moods, they knew that in a few hours he would begin to talk again, at first in monosyllables, and then in short detached sentences. An intimation of relief diffused itself through the house like a hint of spring in February.

At dinner, the girls noticed that the tension from his discontent had eased a bit, even though he remained silently frowning. Familiar with all his mood signs, they realized that in a few hours he would start talking again, first with one-word answers, then with short, disconnected sentences. A sense of relief spread through the house like a hint of spring in February.

These domestic upheavals followed always the same course, and Anna had learnt to suffer the later stages of them with calmness and even with impassivity. Henry Mynors had not called. She supposed that her father had expected him to call for the answer which she had forgotten to give him, and she had a hope that he would come in the afternoon: once again she had the idea that something definite and satisfactory might result if she could only see him—that she might, as it were, gather inspiration from the mere sight of his face. After dinner, while the girls were washing the dinner things in the scullery, Agnes's quick ear caught the sound of voices in the parlour. They listened. Mynors had come. Mr. Tellwright must have seen him from the front window and opened the door to him before he could ring.

These household disruptions always followed the same pattern, and Anna had learned to endure the later stages with a sense of calm and even indifference. Henry Mynors hadn’t called. She figured her father had expected him to come for the answer she had forgotten to give, and she hoped he would drop by in the afternoon: once again, she had the feeling that something clear and satisfying might happen if she could just see him—that she might, in a way, draw inspiration from just the sight of his face. After dinner, while the girls were cleaning up the dishes in the kitchen, Agnes's sharp ears picked up the sound of voices in the living room. They listened carefully. Mynors had arrived. Mr. Tellwright must have spotted him from the front window and opened the door before he had a chance to ring the bell.

'It's him,' said Agnes, excited.

"That's him," Agnes said excitedly.

'Who?' Anna asked, self-consciously.

"Who?" Anna asked, feeling awkward.

'Mr. Mynors, of course,' said the child sharply, making it quite plain that this affectation could not impose on her for a single instant.

'Mr. Mynors, obviously,' the child said sharply, making it clear that this pretense couldn't fool her for even a second.

'Anna!' It was Mr. Tellwright's summons, through the parlour window. She dried her hands, doffed her apron, and went to the parlour, animated by a thousand fears and expectations. Why was she to be included in the colloquy?

'Anna!' It was Mr. Tellwright calling her from the parlor window. She dried her hands, took off her apron, and went to the parlor, filled with a thousand fears and hopes. Why was she being included in the conversation?

Mynors rose at her entrance and greeted her with conspicuous deference, a deference which made her feel ashamed.

Mynors stood up when she walked in and greeted her with noticeable respect, a respect that made her feel embarrassed.

'Hum!' the old man growled, but he was obviously content. 'I gave Anna a message for ye yesterday, Mr. Mynors, but her forgot to deliver it, wench-like. Ye might ha' been saved th' trouble o' calling. Now as ye're here, I've summat for tell ye. It 'll be Anna's money as 'll go into that concern o' yours. I've none by me; in fact, I'm a'most fast for brass, but her 'll have as near two thousand as makes no matter in a month's time, and her says her 'll go in wi' you on th' strength o' my recommendation.'

“Hmph!” the old man grumbled, but he clearly seemed pleased. “I gave Anna a message for you yesterday, Mr. Mynors, but she forgot to pass it on, like a lazy servant. You could have saved yourself the hassle of coming here. Now that you’re here, I have something to tell you. It will be Anna’s money that goes into that business of yours. I don’t have any cash on hand; in fact, I’m almost broke, but she’ll have nearly two thousand in a month’s time, and she says she’ll invest with you based on my recommendation.”

This speech was evidently a perfect surprise for Henry Mynors. For a moment he seemed to be at a loss; then his face gave candid expression to a feeling of intense pleasure.

This speech clearly caught Henry Mynors completely off guard. For a moment, he looked a bit lost; then his face reflected a genuine feeling of great joy.

'You know all about this business then, Miss Tellwright?'

'You know all about this, then, Miss Tellwright?'

She blushed. 'Father has told me something about it.'

She blushed. 'Dad has told me something about it.'

'And are you willing to be my partner?'

'Are you willing to be my partner?'

'Nay, I did na' say that,' Tellwright interrupted. 'It 'll be Anna's money, but i' my name.'

'Nah, I didn't say that,' Tellwright interrupted. 'It'll be Anna's money, but in my name.'

'I see,' said Mynors gravely. 'But if it is Miss Anna's money, why should not she be the partner?' He offered one of his courtly diplomatic smiles.

"I understand," Mynors said seriously. "But if it's Miss Anna's money, why shouldn't she be the partner?" He gave one of his polite, diplomatic smiles.

'Oh—but——' Anna began in deprecation.

'Oh—but——' Anna began regretfully.

Tellwright laughed. 'Ay!' he said, 'why not? It 'll be experience for th' lass.'

Tellwright laughed. "Yeah!" he said, "why not? It'll be experience for the girl."

'Just so,' said Mynors.

"Exactly," said Mynors.

Anna stood silent, like a child who is being talked about. There was a pause.

Anna stood quietly, like a kid who was being talked about. There was a pause.

'Would you care for that arrangement, Miss Tellwright?'

"Would you like that arrangement, Miss Tellwright?"

'Oh, yes,' she said.

'Oh, yes,' she replied.

'I shall try to justify your confidence. I needn't say that I think you and your father will have no reason to be disappointed. Two thousand pounds is of course only a trifle to you, but it is a great deal to me, and—and——' He hesitated. Anna did not surmise that he was too much moved by the sight of her, and the situation, to continue, but this was the fact.

'I’ll do my best to prove your confidence right. I don’t need to mention that I believe you and your father won’t be let down. Two thousand pounds is obviously just a small amount for you, but it means a lot to me, and—and——' He paused. Anna didn’t realize that he was too emotionally affected by her presence and the situation to go on, but that was the truth.

'There's nobbut one point, Mr. Mynors,' Tellwright said bluntly, 'and that's the interest on th' capital, as must be deducted before reckoning profits. Us must have six per cent.'

'There's just one thing, Mr. Mynors,' Tellwright said straightforwardly, 'and that's the interest on the capital, which has to be deducted before calculating profits. We need six percent.'

'But I thought we had settled it at five,' said Mynors with sudden firmness.

'But I thought we agreed on five,' Mynors said, suddenly sounding firm.

'We 'n settled as you shall have five on your fifteen hundred,' the miser replied with imperturbable audacity, 'but us mun have our six.'

'We’ve agreed that you’ll get five out of your fifteen hundred,' the miser said with unshakable boldness, 'but we must have our six.'

'I certainly thought we had thrashed that out fully, and agreed that the interest should be the same on each side.' Mynors was alert and defensive.

'I definitely thought we had discussed that thoroughly and agreed that the interest should be the same on both sides.' Mynors was watchful and on guard.

'Nay, young man. Us mun have our six. We're takkin' a risk.'

'Nah, young man. We need to have our six. We're taking a risk.'

Mynors pressed his lips together. He was taken at a disadvantage. Mr. Tellwright, with unscrupulous cleverness, had utilized the effect on Mynors of his daughter's presence to regain a position from which the younger man had definitely ousted him a few days before. Mynors was annoyed, but he gave no sign of his annoyance.

Mynors pressed his lips together. He was caught off guard. Mr. Tellwright, with shameless cleverness, had taken advantage of the impact his daughter had on Mynors to reclaim a position from which the younger man had clearly pushed him out just a few days earlier. Mynors was frustrated, but he showed no sign of it.

'Very well,' he said at length, with a private smile at Anna to indicate that it was out of regard for her that he yielded.

'Alright,' he said after a moment, giving Anna a private smile to show that he was conceding out of respect for her.

Mr. Tellwright made no pretence of concealing his satisfaction. He, too, smiled at Anna, sardonically: the last vestige of the morning's irritation vanished in a glow of triumph.

Mr. Tellwright didn't hide his satisfaction at all. He smiled at Anna with a hint of sarcasm: the last bit of his morning irritation faded away into a feeling of victory.

'I'm afraid I must go,' said Mynors, looking at his watch. 'There is a service at chapel at three. Our Revivalist came down with Mrs. Sutton to look over the works this morning, and I told him I should be at the service. So I must. You coming, Mr. Tellwright?'

'I'm afraid I have to go,' Mynors said, checking his watch. 'There's a service at the chapel at three. Our Revivalist came down with Mrs. Sutton to check out the works this morning, and I told him I would be at the service. So I have to. Are you coming, Mr. Tellwright?'

'Nay, my lad. I'm owd enough to leave it to young uns.'

'Nah, kid. I'm old enough to leave it to the younger ones.'

Anna forced her courage to the verge of rashness, moved by a swift impulse.

Anna pushed her courage to the edge of recklessness, driven by a sudden urge.

'Will you wait one minute?' she said to Mynors. 'I am going to the service. If I'm late back, father, Agnes will see to the tea. Don't wait for me.' She looked him straight in the face. It was one of the bravest acts of her life. After the episode of breakfast, to suggest a procedure which might entail any risk upon another meal was absolutely heroic. Tellwright glanced away from his daughter, and at Mynors. Anna hurried upstairs.

'Will you wait a minute?' she asked Mynors. 'I'm going to the service. If I'm late getting back, Dad, Agnes will take care of the tea. Don't wait for me.' She looked him straight in the eye. It was one of the bravest things she had ever done. After what happened at breakfast, suggesting any plan that could involve risk to another meal was truly heroic. Tellwright looked away from his daughter and at Mynors. Anna hurried upstairs.

'Who's thy lawyer, Mr. Mynors?' Tellwright asked.

'Who's your lawyer, Mr. Mynors?' Tellwright asked.

'Dane,' said Mynors.

'Dane,' Mynors said.

'That 'll be convenient. Dane does my bit o' business, too. I'll see him, and make a bargain wi' him for th' partnership deed. He always works by contract for me. I've no patience wi' six-and-eight-pences.'

'That’ll be convenient. Dane handles my business too. I’ll talk to him and make a deal for the partnership agreement. He always works on contract for me. I have no patience for small change.'

Mynors assented.

Mynors agreed.

'You must come down some afternoon and look over the works,' he said to Anna as they were walking down Trafalgar Road towards chapel.

"You should come by one afternoon and check out the works," he said to Anna as they walked down Trafalgar Road toward the chapel.

'I should like to,' Anna replied. 'I've never been over a works in my life.'

'I would like to,' Anna replied. 'I've never been to a factory in my life.'

'No? You are going to be a partner in the best works of its size in Bursley,' Mynors said enthusiastically.

'No? You’re going to be a partner in the best projects of its size in Bursley,' Mynors said excitedly.

'I'm glad of that,' she smiled, 'for I do believe I own the worst.'

"I'm glad to hear that," she smiled, "because I really think I have the worst."

'What—Price's do you mean?'

'What—do you mean Price's?'

She nodded.

She agreed.

'Ah!' he exclaimed, and seemed to be thinking. 'I wasn't sure whether that belonged to you or your father. I'm afraid it isn't quite the best of properties. But perhaps I'd better say nothing about that. We had a grand meeting last night. Our little cornet-player quite lived up to his reputation, don't you think?'

'Ah!' he exclaimed, thinking for a moment. 'I wasn't sure if that was yours or your dad's. I'm afraid it’s not the best piece of property. But maybe I should just keep quiet about that. We had a great meeting last night. Our little cornet player definitely lived up to his reputation, don't you think?'

'Quite,' she said faintly.

"Definitely," she said faintly.

'You enjoyed the meeting?'

'Did you enjoy the meeting?'

'No,' she blurted out, dismayed but resolute to be honest.

'No,' she blurted out, upset but determined to be truthful.

There was a silence.

It was silent.

'But you were at the early prayer-meeting this morning, I hear.'

'But I hear you were at the early prayer meeting this morning.'

She said nothing while they took a dozen paces, and then murmured, 'Yes.'

She stayed quiet while they walked a dozen steps, and then softly said, 'Yes.'

Their eyes met for a second, hers full of trouble.

Their eyes met for a moment, hers filled with worry.

'Perhaps,' he said at length, 'perhaps—excuse me saying this—but you may be expecting too much——'

'Maybe,' he finally said, 'maybe—sorry for saying this—but you might be expecting too much——'

'Well?' she encouraged him, prepared now to finish what had been begun.

'Well?' she urged him, ready now to complete what had been started.

'I mean,' he said, earnestly, 'that I—we—cannot promise you any sudden change of feeling, any sudden relief and certainty, such as some people experience. At least, I never had it. What is called conversion can happen in various ways. It is a question of living, of constant endeavour, with the example of Christ always before us. It need not always be a sudden wrench, you know, from the world. Perhaps you have been expecting too much,' he repeated, as though offering balm with that phrase.

"I mean," he said earnestly, "that I—we—can't promise you any sudden change in feelings or any instant relief and certainty like some people have. At least, I've never experienced that. What we call conversion can happen in different ways. It's about living a life of constant effort, always looking to Christ as our example. It doesn't always have to be a sudden break from the world, you know. Maybe you've been expecting too much," he said again, as if trying to soothe with that phrase.

She thanked him sincerely, but not with her lips, only with the heart. He had revealed to her an avenue of release from a situation which had seemed on all sides fatally closed. She sprang eagerly towards it. She realised afresh how frightful was the dilemma from which there was now a hope of escape, and she was grateful accordingly. Before, she had not dared steadily to face its terrors. She wondered that even her father's displeasure or the project of the partnership had been able to divert her from the plight of her soul. Putting these mundane things firmly behind her, she concentrated the activities of her brain on that idea of Christ-like living, day by day, hour by hour, of a gradual aspiration towards Christ and thereby an ultimate arrival at the state of being saved. This she thought she might accomplish; this gave opportunity of immediate effort, dispensing with the necessity of an impossible violent spiritual metamorphosis. They did not speak again until they had reached the gates of the chapel, when Mynors, who had to enter the choir from the back, bade her a quiet adieu. Anna enjoyed the service, which passed smoothly and uneventfully. At a Revival, night is the time of ecstasy and fervour and salvation; in the afternoon one must be content with preparatory praise and prayer.

She thanked him sincerely, but not with words, only with her heart. He had shown her a way out of a situation that had seemed completely hopeless. She eagerly embraced it. She realized again how terrible the dilemma had been, and now there was hope for escape, which filled her with gratitude. Before, she hadn’t been able to face its horrors head-on. She was surprised that even her father's disapproval or the idea of the partnership could have distracted her from the turmoil within her. Putting those everyday concerns firmly behind her, she focused her thoughts on the idea of living like Christ, day by day, hour by hour, gradually aspiring towards Christ and ultimately achieving salvation. She believed she could do this; it offered her a chance for immediate action, avoiding the need for an impossible and drastic spiritual change. They didn’t speak again until they reached the chapel gates, where Mynors, needing to enter the choir from the back, said a quiet goodbye. Anna enjoyed the service, which went smoothly and without any incidents. At a Revival, night is the time for ecstasy, fervor, and salvation; in the afternoon, you must be content with preliminary praise and prayer.

That evening, while father and daughters sat in the parlour after supper, there was a ring at the door. Agnes ran to open, and found Willie Price. It had begun to rain, and the visitor, his jacket-collar turned up, was wet and draggled. Agnes left him on the mat and ran back to the parlour.

That evening, while the dad and his daughters were sitting in the living room after dinner, there was a knock at the door. Agnes rushed to open it and found Willie Price. It had started to rain, and the visitor, with his jacket collar turned up, was soaked and messy. Agnes left him at the door and hurried back to the living room.

'Young Mr. Price wants to see you, father.'

'Young Mr. Price wants to see you, Dad.'

Tellwright motioned to her to shut the door.

Tellwright gestured for her to close the door.

'You'd best see him, Anna,' he said. 'It's none my business.'

'You should go talk to him, Anna,' he said. 'It's not my concern.'

'But what has he come about, father?'

'But what has he come for, dad?'

'That note as I sent down this morning. I told owd Titus as he mun pay us twenty pun' on Monday morning certain, or us should distrain. Them as can pay ten pun, especially in bank notes, can pay twenty pun, and thirty.'

'That note I sent down this morning. I told old Titus that he must pay us twenty pounds on Monday morning for sure, or we will take action. Those who can pay ten pounds, especially in banknotes, can pay twenty pounds, and thirty.'

'And suppose he says he can't?'

'And what if he says he can't?'

'Tell him he must. I've figured it out and changed my mind about that works. Owd Titus isna' done for yet, though he's getting on that road. Us can screw another fifty out o' him, that 'll only leave six months rent owing; then us can turn him out. He'll go bankrupt; us can claim for our rent afore th' other creditors, and us 'll have a hundred or a hundred and twenty in hand towards doing the owd place up a bit for a new tenant.'

'Tell him he has to. I’ve figured it out and changed my mind about that plan. Old Titus isn’t done for yet, even though he’s heading that way. We can squeeze another fifty out of him, which will leave just six months' rent owed; then we can kick him out. He’ll go bankrupt; we can claim our rent before the other creditors, and we’ll have a hundred or a hundred and twenty on hand to fix up the old place a bit for a new tenant.'

'Make him bankrupt, father?' Anna exclaimed. It was the only part of the ingenious scheme which she had understood.

'Make him bankrupt, Dad?' Anna exclaimed. It was the only part of the clever plan that she had understood.

'Ay!' he said laconically.

"Hey!" he said casually.

'But——' (Would Christ have driven Titus Price into the bankruptcy court?)

'But——' (Would Christ have forced Titus Price into bankruptcy court?)

'If he pays, well and good.'

'If he pays, that's awesome.'

'Hadn't you better see Mr. William, father?'

'Hadn't you better see Mr. William, Dad?'

'Whose property is it, mine or thine?' Tellwright growled. His good humour was still precarious, insecurely re-established, and Anna obediently left the room. After all, she said to herself, a debt is a debt, and honest people pay what they owe.

'Whose property is it, mine or yours?' Tellwright growled. His good mood was still shaky, not completely back to normal, and Anna obediently left the room. After all, she told herself, a debt is a debt, and honest people pay what they owe.

It was in an uncomplaisant tone that Anna invited Willie Price to the front parlour: nervousness always made her seem harsh and moreover she had not the trick of hiding firmness under suavity.

It was with an unwelcoming tone that Anna invited Willie Price to the front parlor: her nervousness always made her come off as harsh, and she also didn’t have the ability to mask her firmness with charm.

'Will you come this way, Mr. Price?'

'Could you come this way, Mr. Price?'

'Yes,' he said with ingratiating, eager compliance. Dusk was falling, and the room in shadow. She forgot to ask him to take a chair, so they both stood up during the interview.

'Yeah,' he said with eager and flattering compliance. Dusk was setting in, and the room was getting dark. She forgot to ask him to sit down, so they both stood up during the conversation.

'A grand meeting we had last night,' he began, twisting his hat. 'I saw you there, Miss Tellwright.'

'A great meeting we had last night,' he started, fiddling with his hat. 'I saw you there, Miss Tellwright.'

'Yes.'

'Yep.'

'Yes. There was a splendid muster of teachers. I wanted to be at the prayer-meeting this morning, but couldn't get away. Did you happen to go, Miss Tellwright?'

'Yes. There was a great gathering of teachers. I wanted to be at the prayer meeting this morning, but I couldn't make it. Did you happen to go, Miss Tellwright?'

She saw that he knew that she had been present, and gave him another curt monosyllable. She would have liked to be kind to him, to reassure him, to make him happy and comfortable, so ludicrous and touching were his efforts after a social urbanity which should appease; but, just as much as he, she was unskilled in the subtle arts of converse.

She realized he knew she had been there, and she responded with another brief reply. She wanted to be nice to him, to comfort him, to make him feel good and at ease, since his awkward attempts at social grace were both funny and endearing; but just like him, she was also not good at the delicate art of conversation.

'Yes,' he continued, 'and I was anxious to be at to-night's meeting, but the dad asked me to come up here. He said I'd better.' That term, 'the dad,' uttered in William's slow, drawling voice, seemed to show Titus Price in a new light to Anna, as a human creature loved, not as a mere gross physical organism: the effect was quite surprising. William went on: 'Can I see your father, Miss Tellwright?'

'Yeah,' he continued, 'and I was really looking forward to tonight's meeting, but my dad asked me to come up here. He said it was best.' That term, 'my dad,' spoken in William's slow, drawling voice, made Titus Price appear different to Anna, as a person who was loved, not just a physical being: the effect was quite surprising. William continued: 'Can I see your dad, Miss Tellwright?'

'Is it about the rent?'

'Is it about the rent?'

'Yes,' he said.

"Yeah," he said.

'Well, if you will tell me——'

'Well, if you're going to tell me——'

'Oh! I beg pardon,' he said quickly. 'Of course I know it's your property, but I thought Mr. Tellwright always saw after it for you. It was he that wrote that letter this morning, wasn't it?'

'Oh! I’m so sorry,' he said quickly. 'I know it's your property, but I thought Mr. Tellwright always took care of it for you. He was the one who wrote that letter this morning, right?'

'Yes,' Anna replied. She did not explain the situation.

'Yes,' Anna replied. She didn't explain the situation.

'You insist on another twenty pounds on Monday?'

'Are you really asking for another twenty pounds on Monday?'

'Yes,' she said.

'Yeah,' she said.

'We paid ten last Monday.'

'We paid ten on Monday.'

'But there is still over a hundred owing.'

'But there is still over a hundred owed.'

'I know, but—oh, Miss Tellwright, you mustn't be hard on us. Trade's bad.'

'I get it, but—oh, Miss Tellwright, you really shouldn't be tough on us. Business is bad.'

'It says in the "Signal" that trade is improving,' she interrupted sharply.

'The "Signal" says that trade is getting better,' she interrupted sharply.

'Does it?' he said. 'But look at prices; they're cut till there's no profit left. I assure you, Miss Tellwright, my father and me are having a hard struggle. Everything's against us, and the works in particular, as you know.'

'Does it?' he said. 'But look at the prices; they've been slashed until there's no profit left. I assure you, Miss Tellwright, my father and I are having a tough time. Everything's working against us, especially the business, as you know.'

His tone was so earnest, so pathetic, that tears of compassion almost rose to her eyes as she looked at those simple naïve blue eyes of his. His lanky figure and clumsily-fitting clothes, his feeble placatory smile, the twitching movements of his long red hands, all contributed to the effect of his defencelessness. She thought of the test: 'Blessed are the meek,' and saw in a flash the deep truth of it. Here were she and her father, rich, powerful, autocratic; and there were Willie Price and his father, commercial hares hunted by hounds of creditors, hares that turned in plaintive appeal to those greedy jaws for mercy. And yet, she, a hound, envied at that moment the hares. Blessed are the meek, blessed are the failures, blessed are the stupid, for they, unknown to themselves, have a grace which is denied to the haughty, the successful, and the wise. The very repulsiveness of old Titus, his underhand methods, his insincerities, only served to increase her sympathy for the pair. How could Titus help being himself any more than Henry Mynors could help being himself? And that idea led her to think of the prospective partnership, destined by every favourable sign to brilliant success, and to contrast it with the ignoble and forlorn undertaking in Edward Street.

His tone was so sincere, so sad, that tears of compassion nearly filled her eyes as she looked at his simple, naïve blue eyes. His tall, awkward figure and ill-fitting clothes, his weak, comforting smile, the twitching movements of his long red hands, all added to his sense of helplessness. She thought of the saying: 'Blessed are the meek,' and in an instant, she understood its profound truth. Here she was with her father, rich, powerful, and controlling; and there were Willie Price and his father, struggling business owners hunted by relentless creditors, turning in a desperate plea to those greedy jaws for mercy. Yet, at that moment, she, a predator, envied the prey. Blessed are the meek, blessed are the failures, blessed are the foolish, for they, often unaware, possess a grace that is denied to the proud, the successful, and the wise. The very unpleasantness of old Titus, his shady tactics, his dishonesty, only deepened her sympathy for the two. How could Titus help being himself any more than Henry Mynors could help being himself? That thought led her to consider the upcoming partnership, which every sign pointed to as destined for great success, and to compare it with the base and hopeless endeavor on Edward Street.

She tried to discover some method of soothing the young man's fears, of being considerate to him without injuring her father's scheme.

She tried to find a way to calm the young man's fears, to be kind to him without hurting her father's plan.

'If you will pay what you owe,' she said, 'we will spend it all, every penny, on improving the works.'

'If you pay what you owe,' she said, 'we will spend it all, every penny, on improving the operations.'

'Miss Tellwright,' he answered with fatal emphasis, 'we cannot pay.'

'Miss Tellwright,' he replied with serious emphasis, 'we can't pay.'

Ah! She wished to follow Christ day by day, hour by hour—constantly to endeavour after saintliness. What was she to do now? Left to herself, she might have said in a burst of impulsive generosity, 'I forgive you all arrears. Start afresh.' But her father had to be reckoned with.......

Ah! She wanted to follow Christ every day, every hour—always striving for holiness. What should she do now? On her own, she might have impulsively said, 'I forgive you all debts. Let’s start over.' But she had to consider her father.......

'How much do you think you can pay on Monday?' she asked coldly.

'How much do you think you can pay on Monday?' she asked icily.

At that moment her father entered the room. His first act was to light the gas. Willie Price's eyes blinked at the glare, as though he were trembling before the anticipated decree of this implacable old man. Anna's heart beat with sympathetic apprehension. Tellwright shook hands grimly with the youth, who re-stated hurriedly what he had said to Anna.

At that moment, her father walked into the room. His first action was to turn on the gas. Willie Price blinked at the brightness, as if he were nervous about the stern judgment of this unyielding old man. Anna's heart raced with shared anxiety. Tellwright shook hands sternly with the young man, who quickly repeated what he had told Anna.

'It's o' this'n,' the old man began with finality, and stopped. Anna caught a glance from him dismissing her. She went out in silence. On the Monday Titus Price paid another twenty pounds.

'It's this one,' the old man said firmly, and then he stopped. Anna caught a glance from him that dismissed her. She left quietly. On Monday, Titus Price paid another twenty pounds.


[1] Terrick: a corruption of Tellwright.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__] Terrick: a variant of Tellwright.




CHAPTER VII

THE SEWING MEETING

On an afternoon ten days later, Mr. Sutton's coachman, Barrett by name, arrived at Ephraim Tellwright's back-door with a note. The Tellwrights were having tea. The note could be seen in his enormous hand, and Agnes went out.

On an afternoon ten days later, Mr. Sutton's driver, Barrett, showed up at Ephraim Tellwright's back door with a note. The Tellwrights were having tea. The note was visible in his large hand, and Agnes went outside.

'An answer, if you please, Miss,' he said to her, touching his hat, and giving a pull to the leathern belt which, surrounding his waist, alone seemed to hold his frame together. Agnes, much impressed, took the note. She had never before seen that resplendent automaton apart from the equipage which he directed. Always afterwards, Barrett formally saluted her in the streets, affording her thus, every time, a thrilling moment of delicious joy.

'An answer, if you would, Miss,' he said to her, tipping his hat and tugging at the leather belt that wrapped around his waist, which seemed to be the only thing keeping him together. Agnes, quite impressed, took the note. She had never seen that shining automaton apart from the carriage he drove. From then on, Barrett would formally greet her on the streets, giving her a thrilling moment of pure joy each time.

'A letter, and there's an answer, and he's waiting,' she cried, running into the parlour.

'A letter, and there's a reply, and he's waiting,' she shouted, rushing into the living room.

'Less row!' said her father. 'Here, give it me.'

'Stop making a fuss!' said her father. 'Here, hand it over to me.'

'It's for Miss Tellwright—that's Anna, isn't it? Oh! Scent!' She put the grey envelope to her nose like a flower.

'It's for Miss Tellwright—that's Anna, right? Oh! Scent!' She held the gray envelope to her nose like a flower.

Anna, secretly as excited as her sister, opened the note and read:—'Lansdowne House, Wednesday. Dear Miss Tellwright,—Mother gives tea to the Sunday-school Sewing Meeting here to-morrow. Will you give us the pleasure of your company? I do not think you have been to any of the S.S.S. meetings yet, but we should all be glad to see you and have your assistance. Everyone is working very hard for the Autumn Bazaar, and mother has set her mind on the Sunday-school stall being the best. Do come, will you? Excuse this short notice. Yours sincerely, BEATRICE SUTTON. P.S.—We begin at 3.30.'

Anna, just as excited as her sister, opened the note and read:—'Lansdowne House, Wednesday. Dear Miss Tellwright,—Mother is hosting tea for the Sunday-school Sewing Meeting here tomorrow. Would you join us? I don't think you've been to any of the S.S.S. meetings yet, but we would all love to see you and appreciate your help. Everyone is working really hard for the Autumn Bazaar, and Mom is determined that the Sunday-school stall will be the best. Please come, okay? Sorry for the short notice. Yours sincerely, BEATRICE SUTTON. P.S.—We start at 3:30.'

'They want me to go to their sewing meeting to-morrow,' she exclaimed timidly to her father, pushing the note towards him across the table. 'Must I go, father?'

'They want me to go to their sewing meeting tomorrow,' she said shyly to her father, sliding the note towards him across the table. 'Do I have to go, dad?'

'What dost ask me for? Please thysen. I've nowt do wi' it.'

'What are you asking me for? Please yourself. I have nothing to do with it.'

'I don't want to go——'

"I don't want to go—"

'Oh! Sis, do> go,' Agnes pleaded.

'Oh! Sis, please go,' Agnes pleaded.

'Perhaps I'd better,' she agreed, but with the misgivings of diffidence. 'I haven't a rag to wear. I really must have a new dress, father, at once.'

'Maybe I should,' she said, but with the hesitation of uncertainty. 'I don't have anything to wear. I seriously need a new dress, Dad, right now.'

'Hast forgotten as that there coachman's waiting?' he remarked curtly.

'Haven't you remembered that the coachman is waiting?' he said abruptly.

'Shall I run and tell him you'll go?' Agnes suggested. 'It 'll be splendid for you.'

'Should I run and tell him you're going?' Agnes suggested. 'It'll be great for you.'

'Don't be silly, dear. I must write.'

'Don't be silly, sweetheart. I need to write.'

'Well, write then,' said the child energetically. 'I'll get you the ink and paper.' She flew about and hovered over Anna while the answer to the invitation was being written. Anna made her reply as short and simple as possible, and then tendered it for her father's inspection. 'Will that do?'

'Well, go ahead and write,' the child said eagerly. 'I'll grab you the ink and paper.' She zipped around and hovered over Anna while the response to the invitation was being written. Anna kept her reply as short and straightforward as she could, then handed it over for her father's approval. 'Is that okay?'

He pretended to be nonchalant, but in fact he was somewhat interested.

He acted like he didn't care, but really, he was kind of interested.

'Thou's forgotten to put th' date in,' was all his comment, and he threw the note back.

'You've forgotten to put the date in,' was all he said, and he threw the note back.

'I've put Wednesday.'

"I've scheduled it for Wednesday."

'That's not the date.'

'That's not the right date.'

'Does it matter? Beatrice Sutton only puts Wednesday.'

'Does it matter? Beatrice Sutton just writes Wednesday.'

His response was to walk out of the room.

His response was to leave the room.

'Is he vexed?' Agnes asked anxiously. There had been a whole week of almost perfect amenity.

'Is he upset?' Agnes asked anxiously. There had been a whole week of almost perfect harmony.


The next day at half-past three Anna, having put on her best clothes, was ready to start. She had seen almost nothing of social life, and the prospect of taking part in this entertainment of the Suttons filled her with trepidation. Should she arrive early, in which case she would have to talk more, or late, in which case there would be the ordeal of entering a crowded room? She could not decide. She went into her father's bedroom, whose window overlooked Trafalgar Road, and saw from behind a curtain that small groups of ladies were continually passing up the street to disappear into Alderman Sutton's house. Most of the women she recognised; others she knew but vaguely by sight. Then the stream ceased, and suddenly she heard the kitchen clock strike four. She ran downstairs—Agnes, swollen by importance, was carrying her father's tea into the parlour—and hastened out the back way. In another moment she was at the Suttons' front-door. A servant in black alpaca, with white wristbands, cap, streams, and embroidered apron (each article a dernier cri from Bostock's great shop at Hanbridge), asked her in a subdued and respectful tone to step within. Externally there had been no sign of the unusual, but once inside the house Anna found it a humming hive of activity. Women laden with stuffs and implements were crossing the picture-hung hall, their footsteps noiseless on the thick rugs which lay about in rich confusion. On either hand was an open door, and from each door came the sound of many eager voices. Beyond these doors a broad staircase rose majestically to unseen heights, closing the vista of the hall. As the servant was demanding Anna's name, Beatrice Sutton, radiant and gorgeous, came with a rush out of the room to the left, the dining-room, and, taking her by both hands, kissed her.

The next day at 3:30 PM, Anna, dressed in her best clothes, was ready to go. She hadn’t experienced much of social life, and the thought of attending the Suttons' event made her anxious. Should she arrive early and have to engage in more conversation, or arrive late and face the awkwardness of entering a crowded room? She couldn’t make up her mind. She went into her father’s bedroom, which had a window overlooking Trafalgar Road, and peeked through the curtain to see small groups of ladies walking up the street, disappearing into Alderman Sutton’s house. Most of the women were familiar; others she recognized vaguely by sight. Then the stream of guests stopped, and suddenly she heard the kitchen clock chime four o'clock. She ran downstairs—Agnes, puffed up with importance, was bringing her father’s tea into the parlor—and hurried out the back way. In a moment, she stood at the Suttons' front door. A servant dressed in black alpaca with white cuffs, a cap, ribbons, and an embroidered apron (all the latest fashion from Bostock’s grand shop in Hanbridge) politely asked her to come inside. Outside, everything seemed normal, but once Anna stepped into the house, she found it buzzing with activity. Women laden with materials and tools were crossing the picture-filled hall, their footsteps silent on the thick rugs that lay scattered in rich disarray. On either side were open doors, and from each came the sound of many eager voices. Beyond those doors, a grand staircase rose majestically to unseen heights, blocking the view of the hall. As the servant was asking for Anna’s name, Beatrice Sutton, radiant and stunning, rushed out of the room to the left, the dining room, and took her by both hands, kissing her warmly.

'My dear, we thought you were never coming. Everyone's here, except the men, of course. Come along upstairs and take your things off. I'm so glad you've kept your promise.'

'Did you think I should break it?' said Anna, as they ascended the easy gradient of the stairs.

'Did you think I should break it?' Anna asked as they climbed up the gentle slope of the stairs.

'Oh, no, my dear. But you're such a shy little bird.'

'Oh, no, my dear. But you're such a shy little thing.'

The conception of herself as a shy little bird amused Anna. By a curious chain of ideas she came to wonder who could clean those stairs the better, she or this gay and flitting butterfly in a pale green tea-gown. Beatrice led the way to a large bedroom, crammed with furniture and knick-knacks. There were three mirrors in this spacious apartment—one in the wardrobe, a cheval-glass, and a third over the mantelpiece; the frame of the last was bordered with photographs.

The idea of herself as a shy little bird made Anna chuckle. Through a strange train of thought, she started to wonder who would be better at cleaning those stairs, her or this lively butterfly in a pale green tea-gown. Beatrice showed the way to a large bedroom packed with furniture and trinkets. There were three mirrors in this big room—one in the wardrobe, a full-length mirror, and another above the mantelpiece; the frame of the last one was lined with photographs.

'This is my room,' said Beatrice. 'Will you put your things on the bed?' The bed was already laden with hats, bonnets, jackets, and wraps.

'This is my room,' Beatrice said. 'Could you put your things on the bed?' The bed was already piled high with hats, bonnets, jackets, and wraps.

'I hope your mother won't give me anything fancy to do,' Anna said. 'I'm no good at anything except plain sewing.'

'I hope your mom doesn't ask me to do anything fancy,' Anna said. 'I'm not good at anything except basic sewing.'

'Oh, that's all right,' Beatrice answered carelessly. 'It's all plain sewing.' She drew a cardboard box from her pocket, and offered it to Anna. 'Here, have one.' They were chocolate creams.

'Oh, that’s okay,' Beatrice replied casually. 'It’s just basic sewing.' She pulled a cardboard box from her pocket and handed it to Anna. 'Here, take one.' They were chocolate creams.

'Thanks,' said Anna, taking one. 'Aren't they very expensive? I've never seen any like these before.'

'Thanks,' Anna said, taking one. 'Aren't these really expensive? I've never seen any like this before.'

'Oh! Just ordinary. Four shillings a pound. Papa buys them for me: I simply dote on them. I love to eat them in bed, if I can't sleep.' Beatrice made these statements with her mouth full. 'Don't you adore chocolates?' she added.

'Oh! Just ordinary. Four shillings a pound. Dad buys them for me: I absolutely love them. I enjoy eating them in bed if I can't sleep.' Beatrice said this with her mouth full. 'Don't you just love chocolates?' she added.

'I don't know,' Anna lamely replied. 'Yes, I like them.' She only adored her sister, and perhaps God; and this was the first time she had tasted chocolate.

'I don't know,' Anna weakly replied. 'Yeah, I like them.' She only really loved her sister, and maybe God; and this was the first time she had tried chocolate.

'I couldn't live without them,' said Beatrice. 'Your hair is lovely. I never saw such a brown. What wash do you use?'

"I couldn't live without them," Beatrice said. "Your hair is beautiful. I've never seen such a shade of brown. What shampoo do you use?"

'Wash?' Anna repeated.

"Wash?" Anna asked again.

'Yes, don't you put anything on it?'

'Yeah, don't you put anything on it?'

'No, never.'

'No way.'

'Well! Take care you don't lose it, that's all. Now, will you come and have just a peep at my studio—where I paint, you know? I'd like you to see it before we go down.'

'Well! Just make sure you don't lose it, that's all. Now, will you come and take a quick look at my studio—where I paint, you know? I'd like you to see it before we head downstairs.'

They proceeded to a small room on the second floor, with a sloping ceiling and a dormer window.

They went to a small room on the second floor, with a sloped ceiling and a dormer window.

'I'm obliged to have this room,' Beatrice explained, 'because it's the only one in the house with a north light, and of course you can't do without that. How do you like it?'

"I'm required to use this room," Beatrice said, "because it's the only one in the house with northern light, and you definitely need that. What do you think?"

Anna said that she liked it very much.

Anna said that she liked it a lot.

The walls of the room were hung with various odd curtains of Eastern design. Attached somehow to these curtains some coloured plates, bits of pewter, and a few fans were hung high in apparently precarious suspense. Lower down on the walls were pictures and sketches, chiefly unframed, of flowers, fishes, loaves of bread, candlesticks, mugs, oranges and tea-trays. On an immense easel in the middle of the room was an unfinished portrait of a man.

The walls of the room were adorned with various unusual curtains featuring Eastern designs. Somehow, colored plates, pieces of pewter, and a few fans were attached to these curtains, hanging high in what seemed like a precarious way. Lower down on the walls, there were pictures and sketches, mostly unframed, depicting flowers, fish, loaves of bread, candlesticks, mugs, oranges, and tea trays. In the center of the room stood a large easel displaying an unfinished portrait of a man.

'Who's that?' Anna asked, ignorant of those rules of caution which are observed by the practised frequenter of studios.

'Who's that?' Anna asked, unaware of the caution rules that seasoned studio visitors follow.

'Don't you know?' Beatrice exclaimed, shocked. 'That's papa; I'm doing his portrait; he sits in that chair there. The silly old master at the school won't let me draw from life yet—he keeps me to the antique—so I said to myself I would study the living model at home. I'm dreadfully in earnest about it, you know—I really am. Mother says I work far too long up here.'

"Don't you know?" Beatrice exclaimed, shocked. "That's Dad; I'm doing his portrait; he sits in that chair over there. The clueless old teacher at school won't let me draw from life yet—he insists I stick to the classics—so I told myself I would study the live model at home. I'm seriously committed to it, you know—I really am. Mom says I spend way too much time up here."

Anna was unable to perceive that the picture bore any resemblance to Alderman Sutton, except in the matter of the aldermanic robe, which she could now trace beneath the portrait's neck. The studies on the walls pleased her much better. Their realism amazed her. One could make out not only that here for instance, was a fish—there was no doubt that it was a hallibut; the solid roundness of the oranges and the glitter on the tea-trays seemed miraculously achieved. 'Have you actually done all these?' she asked, in genuine admiration. 'I think they're splendid.'

Anna couldn't see any resemblance between the picture and Alderman Sutton, except for the aldermanic robe, which she could now spot beneath the portrait's neck. She preferred the studies on the walls much more. Their realism blew her away. For example, one could clearly see that there was a fish—there was no doubt it was a halibut; the solid roundness of the oranges and the shine on the tea trays looked almost magical. "Did you really do all these?" she asked, genuinely impressed. "I think they’re amazing."

'Oh, yes, they're all mine; they're only still-life studies,' Beatrice said contemptuously of them, but she was nevertheless flattered.

'Oh, yes, they're all mine; they're just still-life studies,' Beatrice said dismissively about them, but she was still flattered.

'I see now that that is Mr. Sutton,' Anna said, pointing to the easel picture.

'I see now that that is Mr. Sutton,' Anna said, pointing to the easel picture.

'Yes, it's pa right enough. But I'm sure I'm boring you. Let's go down now, or perhaps we shall catch it from mother.'

'Yeah, it's dad for sure. But I bet I’m boring you. Let’s head down now, or we might get in trouble with mom.'

As Anna, in the wake of Beatrice, entered the drawing-room, a dozen or more women glanced at her with keen curiosity, and the even flow of conversation ceased for a moment, to be immediately resumed. In the centre of the room, with her back to the fire-place, Mrs. Sutton was seated at a square table, cutting out. Although the afternoon was warm she had a white woollen wrap over her shoulders; for the rest she was attired in plain black silk, with a large stuff apron containing a pocket for scissors and chalk. She jumped up with the activity of which Beatrice had inherited a part, and greeted Anna, kissing her heartily.

As Anna walked into the drawing room, following Beatrice, a dozen or so women looked at her with curiosity, and the flow of conversation paused briefly before picking back up. In the center of the room, with her back to the fireplace, Mrs. Sutton sat at a square table, cutting fabric. Even though the afternoon was warm, she wore a white wool wrap over her shoulders; otherwise, she was dressed in plain black silk, with a large apron that had pockets for scissors and chalk. She sprang up with the lively energy that Beatrice had inherited and warmly greeted Anna with a hug.

'How are you, my dear? So pleased you have come.' The time-worn phrases came from her thin, nervous lips full of sincere and kindly welcome. Her wrinkled face broke into a warm, life-giving smile. 'Beatrice, find Miss Anna a chair.' There were two chairs in the bay of the window, and one of them was occupied by Miss Dickinson, whom Anna slightly knew. The other, being empty, was assigned to the late-comer.

"How are you, my dear? I'm so glad you came." The familiar words came from her fragile, anxious lips, filled with genuine and friendly warmth. Her wrinkled face lit up with a welcoming smile. "Beatrice, get Miss Anna a chair." There were two chairs in the window nook, one taken by Miss Dickinson, someone Anna knew just a little. The other chair, being vacant, was given to the newcomer.

'Now you want something to do, I suppose,' said Beatrice.

'Now you want something to do, I guess,' said Beatrice.

'Please.'

'Please.'

'Mother, let Miss Tellwright have something to get on with at once. She has a lot of time to make up.'

'Mom, let Miss Tellwright have something to work on right away. She has a lot of catching up to do.'

Mrs. Sutton, who had sat down again, smiled across at Anna. 'Let me see, now, what can we give her?'

Mrs. Sutton, who had sat down again, smiled at Anna. "Let me think, what can we give her?"

'There's several of those boys' nightgowns ready tacked,' said Miss Dickinson, who was stitching at a boy's nightgown. 'Here's one half-finished,' and she picked up an inchoate garment from the floor. 'Perhaps Miss Tellwright wouldn't mind finishing it.'

'There are several of those boys' nightgowns ready to be stitched,' said Miss Dickinson, who was working on a boy's nightgown. 'Here's one half-finished,' and she picked up an unfinished garment from the floor. 'Maybe Miss Tellwright wouldn't mind finishing it.'

'Yes, I will do my best at it,' said Anna.

'Yes, I will give it my all,' said Anna.

The thoughtless girl had arrived at the sewing meeting without needles or thimble or scissors, but one lady or another supplied these deficiencies, and soon she was at work. She stitched her best and her hardest, with head bent, and all her wits concentrated on the task. Most of the others seemed to be doing likewise, though not to the detriment of conversation. Beatrice sank down on a stool near her mother, and, threading a needle with coloured silk, took up a long piece of elaborate embroidery.

The clueless girl showed up at the sewing meeting without needles, a thimble, or scissors, but one lady or another lent her what she needed, and soon she was busy sewing. She stitched her best and worked hard, with her head down, fully focused on the task. Most of the others seemed to be doing the same, though they still chatted away. Beatrice settled onto a stool near her mother, and, threading a needle with colored silk, began to work on a long piece of intricate embroidery.

The general subjects of talk were the Revival, now over, with a superb record of seventy saved souls, the school-treat shortly to occur, the summer holidays, the fashions, and the change of ministers which would take place in August. The talkers were the wives and daughters of tradesmen and small manufacturers, together with a few girls of a somewhat lower status, employed in shops: it was for the sake of these latter that the sewing meeting was always fixed for the weekly half-holiday. The splendour of Mrs. Sutton's drawing-room was a little dazzling to most of the guests, and Mrs. Sutton herself seemed scarcely of a piece with it. The fact was that the luxury of the abode was mainly due to Alderman Sutton's inability to refuse anything to his daughter, whose tastes lay in the direction of rich draperies, large or quaint chairs, occasional tables, dwarf screens, hand-painted mirrors, and an opulence of bric-à-brac. The hand of Beatrice might be perceived everywhere, even in the position of the piano, whose back, adorned with carelessly-flung silks and photographs, was turned away from the wall. The pictures on the walls had been acquired gradually by Mr. Sutton at auction sales: it was commonly held that he had an excellent taste in pictures, and that his daughter's aptitude for the arts came from him, and not from her mother. The gilt clock and side pieces on the mantelpiece were also peculiarly Mr. Sutton's, having been publicly presented to him by the directors of a local building society of which he had been chairman for many years.

The main topics of conversation were the Revival, which had just ended with an impressive record of seventy saved souls, the upcoming school treat, summer vacations, fashion trends, and the change of ministers set for August. The people chatting were the wives and daughters of tradespeople and small manufacturers, along with a few girls of slightly lower status who worked in shops: the sewing meeting was always scheduled for the weekly half-holiday for their benefit. The lavishness of Mrs. Sutton's drawing-room was somewhat overwhelming to most guests, and Mrs. Sutton herself seemed a bit out of place in it. The truth was that the luxury of the home was largely due to Alderman Sutton's inability to deny anything to his daughter, who had a taste for rich fabrics, large or quirky chairs, occasional tables, small screens, hand-painted mirrors, and an abundance of decorative items. Beatrice's influence was noticeable everywhere, even in the placement of the piano, whose back, covered with carelessly arranged silks and photographs, faced away from the wall. The pictures on the walls had gradually been collected by Mr. Sutton at auctions: it was widely believed that he had excellent taste in art and that his daughter's artistic talent was inherited from him, not her mother. The gilt clock and decorative pieces on the mantel were uniquely Mr. Sutton's, having been publicly given to him by the directors of a local building society where he had served as chairman for many years.

Less intimidated by all this unexampled luxury than she was reassured by the atmosphere of combined and homely effort, the lowliness of several of her companions, and the kind, simple face of Mrs. Sutton, Anna quickly began to feel at ease. She paused in her work, and, glancing around her, happened to catch the eye of Miss Dickinson, who offered a remark about the weather. Miss Dickinson was head-assistant at a draper's in St. Luke's Square, and a pillar of the Sunday-school, which Sunday by Sunday and year by year had watched her develop from a rosy-cheeked girl into a confirmed spinster with sallow and warted face. Miss Dickinson supported her mother, and was a pattern to her sex. She was lovable, but had never been loved. She would have made an admirable wife and mother, but fate had decided that this material was to be wasted. Miss Dickinson found compensation for the rigour of destiny in gossip, as innocent as indiscreet. It was said that she had a tongue.

Less intimidated by all this unusual luxury than she was comforted by the atmosphere of teamwork and homey effort, the modesty of several of her companions, and the kind, simple face of Mrs. Sutton, Anna quickly began to feel at ease. She paused in her work and, glancing around her, happened to catch the eye of Miss Dickinson, who commented on the weather. Miss Dickinson was the head assistant at a drapery in St. Luke's Square and a pillar of the Sunday school, which week after week and year after year had watched her grow from a rosy-cheeked girl into a confirmed spinster with a pale, wart-marked face. Miss Dickinson supported her mother and was a role model to her peers. She was lovable but had never experienced love. She would have made an excellent wife and mother, but fate had decided that this potential was to be squandered. Miss Dickinson found comfort for the harshness of destiny in gossip, as innocent as it was indiscreet. It was said that she had a sharp tongue.

'I hear,' said Miss Dickinson, lowering her contralto voice to a confidential tone, 'that you are going into partnership with Mr. Mynors, Miss Tellwright.'

'I hear,' said Miss Dickinson, lowering her deep voice to a confidential tone, 'that you are going into business with Mr. Mynors, Miss Tellwright.'

The suddenness of the attack took Anna by surprise. Her first defensive impulse was boldly to deny the statement, or at the least to say that it was premature. A fortnight ago, under similar circumstances, she would not have hesitated to do so. But for more than a week Anna had been 'leading a new life,' which chiefly meant a meticulous avoidance of the sins of speech. Never to deviate from the truth, never to utter an unkind or a thoughtless word, under whatever provocation: these were two of her self-imposed rules. 'Yes,' she answered Miss Dickinson, 'I am.'

The suddenness of the attack caught Anna off guard. Her first instinct was to boldly deny the statement or at least say it was too soon to make such a claim. Two weeks ago, in a similar situation, she wouldn’t have thought twice about doing so. But for more than a week, Anna had been "living a new life," which mainly meant carefully avoiding speaking any sins. Never straying from the truth, never saying an unkind or thoughtless word, no matter the provocation: these were two of her self-imposed rules. "Yes," she replied to Miss Dickinson, "I am."

'Rather a novelty, isn't it?' Miss Dickinson smiled amiably.

'That's quite a novelty, isn’t it?' Miss Dickinson smiled warmly.

'I don't know,' said Anna. 'It's only a business arrangement; father arranged it. Really I have nothing to do with it, and I had no idea that people were talking about it.'

'I don’t know,' Anna said. 'It’s just a business deal; my father set it up. Honestly, I’m not involved at all, and I had no clue that people were discussing it.'

'Oh! Of course I should never breathe a syllable,' Miss Dickinson said with emphasis. 'I make a practice of never talking about other people's affairs. I always find that best, don't you? But I happened to hear it mentioned in the shop.'

'Oh! Of course I should never say a word,' Miss Dickinson said with emphasis. 'I make it a rule never to discuss other people's business. I always think that's the best approach, don't you? But I happened to hear it mentioned in the store.'

'It's very funny how things get abroad, isn't it?' said Anna.

'It's really funny how things spread around, isn’t it?' said Anna.

'Yes, indeed,' Miss Dickinson concurred. 'Mr. Mynors hasn't been to our sewing meetings for quite a long time, but I expect he'll turn up to-day.'

'Yes, definitely,' Miss Dickinson agreed. 'Mr. Mynors hasn't come to our sewing meetings for quite some time, but I expect he'll show up today.'

Anna took thought. 'Is this a sort of special meeting, then?'

Anna thought for a moment. 'Is this some kind of special meeting, then?'

'Oh, not at all. But we all of us said just now, while you were upstairs, that he would be sure to come,' Miss Dickinson's features, skilled in innuendo, conveyed that which was too delicate for utterance. Anna said nothing.

'Oh, not at all. But we all just said, while you were upstairs, that he would definitely come,' Miss Dickinson's expression, masterful in subtlety, communicated what was too delicate to say out loud. Anna remained silent.

'You see a good deal of him at your house, don't you?' Miss Dickinson continued.

'You see a lot of him at your place, right?' Miss Dickinson continued.

'He comes sometimes to see father on business,' Anna replied sharply, breaking one of her rules.

"He sometimes comes to see Dad about business," Anna replied sharply, breaking one of her rules.

'Oh! Of course I meant that. You didn't suppose I meant anything else, did you?' Miss Dickinson smiled pleasantly. She was thirty-five years of age. Twenty of those years she had passed in a desolating routine; she had existed in the midst of life and never lived; she knew no finer joy than that which she at that moment experienced.

'Oh! Of course I meant that. You didn’t think I meant anything else, did you?' Miss Dickinson smiled warmly. She was thirty-five years old. Twenty of those years had been spent in a draining routine; she had been present in life but never truly lived; she knew no greater joy than what she was feeling at that moment.

Again Anna offered no reply. The door opened, and every eye was centred on the stately Mrs. Clayton Vernon, who, with Mrs. Banks, the minister's wife, was in charge of the other half of the sewing party in the dining-room. Mrs. Clayton Vernon had heroic proportions, a nose which everyone admitted to be aristocratic, exquisite tact, and the calm consciousness of social superiority. In Bursley she was a great lady: her instincts were those of a great lady; and she would have been a great lady no matter to what sphere her God had called her. She had abundant white hair, and wore a flowered purple silk, in the antique taste.

Again, Anna didn't respond. The door opened, and all eyes were on the impressive Mrs. Clayton Vernon, who, along with Mrs. Banks, the minister's wife, was leading the other half of the sewing party in the dining room. Mrs. Clayton Vernon had a commanding presence, a nose that everyone agreed was aristocratic, exquisite tact, and a composed awareness of her social status. In Bursley, she was considered a great lady: her instincts were those of a highborn woman; and she would have been a great lady regardless of the path her God had chosen for her. She had plenty of white hair and wore a floral purple silk dress in an old-fashioned style.

'Beatrice, my dear,' she began, 'you have deserted us.'

'Beatrice, my dear,' she started, 'you've abandoned us.'

'Have I, Mrs. Vernon?' the girl answered with involuntary deference. 'I was just coming in.'

'Have I, Mrs. Vernon?' the girl replied with a hint of automatic respect. 'I was just coming in.'

'Well, I am sent as a deputation from the other room to ask you to sing something.'

'Well, I've been sent from the other room to ask you to sing something.'

'I'm very busy, Mrs. Vernon. I shall never get this mantel-cloth finished in time.'

'I'm really busy, Mrs. Vernon. I won't finish this mantel-cloth on time.'

'We shall all work better for a little music,' Mrs. Clayton Vernon urged. 'Your voice is a precious gift, and should be used for the benefit of all. We entreat, my dear girl.'

'We could all use a bit of music to help us work better,' Mrs. Clayton Vernon encouraged. 'Your voice is a valuable gift and should be shared for everyone's benefit. We implore you, my dear girl.'

Beatrice arose from the footstool and dropped her embroidery.

Beatrice got up from the footstool and let her embroidery fall.

'Thank you,' said Mrs. Clayton Vernon. 'If both doors are left open we shall hear nicely.'

'Thank you,' said Mrs. Clayton Vernon. 'If we leave both doors open, we’ll hear just fine.'

'What would you like?' Beatrice asked.

'What do you want?' Beatrice asked.

'I once heard you sing "Nazareth," and I shall never forget it. Sing that. It will do us all good.'

'I once heard you sing "Nazareth," and I will never forget it. Sing that. It will be good for all of us.'

Mrs. Clayton Vernon departed with the large movement of an argosy, and Beatrice sat down to the piano and removed her bracelets. 'The accompaniment is simply frightful towards the end,' she said, looking at Anna with a grimace. 'Excuse mistakes.'

Mrs. Clayton Vernon left with a big flourish, and Beatrice sat down at the piano and took off her bracelets. "The accompaniment is just awful towards the end," she said, making a face at Anna. "Please excuse any mistakes."

During the song, Mrs. Sutton beckoned with her finger to Anna to come and occupy the stool vacated by Beatrice. Glad to leave the vicinity of Miss Dickinson, Anna obeyed, creeping on tiptoe across the intervening space. 'I thought I would like to have you near me, my dear,' she whispered maternally. When Beatrice had sung the song and somehow executed that accompaniment which has terrorised whole multitudes of drawing-room pianists, there was a great deal of applause from both rooms. Mrs. Sutton bent down and whispered in Anna's ear: 'Her voice has been very well trained, has it not?' 'Yes, very,' Anna replied. But, though 'Nazareth' had seemed to her wonderful, she had neither understood it nor enjoyed it. She tried to like it, but the effect of it on her was bizarre rather than pleasing.

During the song, Mrs. Sutton gestured for Anna to come and sit on the stool that Beatrice had just left. Happy to get away from Miss Dickinson, Anna complied, tiptoeing across the space between them. “I thought I’d like you close to me, my dear,” she whispered in a motherly tone. After Beatrice finished singing and managed to play that accompaniment that has scared many drawing-room pianists, there was a lot of applause from both rooms. Mrs. Sutton leaned down and whispered in Anna's ear, “Her voice has been very well trained, hasn't it?” “Yes, very,” Anna responded. However, even though “Nazareth” had seemed wonderful to her, she didn’t truly understand it or enjoy it. She tried to appreciate it, but the effect it had on her was more strange than enjoyable.

Shortly after half-past five the gong sounded for tea, and the ladies, bidden by Mrs. Sutton, unanimously thronged into the hall and towards a room at the back of the house. Beatrice came and took Anna by the arm. As they were crossing the hall there was a ring at the door. 'There's father—and Mr. Banks, too,' Beatrice exclaimed, opening to them. Everyone in the vicinity, animated suddenly by this appearance of the male sex, turned with welcoming smiles. 'A greeting to you all,' the minister ejaculated with formal suavity as he removed his low hat. The Alderman beamed a rather absent-minded goodwill on the entire company, and said: 'Well! I see we're just in time for tea.' Then he kissed his daughter, and she accepted from him his hat and stick. 'Miss Tellwright, pa,' Beatrice said, drawing Anna forward: he shook hands with her heartily, emerging for a moment from the benignant dream in which he seemed usually to exist.

Shortly after half-past five, the gong rang for tea, and the ladies, called by Mrs. Sutton, all hurried into the hall and toward a room at the back of the house. Beatrice came and took Anna by the arm. As they were crossing the hall, someone rang the doorbell. "It's Dad—and Mr. Banks, too," Beatrice said, opening the door for them. Everyone nearby, suddenly energized by the presence of men, turned with welcoming smiles. "Greetings to you all," the minister said politely as he took off his hat. The Alderman smiled somewhat absentmindedly at everyone and said, "Well! I see we're just in time for tea." Then he kissed his daughter, and she took his hat and cane. "This is Miss Tellwright, Dad," Beatrice said, pulling Anna forward; he shook hands with her warmly, briefly coming out of the kind of daydream he usually seemed to be in.

That air of being rapt by some inward vision, common in very old men, probably signified nothing in the case of William Sutton: it was a habitual pose into which he had perhaps unconsciously fallen. But people connected it with his humble archæological, geological, and zoological hobbies, which had sprung from his membership of the Five Towns Field Club, and which most of his acquaintances regarded with amiable secret disdain. At a school-treat once, held at a popular rural resort, he had taken some of the teachers to a cave, and pointing out the wave-like formation of its roof had told them that this peculiar phenomenon had actually been caused by waves of the sea. The discovery, valid enough and perfectly substantiated by an inquiry into the levels, was extremely creditable to the amateur geologist, but it seriously impaired his reputation among the Wesleyan community as a shrewd man of the world. Few believed the statement, or even tried to believe it, and nearly all thenceforth looked on him as a man who must be humoured in his harmless hallucinations and inexplicable curiosities. On the other hand, the collection of arrowheads, Roman pottery, fossils and birds' eggs which he had given to the Museum in the Wedgwood Institution was always viewed with municipal pride.

That look of being lost in thought, common in very old men, probably meant nothing for William Sutton: it was just a habitual stance he had maybe unconsciously adopted. But people associated it with his modest hobbies in archaeology, geology, and zoology, which stemmed from his membership in the Five Towns Field Club, and most of his acquaintances regarded these interests with a friendly yet hidden disdain. At a school picnic once, held at a popular rural spot, he took some teachers to a cave and pointed out the wave-like formation of its ceiling, explaining that this unique feature had actually been shaped by ocean waves. The discovery, valid enough and perfectly backed by an analysis of the levels, was quite impressive for the amateur geologist but seriously hurt his reputation among the Wesleyan community as someone wise and worldly. Few believed his claim, or even tried to, and nearly everyone thereafter viewed him as a person who needed to be indulged in his harmless delusions and odd curiosities. On the flip side, the collection of arrowheads, Roman pottery, fossils, and birds' eggs that he donated to the Museum in the Wedgwood Institution was always seen with local pride.

The tea-room opened by a large French window into a conservatory, and a table was laid down the whole length of the room and the conservatory. Mr. Sutton sat at one end and the minister at the other, but neither Mrs. Sutton nor Beatrice occupied a distinctive place. The ancient clumsy custom of having tea-urns on the table itself had been abolished by Beatrice, who had read in a paper that carving was now never done at table, but by a neatly-dressed parlour-maid at the sideboard. Consequently the tea-urns were exiled to the sideboard, and the tea dispensed by a couple of maids. Thus, as Beatrice had explained to her mother, the hostess was left free to devote herself to the social arts. The board was richly spread with fancy breads and cakes, jams of Mrs. Sutton's own celebrated preserving, diverse sandwiches compiled by Beatrice, and one or two large examples of the famous Bursley pork-pie. Numerous as the company was, several chairs remained empty after everyone was seated. Anna found herself again next to Miss Dickinson, and five places from the minister, in the conservatory. Beatrice and her mother were higher up, in the room. Grace was sung, by request of Mrs. Sutton. At first, silence prevailed among the guests, and the inquiries of the maids about milk and sugar were almost painfully audible. Then Mr. Banks, glancing up the long vista of the table and pretending to descry some object in the distance, called out:

The tea room opened through a large French window into a conservatory, with a table stretching the entire length of both rooms. Mr. Sutton sat at one end and the minister at the other, but neither Mrs. Sutton nor Beatrice had a specific spot. Beatrice had eliminated the old-fashioned custom of having tea urns on the table, having read in a magazine that carving was now done by a neatly dressed parlor maid at the sideboard instead. So, the tea urns were moved to the sideboard, and the tea was served by a couple of maids. This way, Beatrice explained to her mother, the hostess could focus on socializing. The table was beautifully set with fancy breads and cakes, jams made by Mrs. Sutton herself, various sandwiches prepared by Beatrice, and a few large examples of the famous Bursley pork pie. Despite the large number of guests, several chairs remained empty after everyone was seated. Anna found herself once again next to Miss Dickinson and five seats away from the minister in the conservatory. Beatrice and her mother were further up in the room. Grace was sung upon Mrs. Sutton's request. At first, there was silence among the guests, and the maids’ questions about milk and sugar were almost painfully noticeable. Then Mr. Banks, looking up the long view of the table and pretending to see something in the distance, called out:

'Worthy host, I doubt not you are there, but I can only see you with the eye of faith.'

'Worthy host, I have no doubt you're there, but I can only see you with the eye of faith.'

At this all laughed, and a natural ease was established. The minister and Mrs. Clayton Vernon, who sat on his right, exchanged badinage on the merits and demerits of pork-pies, and their neighbours formed an appreciative audience. Then there was a sharp ring at the front door, and one of the maids went out.

At this, everyone laughed, and a relaxed atmosphere was created. The minister and Mrs. Clayton Vernon, who was sitting to his right, joked about the pros and cons of pork pies, while their neighbors enjoyed the conversation. Then, there was a sudden ring at the front door, and one of the maids went out.

'Didn't I tell you?' Miss Dickinson whispered to Anna.

"Didn't I tell you?" Miss Dickinson whispered to Anna.

'What?' asked Anna.

"What?" Anna asked.

'That he would come to-day—Mr. Mynors, I mean.'

'That he would come today—Mr. Mynors, I mean.'

'Who can that be?' Mrs. Sutton's voice was heard from the room.

'Who could that be?' Mrs. Sutton's voice came from the room.

'I dare say it's Henry, mother,' Beatrice answered.

'I think it's Henry, mom,' Beatrice replied.

Mynors entered, joyous and self-possessed, a white rose in his coat: he shook hands with Mr. and Mrs. Sutton, sent a greeting down the table to Mr. Banks and Mrs. Clayton Vernon, and offered a general apology for being late.

Mynors walked in, happy and confident, a white rose in his jacket: he shook hands with Mr. and Mrs. Sutton, sent a greeting down the table to Mr. Banks and Mrs. Clayton Vernon, and offered a general apology for being late.

'Sit here,' said Beatrice to him, sharply, indicating a chair between Mrs. Banks and herself. 'Mrs. Banks has a word to say to you about the singing of that anthem last Sunday.'

'Sit here,' Beatrice said to him, sharply, pointing to a chair between Mrs. Banks and herself. 'Mrs. Banks has something to say to you about the singing of that anthem last Sunday.'

Mynors made some laughing rejoinder, and the voices sank so that Anna could not catch what was said.

Mynors made a joking reply, and the voices got quieter so that Anna couldn't hear what was being said.

'That's a new frock that Miss Sutton is wearing to-day,' Miss Dickinson remarked in an undertone.

'That's a new dress that Miss Sutton is wearing today,' Miss Dickinson said quietly.

'It looks new,' Anna agreed.

'Looks new,' Anna agreed.

'Do you like it?'

"Do you like this?"

'Yes. Don't you?'

'Yeah. Don't you?'

'Hum! Yes. It was made at Brunt's at Hanbridge. It's quite the fashion to go there now,' said Miss Dickinson, and added, almost inaudibly, 'She's put it on for Mr. Mynors. You saw how she saved that chair for him.'

'Hum! Yes. It was made at Brunt's in Hanbridge. It's really popular to go there now,' said Miss Dickinson, and added, almost under her breath, 'She's wearing it for Mr. Mynors. You noticed how she saved that chair for him.'

Anna made no reply.

Anna didn't respond.

'Did you know they were engaged once?' Miss Dickinson resumed.

'Did you know they were engaged at one point?' Miss Dickinson continued.

'No,' said Anna.

'No,' Anna said.

'At least people said they were. It was all over the town—oh! let me see, three years ago.'

'At least that’s what people said. It was all over town—oh! let me think, about three years ago.'

'I had not heard,' said Anna.

"I didn't hear," Anna said.

During the rest of the meal she said little. On some natures Miss Dickinson's gossip had the effect of bringing them to silence. Anna had not seen Mynors since the previous Sunday, and now she was apparently unperceived by him. He talked gaily with Beatrice and Mrs. Banks: that group was a centre of animation. Anna envied their ease of manner, their smooth and sparkling flow of conversation. She had the sensation of feeling vulgar, clumsy, tongue-tied; Mynors and Beatrice possessed something which she would never possess. So they had been engaged! But had they? Or was it an idle rumour, manufactured by one who spent her life in such creations? Anna was conscious of misgivings. She had despised Beatrice once, but now it seemed that after all Beatrice was the natural equal of Henry Mynors. Was it more likely that Mynors or she, Anna, should be mistaken in Beatrice? That Beatrice had generous instincts she was sure. Anna lost confidence in herself; she felt humbled, out-of-place, and shamed.

During the rest of the meal, she said very little. In some cases, Miss Dickinson's gossip had a way of silencing others. Anna hadn't seen Mynors since the previous Sunday, and now he seemed unaware of her presence. He was chatting cheerfully with Beatrice and Mrs. Banks: that group was vibrant and lively. Anna envied their confidence and the effortless, sparkling flow of their conversation. She felt awkward, clumsy, and at a loss for words; Mynors and Beatrice had something she believed she would never have. So they had been engaged! But had they? Or was it just a rumor created by someone who thrived on gossip? Anna felt uncertain. She had once looked down on Beatrice, but now it seemed that Beatrice was, after all, a fitting match for Henry Mynors. Was it more likely that Mynors or she, Anna, was mistaken about Beatrice? She was sure that Beatrice had generous instincts. Anna lost faith in herself; she felt small, out of place, and embarrassed.

'If our hostess and the company will kindly excuse me,' said the minister with a pompous air, looking at his watch, 'I must go. I have an important appointment, or an appointment which some people think is important.'

'If our hostess and everyone here will kindly excuse me,' said the minister with a self-important tone, glancing at his watch, 'I need to leave. I have an important appointment, or at least one that some people consider important.'

He got up and made various adieux. The elaborate meal, complex with fifty dainties each of which had to be savoured, was not nearly over. The parson stopped in his course up the room to speak with Mrs. Sutton. After he had shaken hands with her, he caught the admired violet eyes of his slim wife, a lady of independent fortune whom the wives of circuit stewards found it difficult to please in the matter of furniture, and who despite her forty years still kept something of the pose of a spoiled beauty. As a minister's spouse this languishing but impeccable and invariably correct dame was unique even in the experience of Mrs. Clayton Vernon.

He got up and said his goodbyes. The fancy meal, complicated with fifty delicacies that needed to be enjoyed, was far from over. The pastor paused on his way across the room to talk to Mrs. Sutton. After they shook hands, he noticed the captivating violet eyes of his slender wife, a woman with her own fortune whom the wives of circuit stewards found hard to satisfy when it came to furniture. Even at forty, she still had a hint of the demeanor of a spoiled beauty. As a minister's wife, this languid yet always proper lady was one of a kind, even in Mrs. Clayton Vernon's experience.

'Shall you not be home early, Rex?' she asked in the tone of a young wife lounging amid the delicate odours of a boudoir.

'Are you not coming home early, Rex?' she asked in the tone of a young wife relaxing amid the soft scents of a bedroom.

'My love,' he replied with the stern fixity of a histrionic martyr, 'did you ever know me have a free evening?'

'My love,' he answered with the serious intensity of a dramatic martyr, 'did you ever know me to have a free evening?'

The Alderman accompanied his pastor to the door.

The Alderman walked with his pastor to the door.

After tea, Mynors was one of the first to leave the room, and Anna one of the last, but he accosted her in the hall, on the way back to the drawing-room, and asked how she was, and how Agnes was, with such deference and sincerity of regard for herself and everything that was hers that she could not fail to be impressed. Her sense of humiliation and of uncertainty was effaced by a single word, a single glance. Uplifted by a delicious reassurance, she passed into the drawing-room, expecting him to follow: strange to say, he did not do so. Work was resumed, but with less ardour than before. It was in fact impossible to be strenuously diligent after one of Mrs. Sutton's teas, and in every heart, save those which beat over the most perfect and vigorous digestive organs, there was a feeling of repentance. The building-society's clock on the mantel-piece intoned seven: all expressed surprise at the lateness of the hour, and Mrs. Clayton Vernon, pleading fatigue after her recent indisposition, quietly departed. As soon as she was gone, Anna said to Mrs. Sutton that she too must go.

After tea, Mynors was one of the first to leave the room, and Anna was one of the last, but he caught up with her in the hall on the way back to the drawing-room and asked how she was, and how Agnes was, with such respect and genuine concern for her and everything related to her that she couldn't help but feel impressed. Her feelings of humiliation and uncertainty vanished with just a single word and glance. Feeling a wonderful sense of reassurance, she walked into the drawing-room, expecting him to follow; oddly enough, he didn't. They resumed work, but with less enthusiasm than before. It was really impossible to be focused after one of Mrs. Sutton's teas, and in every heart, except those with the healthiest and most robust digestive systems, there was a sense of regret. The building society's clock on the mantelpiece announced seven: everyone expressed surprise at how late it was, and Mrs. Clayton Vernon, citing fatigue from her recent illness, quietly left. As soon as she was gone, Anna told Mrs. Sutton that she too had to go.

'Why, my dear?' Mrs. Sutton asked.

'Why, my dear?' Mrs. Sutton asked.

'I shall be needed at home,' Anna replied.

'I need to be home,' Anna replied.

'Ah! In that case—— I will come upstairs with you, my dear,' said Mrs. Sutton.

'Ah! In that case—— I will come upstairs with you, my dear,' said Mrs. Sutton.

When they were in the bedroom, Mrs. Sutton suddenly clasped her hand. 'How is it with you, dear Anna?' she said, gazing anxiously into the girl's eyes. Anna knew what she meant, but made no answer. 'Is it well?' the earnest old woman asked.

When they were in the bedroom, Mrs. Sutton suddenly clasped her hand. 'How are you doing, dear Anna?' she said, looking anxiously into the girl's eyes. Anna knew what she meant, but didn’t answer. 'Is everything okay?' the sincere old woman asked.

'I hope so,' said Anna, averting her eyes, 'I am trying.'

'I hope so,' Anna said, looking away, 'I’m trying.'

Mrs. Sutton kissed her almost passionately. 'Ah! my dear,' she exclaimed with an impulsive gesture, 'I am glad, so glad. I did so want to have a word with you. You must "lean hard," as Miss Havergal says. "Lean hard" on Him. Do not be afraid.' And then, changing her tone: 'You are looking pale, Anna. You want a holiday. We shall be going to the Isle of Man in August or September. Would your father let you come with us?'

Mrs. Sutton kissed her almost passionately. 'Ah! my dear,' she exclaimed with an enthusiastic gesture, 'I’m so glad, really glad. I really wanted to talk to you. You must "lean hard," like Miss Havergal says. "Lean hard" on Him. Don’t be afraid.' And then, shifting her tone: 'You look pale, Anna. You need a break. We're planning to go to the Isle of Man in August or September. Do you think your father would let you join us?'

'I don't know,' said Anna. She knew, however, that he would not. Nevertheless the suggestion gave her much pleasure.

"I don't know," Anna said. She did know, though, that he wouldn't. Still, the suggestion brought her a lot of joy.

'We must see about that later,' said Mrs. Sutton, and they went downstairs.

"We'll deal with that later," Mrs. Sutton said, and they went downstairs.

'I must say good-bye to Beatrice. Where is she?' Anna said in the hall. One of the servants directed them to the dining-room. The Alderman and Henry Mynors were looking together at a large photogravure of Sant's 'The Soul's Awakening,' which Mr. Sutton had recently bought, and Beatrice was exhibiting her embroidery to a group of ladies: sundry stitchers were scattered about, including Miss Dickinson.

'I have to say goodbye to Beatrice. Where is she?' Anna asked in the hall. One of the servants pointed them to the dining room. The Alderman and Henry Mynors were admiring a large photogravure of Sant's 'The Soul's Awakening,' which Mr. Sutton had recently purchased, and Beatrice was showing her embroidery to a group of ladies: various stitchers were spread around, including Miss Dickinson.

'It is a great picture—a picture that makes you think,' Henry was saying, seriously, and the Alderman, feeling as the artist might have felt, was obviously flattered by this sagacious praise.

'It's a great painting—one that really makes you think,' Henry said earnestly, and the Alderman, feeling as the artist probably would have, was clearly pleased by this insightful compliment.

Anna said good-night to Miss Dickinson and then to Beatrice. Mynors, hearing the words, turned round. 'Well, I must go. Good evening,' he said suddenly to the astonished Alderman.

Anna said goodnight to Miss Dickinson and then to Beatrice. Mynors, hearing her words, turned around. "Well, I have to go. Good evening," he suddenly said to the surprised Alderman.

'What? Now?' the latter inquired, scarcely pleased to find that Mynors could tear himself away from the picture with so little difficulty.

'What? Now?' the latter asked, not very pleased to see that Mynors could pull himself away from the picture so easily.

'Yes.'

Yes.

'Good-night, Mr. Mynors,' said Anna.

"Good night, Mr. Mynors," said Anna.

'If I may I will walk down with you,' Mynors imperturbably answered.

'If you don't mind, I'll walk down with you,' Mynors replied calmly.

It was one of those dramatic moments which arrive without the slightest warning. The gleam of joyous satisfaction in Miss Dickinson's eyes showed that she alone had foreseen this declaration. For a declaration it was, and a formal declaration. Mynors stood there calm, confident with masculine superiority, and his glance seemed to say to those swiftly alert women, whose faces could not disguise a thrilling excitation: 'Yes. Let all know that I, Henry Mynors, the desired of all, am honourably captive to this shy and perfect creature who is blushing because I have said what I have said.' Even the Alderman forgot his photogravure. Beatrice hurriedly resumed her explanation of the embroidery.

It was one of those dramatic moments that hit without warning. The gleam of joy in Miss Dickinson's eyes showed that she alone had anticipated this declaration. And it was a declaration—a formal one. Mynors stood there, calm and confident, radiating masculine superiority, and his look seemed to communicate to the eager women, whose faces couldn't hide their excitement: 'Yes. Let everyone know that I, Henry Mynors, the one everyone wants, am honorably trapped by this shy and perfect girl who is blushing because of what I just said.' Even the Alderman forgot his photogravure. Beatrice quickly went back to explaining the embroidery.

'How did you like the sewing meeting?' Mynors asked Anna when they were on the pavement.

"How did you like the sewing meeting?" Mynors asked Anna when they were on the sidewalk.

Anna paused. 'I think Mrs. Sutton is simply a splendid woman,' she said enthusiastically.

Anna paused. 'I think Mrs. Sutton is just a wonderful woman,' she said excitedly.

When, in a moment far too short, they reached Tellwright's house, Mynors, obeying a mutual wish to which neither had given expression, followed Anna up the side entry, and so into the yard, where they lingered for a few seconds. Old Tellwright could be seen at the extremity of the long narrow garden—a garden which consisted chiefly of a grass-plot sown with clothes-props and a narrow bordering of flower beds without flowers. Agnes was invisible. The kitchen-door stood ajar, and as this was the sole means of ingress from the yard Anna, humming an air, pushed it open and entered, Mynors in her wake. They stood on the threshold, happy, hesitating, confused, and looked at the kitchen as at something which they had not seen before. Anna's kitchen was the only satisfactory apartment in the house. Its furniture included a dresser of the simple and dignified kind which is now assiduously collected by amateurs of old oak. It had four long narrow shelves holding plates and saucers; the cups were hung in a row on small brass hooks screwed into the fronts of the shelves. Below the shelves were three drawers in a line, with brass handles, and below the drawers was a large recess which held stone jars, a copper preserving-saucepan, and other receptacles. Seventy years of continuous polishing by a dynasty of priestesses of cleanliness had given to this dresser a rich ripe tone which the cleverest trade-trickster could not have imitated. In it was reflected the conscientious labour of generations. It had a soft and assuaged appearance, as though it had never been new and could never have been new. All its corners and edges had long lost the asperities of manufacture, and its smooth surfaces were marked by slight hollows similar in spirit to those worn by the naked feet of pilgrims into the marble steps of a shrine. The flat portion over the drawers was scarred with hundreds of scratches, and yet even all these seemed to be incredibly ancient, and in some distant past to have partaken of the mellowness of the whole. The dark woodwork formed an admirable background for the crockery on the shelves, and a few of the old plates, hand-painted according to some vanished secret in pigments which time could only improve, had the look of relationship by birth to the dresser. There must still be thousands of exactly similar dressers in the kitchens of the people, but they are gradually being transferred to the dining rooms of curiosity-hunters. To Anna this piece of furniture, which would have made the most taciturn collector vocal with joy, was merely 'the dresser.' She had always lamented that it contained no cupboard. In front of the fireless range was an old steel kitchen fender with heavy fire-irons. It had in the middle of its flat top a circular lodgment for saucepans, but on this polished disc no saucepan was ever placed. The fender was perhaps as old as the dresser, and the profound depths of its polish served to mitigate somewhat the newness of the patent coal-economising range which Tellwright had had put in when he took the house. On the high mantelpiece were four tall brass candlesticks which, like the dresser, were silently awaiting their apotheosis at the hands of some collector. Beside these were two or three common mustard tins, polished to counterfeit silver, containing spices; also an abandoned coffee-mill and two flat-irons. A grandfather's clock of oak to match the dresser stood to the left of the fireplace; it had a very large white dial with a grinning face in the centre. Though it would only run for twenty-four hours, its leisured movement seemed to have the certainty of a natural law, especially to Agnes, for Mr. Tellwright never forgot to wind it before going to bed. Under the window was a plain deal table, with white top and stained legs. Two Windsor chairs completed the catalogue of furniture. The glistening floor was of red and black tiles, and in front of the fender lay a list hearthrug made by attaching innumerable bits of black cloth to a canvas base. On the painted walls were several grocers' almanacs, depicting sailors in the arms of lovers, children crossing brooks, or monks swelling themselves with Gargantuan repasts. Everything in this kitchen was absolutely bright and spotless, as clean as a cat in pattens, except the ceiling, darkened by fumes of gas. Everything was in perfect order, and had the humanised air of use and occupation which nothing but use and occupation can impart to senseless objects. It was a kitchen where, in the housewife's phrase, you might eat off the floor, and to any Bursley matron it would have constituted the highest possible certificate of Anna's character, not only as housewife but as elder sister—for in her absence Agnes had washed the tea-things and put them away.

When they finally arrived at Tellwright's house, a moment that felt too brief, Mynors, following a shared but unspoken desire, followed Anna through the side entrance and into the yard, where they took a moment to pause. At the far end of the narrow garden, you could see old Tellwright. The garden mostly featured a grassy area cluttered with clothes-props and a narrow border of flowerbeds that were empty of blooms. Agnes was nowhere to be seen. The kitchen door was ajar, and since that was the only way into the house from the yard, Anna, humming a tune, pushed it open and went inside, with Mynors right behind her. They stood at the threshold, feeling happy yet hesitant and confused, looking at the kitchen as if it were something entirely new to them. Anna's kitchen was the best room in the whole house. It had a dresser made of old oak—a style that's now sought after by collectors. It featured four long shelves displaying plates and saucers, with cups hung neatly on small brass hooks attached to the front of the shelves. Below the shelves were three lined drawers with brass handles, and beneath those was a large space that held stone jars, a copper preserving saucepan, and other containers. Seventy years of diligent polishing by generations of tidy caretakers had given this dresser a rich, warm tone that even the best tradesman couldn't replicate. It reflected the hard work of many years. It had a soft, comforting look, as if it had never been new and never could be. All its edges and corners had long since softened from their original manufacturing, and its smooth surfaces bore slight indentations, much like those worn into the marble steps of a shrine by the bare feet of pilgrims. The flat top above the drawers was scratched all over, yet even those scratches seemed incredibly old and somehow contributed to the overall warmth. The dark wood made a beautiful backdrop for the dishes on the shelves, and some of the old, hand-painted plates, made with pigments that had only improved with time, looked like they belonged to the dresser by birthright. There were undoubtedly thousands of similar dressers still in people's kitchens, but they were slowly being moved to the dining rooms of collectors. To Anna, this piece of furniture, which would make any collector excited, was simply known as "the dresser." She often wished it had a cupboard. In front of the range, which had no fire, was an old steel kitchen fender with heavy fire tools. The flat top of it had a round spot for saucepans, but no saucepan ever rested there. The fender might have been as old as the dresser, and its deep polish somewhat softened the look of the modern patent coal-saving range that Tellwright had installed when he moved in. On the tall mantelpiece stood four brass candlesticks, much like the dresser, waiting for their moment of glory with some collector. Next to them were a couple of common mustard tins, polished to look like silver, that held spices; there was also an old coffee grinder and two flat irons. A grandfather clock made of oak, matching the dresser, stood to the left of the fireplace, with a large white dial featuring a smiling face in the center. Although it only ran for twenty-four hours at a time, its slow ticking gave the impression of being in tune with nature, especially to Agnes, since Mr. Tellwright always remembered to wind it before bed. Under the window was a simple table with a white top and stained legs. Two Windsor chairs completed the furniture. The shiny floor was made of red and black tiles, and in front of the fender lay a handmade hearth rug created by attaching countless pieces of black cloth to a canvas base. The painted walls were adorned with several grocers' almanacs, showing sailors in the embrace of lovers, children crossing streams, or monks feasting heartily. Everything in this kitchen was bright and spotless, as clean as a well-groomed cat, except for the ceiling, which was darkened by gas fumes. Everything was perfectly organized and had a lived-in feel, something only actual use and attention can bring to inanimate things. It was a kitchen that, in the housewife's words, you could eat off the floor, and to any matron from Bursley, it would serve as the ultimate testament to Anna's character—not just as a housewife, but also as an older sister, since Agnes had already washed the tea things and put them away in her absence.

'This is the nicest room, I know,' said Mynors at length.

'This is the best room, I know,' Mynors finally said.

'Whatever do you mean?' Anna smiled, incapable of course of seeing the place with his eye.

'What do you mean?' Anna smiled, unable to see the place through his eyes.

'I mean there is nothing to beat a clean, straight kitchen,' Mynors replied, 'and there never will be. It wants only the mistress in a white apron to make it complete. Do you know, when I came in here the other night, and you were sitting at the table there, I thought the place was like a picture.'

'I mean, there's nothing better than a clean, tidy kitchen,' Mynors replied, 'and there never will be. It just needs the lady of the house in a white apron to make it perfect. You know, when I walked in here the other night, and you were sitting at the table over there, I thought the place looked like a picture.'

'How funny!' said Anna, puzzled but well satisfied. 'But won't you come into the parlour?'

'How funny!' Anna said, feeling confused but happy. 'But won't you come into the living room?'

The Persian with one ear met them in the lobby, his tail flying, but cautiously sidled upstairs at sight of Mynors. When Anna opened the door of the parlour she saw Agnes seated at the table over her lessons, frowning and preoccupied. Tears were in her eyes.

The Persian cat with one ear spotted them in the lobby, his tail up, but he cautiously made his way upstairs when he saw Mynors. When Anna opened the door to the parlor, she found Agnes sitting at the table, focused on her lessons, frowning and distracted. Tears were in her eyes.

'Why, what's the matter, Agnes?' she exclaimed.

"What's wrong, Agnes?" she said.

'Oh! Go away,' said the child crossly. 'Don't bother.'

'Oh! Go away,' the child said angrily. 'Don't bother me.'

'But what's the matter? You're crying.'

'But what’s wrong? You’re crying.'

'No, I'm not. I'm doing my sums, and I can't get it—can't—-' The child burst into tears just as Mynors entered. His presence was a complete surprise to her. She hid her face in her pinafore, ashamed to be thus caught.

'No, I'm not. I'm doing my math, and I can't get it—can't—-' The child started crying just as Mynors walked in. His appearance was totally unexpected for her. She buried her face in her apron, embarrassed to be caught like this.

'Where is it?' said Mynors. 'Where is this sum that won't come right?' He picked up the slate and examined it while Agnes was finding herself again. 'Practice!' he exclaimed. 'Has Agnes got as far as practice?' She gave him an instant's glance and murmured 'Yes.' Before she could shelter her face he had kissed her. Anna was enchanted by his manner, and as for Agnes, she surrendered happily to him at once. He worked the sum, and she copied the figures into her exercise-book. Anna sat and watched.

"Where is it?" Mynors asked. "Where's this problem that doesn't add up?" He picked up the slate and looked it over while Agnes was regaining her composure. "Practice!" he exclaimed. "Has Agnes made it to practice?" She glanced at him for a moment and softly replied, "Yes." Before she could hide her face, he kissed her. Anna was charmed by the way he acted, and as for Agnes, she immediately gave in to him. He solved the problem, and she wrote the numbers into her exercise book. Anna sat and watched.

'Now I must go,' said Mynors.

'Now I have to go,' said Mynors.

'But surely you'll stay and see father,' Anna urged.

'But you have to stay and see Dad,' Anna urged.

'No. I really had not meant to call. Good-night, Agnes.' In a moment he was gone out of the room and the house. It was as if, in obedience to a sudden impulse, he had forcibly torn himself away.

'No. I really didn’t mean to call. Good night, Agnes.' In an instant, he left the room and the house. It was like he had suddenly impulse-driven himself to break away.

'Was he at the sewing meeting?' Agnes asked, adding in parenthesis, 'I never dreamt he was here, and I was frightfully vexed. I felt such a baby.'

'Was he at the sewing meeting?' Agnes asked, adding in parentheses, 'I never thought he was here, and I was really annoyed. I felt so childish.'

'Yes. At least, he came for tea.'

'Yes. At least, he showed up for tea.'

'Why did he call here like that?'

'Why did he call here like that?'

'How can I tell?' Anna said. The child looked at her.

'How can I tell?' Anna asked. The child looked at her.

'It's awfully queer, isn't it?' she said slowly. 'Tell me all about the sewing meeting. Did they have cakes or was it a plain tea? And did you go into Beatrice Sutton's bedroom?'

'It's really strange, isn't it?' she said slowly. 'Tell me everything about the sewing meeting. Did they have cakes or was it just regular tea? And did you go into Beatrice Sutton's bedroom?'




CHAPTER VIII

ON THE BANK

Anna began to receive her July interest and dividends. During a fortnight remittances, varying from a few pounds to a few hundred of pounds, arrived by post almost daily. They were all addressed to her, since the securities now stood in her own name; and upon her, under the miser's superintendence, fell the new task of entering them in a book and paying them into the Bank. This mysterious begetting of money by money—a strange process continually going forward for her benefit, in various parts of the world, far and near, by means of activities of which she was completely ignorant and would always be completely ignorant—bewildered her and gave her a feeling of its unreality. The elaborate mechanism by which capital yields interest without suffering diminution from its original bulk is one of the commonest phenomena of modern life, and one of the least understood. Many capitalists never grasp it, nor experience the slightest curiosity about it until the mechanism through some defect ceases to revolve. Tellwright was of these; for him the interval between the outlay of capital and the receipt of interest was nothing but an efflux of time: he planted capital as a gardener plants rhubarb, tolerably certain of a particular result, but not dwelling even in thought on that which is hidden. The productivity of capital was to him the greatest achievement of social progress—indeed, the social organism justified its existence by that achievement; nothing could be more equitable than this productivity, nothing more natural. He would as soon have inquired into it as Agnes would have inquired into the ticking of the grandfather's clock. But to Anna, who had some imagination, and whose imagination had been stirred by recent events, the arrival of moneys out of space, unearned, unasked, was a disturbing experience, affecting her as a conjuring trick affects a child, whose sensations hesitate between pleasure and apprehension. Practically, Anna could not believe that she was rich; and in fact she was not rich—she was merely a fixed point through which moneys that she was unable to arrest passed with the rapidity of trains. If money is a token, Anna was denied the satisfaction of fingering even the token: drafts and cheques were all that she touched (touched only to abandon)—the doubly tantalising and insubstantial tokens of a token. She wanted to test the actuality of this apparent dream by handling coin and causing it to vanish over counters and into the palms of the necessitous. And moreover, quite apart from this curiosity, she really needed money for pressing requirements of Agnes and herself. They had yet had no new summer clothes, and Whitsuntide, the time prescribed by custom for the refurnishing of wardrobes, was long since past. The intercourse with Henry Mynors, the visit to the Suttons, had revealed to her more plainly than ever the intolerable shortcomings of her wardrobe, and similar imperfections. She was more painfully awake to these, and yet, by an unhappy paradox, she was even less in a position to remedy them, than in previous years. For now, she possessed her own fortune; to ask her father's bounty was therefore, she divined, a sure way of inviting a rebuff. But, even if she had dared, she might not use the income that was privately hers, for was not every penny of it already allocated to the partnership with Mynors! So it happened that she never once mentioned the matter to her father; she lacked the courage, since by whatever avenue she approached it circumstances would add an illogical and adventitious force to the brutal snubs which he invariably dealt out when petitioned for money. To demand his money, having fifty thousand of her own! To spend her own in the face of that agreement with Mynors! She could too easily guess his bitter and humiliating retorts to either proposition, and she kept silence, comforting herself with timid visions of a far distant future. The balance at the bank crept up to sixteen hundred pounds. The deed of partnership was drawn; her father pored over the blue draft, and several times Mynors called and the two men discussed it together. Then one morning her father summoned her into the front parlour, and handed to her a piece of parchment on which she dimly deciphered her own name coupled with that of Henry Mynors, in large letters.

Anna started to receive her July interest and dividends. Over the course of two weeks, remittances ranging from a few pounds to a few hundred pounds arrived by mail almost daily. They were all addressed to her, as the securities now stood in her own name; and under the watchful eye of the miser, she had the new task of recording them in a book and depositing them in the bank. This mysterious creation of money from money—a strange process continuously happening for her benefit, in various parts of the world, both near and far, through activities she was completely unaware of and would always remain so—bewildered her and made it feel unreal. The complex system by which capital generates interest without reducing its original amount is one of the most common phenomena of modern life, and one of the least understood. Many investors never grasp it, nor do they show the slightest curiosity about it until the system, due to some fault, stops working. Tellwright was one of those; for him, the time between investing capital and receiving interest was just a passage of time: he planted capital like a gardener plants rhubarb, pretty sure of a specific outcome, but never dwelling on what was hidden. The productivity of capital was to him the greatest achievement of social progress—indeed, the social system justified its existence through that achievement; nothing could be more fair than this productivity, nothing more natural. He would have as much reason to question it as Agnes would have to question the ticking of the grandfather's clock. But for Anna, who had some imagination and whose imagination had been stirred by recent events, the arrival of money from nowhere, unearned and unasked for, was a jarring experience, affecting her like a magic trick affects a child, whose feelings oscillate between delight and anxiety. In practical terms, Anna couldn’t believe she was rich; and in reality, she wasn’t rich—she was merely a fixed point through which money that she couldn’t intercept flowed by like trains. If money is a token, Anna was deprived of the satisfaction of even handling the token: drafts and checks were all she touched (touched only to let go)—the doubly frustrating and intangible tokens of a token. She wanted to test the reality of this seemingly dreamlike situation by handling coins and making them disappear over counters and into the hands of those in need. Moreover, aside from this curiosity, she genuinely needed money for pressing needs for Agnes and herself. They hadn’t yet bought new summer clothes, and Whitsun, the time normally designated for updating wardrobes, had long passed. Her interactions with Henry Mynors, the visit to the Suttons, had made her more aware than ever of the intolerable shortcomings of her wardrobe and similar deficiencies. She was painfully aware of these but, paradoxically, even less able to fix them than in previous years. Now that she had her own fortune, asking her father's help was, she sensed, a surefire way to invite rejection. But even if she had dared to ask, she couldn't use the income that was privately hers, as wasn't every penny of it already earmarked for the partnership with Mynors? Thus, she never even brought it up with her father; she lacked the courage, knowing that no matter how she approached it, circumstances would only reinforce the harsh, unsolicited snubs he always delivered when asked for money. To demand his money while having fifty thousand of her own! To spend her own money in light of that agreement with Mynors! She could easily imagine his bitter and humiliating responses to either suggestion, and she kept quiet, comforting herself with timid visions of a distant future. The balance at the bank climbed to sixteen hundred pounds. The partnership agreement was drafted; her father scrutinized the blue document, and several times Mynors came by, and the two men discussed it together. Then one morning, her father called her into the front parlor and handed her a piece of parchment on which she faintly made out her own name alongside Henry Mynors’s in large letters.

'You mun sign, seal, and deliver this,' he said, putting a pen in her hand.

'You need to sign, seal, and deliver this,' he said, putting a pen in her hand.

She sat down obediently to write, but he stopped her with a scornful gesture.

She sat down willingly to write, but he stopped her with a dismissive gesture.

'Thou 'lt sign blind then, eh? Just like a woman!'

'You'll sign without reading, huh? Just like a woman!'

'I left it to you,' she said.

'I left it to you,' she said.

'Left it to me! Read it.'

'Leave it to me! Read it.'

She read through the deed, and after she had accomplished the feat one fact only stood clear in her mind, that the partnership was for seven years, a period extensible by consent of both parties to fourteen or twenty-one years. Then she affixed her signature, the pen moving awkwardly over the rough surface of the parchment.

She went through the deed, and after she finished, one thing was clear in her mind: the partnership was for seven years, which could be extended by mutual agreement to fourteen or twenty-one years. Then she signed it, the pen awkwardly gliding over the rough surface of the parchment.

'Now put thy finger on that bit o' wax, and say; "I deliver this as my act and deed."'

'Now put your finger on that piece of wax and say, "I deliver this as my act and deed."'

'I deliver this as my act and deed.'

'I deliver this as my action and signature.'

The old man signed as witness. 'Soon as I give this to Lawyer Dane,' he remarked, 'thou'rt bound, willy-nilly. Law's law, and thou'rt bound.'

The old man signed as a witness. "As soon as I give this to Lawyer Dane," he said, "you're bound, whether you like it or not. The law's the law, and you're bound."

On the following day she had to sign a cheque which reduced her bank-balance to about three pounds. Perhaps it was the knowledge of this reduction that led Ephraim Tellwright to resume at once and with fresh rigour his new policy of 'squeezing the last penny' out of Titus Price (despite the fact that the latter had already achieved the incredible by paying thirty pounds in little more than a month), thus causing the catastrophe which soon afterwards befell. What methods her father was adopting Anna did not know, since he said no word to her about the matter: she only knew that Agnes had twice been dispatched with notes to Edward Street. One day, about noon, a clay-soiled urchin brought a letter addressed to herself: she guessed that it was some appeal for mercy from the Prices, and wished that her father had been at home. The old man was away for the whole day, attending a sale of property at Axe, the agricultural town in the north of the county, locally styled 'the metropolis of the moorlands.' Anna read:—'My dear Miss Tellwright,—Now that our partnership is an accomplished fact, will you not come and look over the works? I should much like you to do so. I shall be passing your house this afternoon about two, and will call on the chance of being able to take you down with me to the works. If you are unable to come no harm will be done, and some other day can be arranged; but of course I shall be disappointed.—Believe me, yours most sincerely, HY. MYNORS.'

On the next day, she had to sign a check that brought her bank balance down to about three pounds. Maybe it was this decrease that pushed Ephraim Tellwright to immediately and vigorously continue his new strategy of 'squeezing the last penny' out of Titus Price (even though the latter had already accomplished the remarkable feat of paying thirty pounds in just over a month), leading to the disaster that soon followed. Anna didn’t know what methods her father was using, as he didn’t say a word to her about it; she only knew that Agnes had been sent twice with notes to Edward Street. One day, around noon, a mud-covered kid delivered a letter addressed to her: she figured it was some plea for mercy from the Prices and wished her father had been home. The old man was gone all day, attending a property auction in Axe, the farming town in the north of the county, locally called 'the metropolis of the moorlands.' Anna read:—'My dear Miss Tellwright,—Now that our partnership is a reality, will you come and check out the works? I would really like you to do so. I’ll be passing by your house this afternoon around two and will stop by on the chance that I can take you down to the works with me. If you can’t make it, that’s fine, we can arrange another day; but of course, I’ll be disappointed.—Yours sincerely, HY. MYNORS.'

She was charmed with the idea—to her so audacious—and relieved that the note was not after all from Titus or Willie Price: but again she had to regret that her father was not at home. He would be capable of thinking and saying that the projected expedition was a truancy, contrived to occur in his absence. He might grumble at the house being left without a keeper. Moreover, according to a tacit law, she never departed from the fixed routine of her existence without first obtaining Ephraim's approval, or at least being sure that such a departure would not make him violently angry. She wondered whether Mynors knew that her father was away, and, if so, whether he had chosen that afternoon purposely. She did not care that Mynors should call for her—it made the visit seem so formal; and as in order to reach the works, down at Shawport by the canal-side, they would necessarily go through the middle of the town, she foresaw infinite gossip and rumour as one result. Already, she knew, the names of herself and Mynors were everywhere coupled, and she could not even enter a shop without being made aware, more or less delicately, that she was an object of piquant curiosity. A woman is profoundly interesting to women at two periods only—before she is betrothed and before she becomes the mother of her firstborn. Anna was in the first period; her life did not comprise the second. When Agnes came home to dinner from school, Anna said nothing of Mynors' note until they had begun to wash up the dinner-things, when she suggested that Agnes should finish this operation alone.

She was excited by the idea—it felt so bold to her—and relieved that the note wasn’t from Titus or Willie Price after all. But she still regretted that her father wasn’t home. He might think and say that the planned outing was just a way to skip town while he was away. He could complain about the house being left without anyone to watch over it. Also, according to an unspoken rule, she never broke the usual routine of her life without first getting Ephraim's approval, or at least making sure it wouldn’t make him really angry. She wondered if Mynors knew her father was gone, and if that was why he had picked that afternoon. She didn’t like the idea of Mynors coming to pick her up—it made the visit feel so official; and since they would have to go through the town to get to the works down by the canal at Shawport, she anticipated endless gossip and speculation as a result. Already, she was aware that her name and Mynors' were often mentioned together, and she couldn't even enter a shop without feeling, in one way or another, that she was the center of curious attention. A woman is particularly interesting to other women at only two times—before she gets engaged and before she has her first child. Anna was in the first phase; her life didn't involve the second. When Agnes came home from school for dinner, Anna didn’t mention Mynors’ note until they started washing the dishes, when she proposed that Agnes should finish cleaning up by herself.

'Yes,' said Agnes, ever compliant. 'But why?'

'Yeah,' said Agnes, always agreeable. 'But why?'

'I'm going out, and I must get ready.'

'I'm heading out, and I need to get ready.'

'Going out? And shall you leave the house all empty? What will father say? Where are you going to?'

'Going out? And are you really going to leave the house all empty? What will Dad say? Where are you headed?'

Agnes's tendency to anticipate the worst, and never to blink their father's tyranny, always annoyed Anna, and she answered rather curtly: 'I'm going to the works—Mr. Mynors' works. He's sent word he wants me to.' She despised herself for wishing to hide anything, and added, 'He will call here for me about two o'clock.'

Agnes's habit of expecting the worst and never standing up to their father's tyranny always annoyed Anna, and she responded rather sharply: 'I'm going to the factory—Mr. Mynors' factory. He's sent word that he wants me to come.' She hated herself for wanting to keep anything a secret and added, 'He'll pick me up here around two o'clock.'

'Mr. Mynors! How splendid!' And then Agnes's face fell somewhat. 'I suppose he won't call before two? If he doesn't, I shall be gone to school.'

'Mr. Mynors! How wonderful!' And then Agnes's expression changed slightly. 'I guess he won’t come before two? If he doesn’t, I’ll be at school.'

'Do you want to see him?'

'Do you want to see him?'

'Oh, no! I don't want to see him. But—I suppose you'll be out a long time, and he'll bring you back.'

'Oh, no! I really don't want to see him. But—I guess you'll be gone for a while, and he'll bring you back.'

'Of course he won't, you silly girl. And I shan't be out long. I shall be back for tea.'

'Of course he won't, you silly girl. And I won't be out long. I'll be back for tea.'

Anna ran upstairs to dress. At ten minutes to two she was ready. Agnes usually left at a quarter to two, but the child had not yet gone. At five minutes to two, Anna called downstairs to her to ask her when she meant to depart.

Anna rushed upstairs to get ready. At ten minutes to two, she was all set. Agnes typically left at a quarter to two, but the girl hadn’t left yet. At five minutes to two, Anna called down to her to ask when she planned to leave.

'I'm just going now,' Agnes shouted back. She opened the front door and then returned to the foot of the stairs. 'Anna, if I meet him down the road shall I tell him you're ready waiting for him?'

"I'm just leaving now," Agnes shouted back. She opened the front door and then went back to the bottom of the stairs. "Anna, if I see him down the road, should I tell him you're ready and waiting for him?"

'Certainly not. Whatever are you dreaming of?' the elder sister reproved. 'Besides, he isn't coming from the town.'

'Of course not. What are you even dreaming about?' the older sister scolded. 'Besides, he’s not coming from town.'

'Oh! All right. Good-bye.' And the child at last went.

'Oh! Okay. Bye.' And the child finally left.

It was something after two—every siren and hooter had long since finished the summons to work—when Mynors rang the bell. Anna was still upstairs. She examined herself in the glass, and then descended slowly.

It was just after two—every siren and horn had long stopped calling people to work—when Mynors rang the bell. Anna was still upstairs. She checked herself in the mirror, and then came down slowly.

'Good afternoon,' he said. 'I see you are ready to come. I'm very glad. I hope I haven't inconvenienced you, but just this afternoon seemed to be a good opportunity for you to see the works, and, you know, you ought to see it. Father in?'

'Good afternoon,' he said. 'I see you're ready to come. I'm really glad. I hope I haven't put you out, but this afternoon just seemed like a great chance for you to see the works, and, you know, you should definitely see it. Is your dad in?'

'No,' she said. 'I shall leave the house to take care of itself. Do you want to see him?'

'No,' she said. 'I’m going to let the house take care of itself. Do you want to see him?'

'Not specially,' he replied. 'I think we have settled everything.'

'Not really,' he replied. 'I think we’ve sorted everything out.'

She banged the door behind her, and they started. As he held open the gate for her exit, she could not ignore the look of passionate admiration on his face. It was a look disconcerting by its mere intensity. The man could control his tongue, but not his eyes. His demeanour, as she viewed it, aggravated her self-consciousness as they braved the streets. But she was happy in her perturbation. When they reached Duck Bank, Mynors asked her whether they should go through the market-place or along King Street, by the bottom of St. Luke's Square. 'By the market-place,' she said. The shop where Miss Dickinson was employed was at the bottom of St. Luke's Square, and all the eyes of the marketplace was preferable to the chance of those eyes.

She slammed the door behind her, and they set off. As he held open the gate for her to leave, she couldn't ignore the look of intense admiration on his face. It was a gaze that was unsettling simply because of how strong it was. The guy could keep his mouth shut, but not his eyes. His demeanor, from her perspective, made her feel even more self-conscious as they walked through the streets. But surprisingly, she felt good in her anxiety. When they got to Duck Bank, Mynors asked her if they should go through the market or along King Street, at the bottom of St. Luke's Square. “Let’s go by the market,” she replied. The shop where Miss Dickinson worked was at the bottom of St. Luke's Square, and all the eyes in the marketplace were better than the chance of seeing those particular eyes.


Probably no one in the Five Towns takes a conscious pride in the antiquity of the potter's craft, nor in its unique and intimate relation to human life, alike civilised and uncivilised. Man hardened clay into a bowl before he spun flax and made a garment, and the last lone man will want an earthen vessel after he has abandoned his ruined house for a cave, and his woven rags for an animal's skin. This supremacy of the most ancient of crafts is in the secret nature of things, and cannot be explained. History begins long after the period when Bursley was first the central seat of that honoured manufacture: it is the central seat still—'the mother of the Five Towns,' in our local phrase—and though the townsmen, absorbed in a strenuous daily struggle, may forget their heirship to an unbroken tradition of countless centuries, the seal of their venerable calling is upon their foreheads. If no other relic of an immemorial past is to be seen in these modernised sordid streets, there is at least the living legacy of that extraordinary kinship between workman and work, that instinctive mastery of clay which the past has bestowed upon the present. The horse is less to the Arab than clay is to the Bursley man. He exists in it and by it; it fills his lungs and blanches his cheek; it keeps him alive and it kills him. His fingers close round it as round the hand of a friend. He knows all its tricks and aptitudes; when to coax and when to force it, when to rely on it and when to distrust it. The weavers of Lancashire have dubbed him with an obscene epithet on account of it, an epithet whose hasty use has led to many a fight, but nothing could be more illuminatively descriptive than that epithet, which names his vocation in terms of another vocation. A dozen decades of applied science have of course resulted in the interposition of elaborate machinery between the clay and the man; but no great vulgar handicraft has lost less of the human than potting. Clay is always clay, and the steam-driven contrivance that will mould a basin while a man sits and watches has yet to be invented. Moreover, if in some coarser process the hands are superseded, the number of processes has been multiplied tenfold: the ware in which six men formerly collaborated is now produced by sixty; and thus, in one sense, the touch of finger on clay is more pervasive than ever before.

Probably no one in the Five Towns takes conscious pride in the age-old craft of pottery or in its unique and close connection to human life, whether civilized or not. Man shaped clay into a bowl long before he spun flax to make clothes, and the last remaining person will want an earthen vessel even after leaving his ruined home for a cave and his worn-out rags for an animal skin. This supremacy of the oldest craft is embedded in the very nature of things and can't be fully explained. History starts long after Bursley first became the main center of that respected industry: it still is the main center—'the mother of the Five Towns,' as we say locally—and although the townspeople, caught up in their daily struggles, may forget their connection to a timeless tradition spanning countless centuries, the mark of their ancient calling is evident on them. Even if there's no other sign of a distant past to be seen in these modern, grimy streets, there's at least the living legacy of that remarkable bond between the worker and the work, that instinctive skill with clay passed down from the past to the present. The clay means more to the Bursley person than the horse does to the Arab. He exists with it and because of it; it fills his lungs and colors his cheeks; it sustains him and can also be his downfall. His fingers grasp it like the hand of a friend. He knows all its tricks and qualities; when to coax it and when to push it, when to count on it and when to be wary of it. The weavers of Lancashire have given him a crude nickname because of it, a nickname that’s sparked many fights, but nothing is more revealingly descriptive than that nickname, which names his work in terms of another trade. A hundred years of applied science have certainly introduced complex machinery between the clay and the person; however, no major craft has retained more of the human element than pottery. Clay is always clay, and the steam-powered device that can shape a bowl while a person just watches has yet to be invented. Furthermore, if in some rough process the hands are replaced, the number of processes has increased tenfold: the pottery that six men used to make is now produced by sixty; and so, in one sense, the touch of finger on clay is more widespread than ever before.

Mynors' works was acknowledged to be one of the best, of its size, in the district—a model three-oven bank, and it must be remembered that of the hundreds of banks in the Five Towns the vast majority are small, like this: the large manufactory with its corps of jacket-men,[1] one of whom is detached to show visitors round so much of the works as is deemed advisable for them to see, is the exception. Mynors paid three hundred pounds a year in rent, and produced nearly three hundred pounds worth of work a week. He was his own manager, and there was only one jacket-man on the place, a clerk at eighteen shillings. He employed about a hundred hands, and devoted all his ingenuity to prevent that wastage which is at once the easiest to overlook and the most difficult to check, the wastage of labour. No pains were spared to keep all departments in full and regular activity, and owing to his judicious firmness the feast of St. Monday, that canker eternally eating at the root of the prosperity of the Five Towns, was less religiously observed on his bank than perhaps anywhere else in Bursley. He had realised that when a workshop stands empty the employer has not only ceased to make money, but has begun to lose it. The architect of 'Providence Works' (Providence stands godfather to many commercial enterprises in the Five Towns) knew his business and the business of the potter, and he had designed the works with a view to the strictest economy of labour. The various shops were so arranged that in the course of its metamorphosis the clay travelled naturally in a circle from the slip-house by the canal to the packing-house by the canal: there was no carrying to and fro. The steam installation was complete: steam once generated had no respite; after it had exhausted itself in vitalising fifty machines, it was killed by inches in order to dry the unfired ware and warm the dinners of the workpeople.

Mynors' factory was recognized as one of the best of its size in the area—a model three-oven facility. It's important to note that among the hundreds of factories in the Five Towns, most are small like this one. The large factory with its crew of jacket-men, one of whom is assigned to guide visitors through the parts of the factory deemed suitable for them to see, is the exception. Mynors paid three hundred pounds a year in rent and produced nearly three hundred pounds’ worth of work each week. He was his own manager, and there was only one jacket-man on-site, a clerk earning eighteen shillings. He employed about a hundred workers and used all his skill to minimize the waste that's often overlooked but hard to control: the waste of labor. No effort was spared to keep all departments busy and running smoothly, and thanks to his effective approach, the feast of St. Monday, that persistent issue undermining the prosperity of the Five Towns, was less strictly observed at his factory than probably anywhere else in Bursley. He understood that when a workshop is empty, the employer not only stops making money but starts losing it. The architect of 'Providence Works' (Providence sponsors many business ventures in the Five Towns) knew both his trade and the potter's business, designing the factory with a focus on maximum efficiency. The various sections were laid out so that as the clay was transformed, it naturally moved in a circle from the slip-house by the canal to the packing-house by the canal: there was no back-and-forth transport. The steam system was complete: once steam was generated, it was used continuously; after it had powered fifty machines, it was gradually exhausted to dry the unfired ware and warm the workers' meals.

Henry took Anna to the canal-entrance, because the buildings looked best from that side.

Henry took Anna to the canal entrance because the buildings looked best from that side.

'Now how much is a crate worth?' she asked, pointing to a crate which was being swung on a crane direct from the packing-house into a boat.

'So, how much is a crate worth?' she asked, pointing to a crate that was being lifted by a crane straight from the packing house into a boat.

'That?' Mynors answered. 'A crateful of ware may be worth anything. At Minton's I have seen a crate worth three hundred pounds. But that one there is only worth eight or nine pounds. You see you and I make cheap stuff.'

'That?' Mynors answered. 'A crate of goods can be worth anything. At Minton's, I've seen a crate worth three hundred pounds. But that one over there is only worth eight or nine pounds. You see, you and I produce low-cost items.'

'But don't you make any really good pots—are they all cheap?'

'But don't you have any really good pots—are they all just cheap?'

'All cheap,' he said.

'All cheap,' he said.

'I suppose that's business?' He detected a note of regret in her voice.

'I guess that's how business is?' He noticed a hint of regret in her voice.

'I don't know,' he said, with the slightest impatient warmth. 'We make the stuff as good as we can for the money. We supply what everyone wants. Don't you think it's better to please a thousand folks than to please ten? I like to feel that my ware is used all over the country and the colonies. I would sooner do as I do than make swagger ware for a handful of rich people.'

"I don't know," he said, slightly impatient. "We make the stuff as good as we can for the money. We provide what everyone wants. Don’t you think it’s better to please a thousand people than just ten? I like knowing that my products are used all over the country and in the colonies. I’d rather do what I do than create fancy items for a small number of wealthy people."

'Oh, yes,' she exclaimed, eagerly accepting the point of view, 'I quite agree with you.' She had never heard him in that vein before, and was struck by his enthusiasm. And Mynors was in fact always very enthusiastic concerning the virtues of the general markets. He had no sympathy with specialities, artistic or otherwise. He found his satisfaction in honestly meeting the public taste. He was born to be a manufacturer of cheap goods on a colossal scale. He could dream of fifty ovens, and his ambition blinded him to the present absurdity of talking about a three-oven bank spreading its productions all over the country and the colonies; it did not occur to him that there were yet scarcely enough plates to go round.

'Oh, yes,' she said, eagerly agreeing, 'I totally agree with you.' She had never heard him talk like that before, and was impressed by his enthusiasm. Mynors was always very passionate about the merits of the general markets. He had no interest in specialties, artistic or otherwise. He found his fulfillment in genuinely catering to public taste. He was made to manufacture cheap goods on a huge scale. He could envision fifty ovens, and his ambition blinded him to the ridiculousness of discussing a three-oven factory distributing its products across the country and the colonies; it didn’t cross his mind that there weren’t even enough plates to go around.

'I suppose we had better start at the start,' he said, leading the way to the slip-house. He did not need to be told that Anna was perfectly ignorant of the craft of pottery, and that every detail of it, so stale to him, would acquire freshness under her naïve and inquiring gaze.

'I guess we should start from the beginning,' he said, heading towards the slip-house. He didn’t need to be reminded that Anna had no clue about pottery, and that every aspect of it, which felt so old to him, would seem new and interesting through her curious and innocent eyes.

In the slip-house begins the long manipulation which transforms raw porous friable clay into the moulded, decorated and glazed vessel. The large whitewashed place was occupied by ungainly machines and receptacles through which the four sorts of clay used in the common 'body'—ball clay, China clay, flint clay and stone clay—were compelled to pass before they became a white putty-like mixture meet for shaping by human hands. The blunger crushed the clay, the sifter extracted the iron from it by means of a magnet, the press expelled the water, and the pug-mill expelled the air. From the last reluctant mouth slowly emerged a solid stream nearly a foot in diameter, like a huge white snake. Already the clay had acquired the uniformity characteristic of a manufactured product.

In the slip-house, the lengthy process begins that turns raw, crumbly clay into a shaped, decorated, and glazed vessel. The large, whitewashed space was filled with awkward machines and containers where the four types of clay used in the common 'body'—ball clay, China clay, flint clay, and stone clay—were forced to go through before they became a white, putty-like mixture ready for shaping by human hands. The blunger crushed the clay, the sifter used a magnet to remove the iron from it, the press got rid of the water, and the pug-mill removed the air. From the last stubborn opening slowly came a solid stream nearly a foot in diameter, like a giant white snake. By this point, the clay had already taken on the uniformity typical of a manufactured product.

Anna moved to touch the bolts of the enormous twenty-four-chambered press.

Anna reached out to touch the bolts of the huge twenty-four-chamber press.

'Don't stand there,' said Mynors. 'The pressure is tremendous, and if the thing were to burst——'

'Don't just stand there,' Mynors said. 'The pressure is huge, and if that thing were to burst——'

She fled hastily. 'But isn't it dangerous for the workmen?' she asked.

She ran away quickly. "But isn't it dangerous for the workers?" she asked.

Eli Machin, the engineman, the oldest employee on the works, a moneyed man and the pattern of reliability, allowed a vague smile to flit across his face at this remark. He had ascended from the engine-house below in order to exhibit the tricks of the various machines, and that done he disappeared. Anna was awed by the sensation of being surrounded by terrific forces always straining for release and held in check by the power of a single wall.

Eli Machin, the engineer, the longest-serving employee at the company, a wealthy man and a model of dependability, allowed a faint smile to cross his face at this comment. He had come up from the engine room below to show off the capabilities of the different machines, and after that, he vanished. Anna felt a sense of awe from being surrounded by enormous forces constantly pushing for freedom, all contained by the strength of a single wall.

'Come and see a plate made: that is one of the simplest things, and the batting-machine is worth looking at,' said Mynors, and they went into the nearest shop, a hot interior in the shape of four corridors round a solid square middle. Here men and women were working side by side, the women subordinate to the men. All were preoccupied, wrapped up in their respective operations, and there was the sound of irregular whirring movements from every part of the big room. The air was laden with whitish dust, and clay was omnipresent—on the floor, the walls, the benches, the windows, on clothes, hands and faces. It was in this shop, where both hollow-ware pressers and flat pressers were busy as only craftsmen on piecework can be busy, that more than anywhere else clay was to be seen 'in the hand of the potter.' Near the door a stout man with a good-humoured face flung some clay on to a revolving disc, and even as Anna passed a jar sprang into existence. One instant the clay was an amorphous mass, the next it was a vessel perfectly circular, of a prescribed width and a prescribed depth; the flat and apparently clumsy fingers of the craftsman had seemed to lose themselves in the clay for a fraction of time, and the miracle was accomplished. The man threw these vessels with the rapidity of a Roman candle throwing off coloured stars, and one woman was kept busy in supplying him with material and relieving his bench of the finished articles. Mynors drew Anna along to the batting-machines for plate makers, at that period rather a novelty and the latest invention of the dead genius whose brain has reconstituted a whole industry on new lines. Confronted with a piece of clay, the batting-machine descended upon it with the ferocity of a wild animal, worried it, stretched it, smoothed it into the width and thickness of a plate, and then desisted of itself and waited inactive for the flat presser to remove its victim to his more exact shaping machine. Several men were producing plates, but their rapid labours seemed less astonishing than the preliminary feat of the batting-machine. All the ware as it was moulded disappeared into the vast cupboards occupying the centre of the shop, where Mynors showed Anna innumerable rows of shelves full of pots in process of steam-drying. Neither time nor space nor material was wasted in this ant-heap of industry. In order to move to and fro, the women were compelled to insinuate themselves past the stationary bodies of the men. Anna marvelled at the careless accuracy with which they fed the batting-machines with lumps precisely calculated to form a plate of a given diameter. Everyone exerted himself as though the salvation of the world hung on the production of so much stuff by a certain hour; dust, heat, and the presence of a stranger were alike unheeded in the mad creative passion.

"Come and check out a plate being made: it’s one of the simplest things, and the batting machine is really interesting," Mynors said, as they entered the nearest shop, which had a hot interior shaped like four corridors surrounding a solid square center. Here, men and women worked side by side, with the women serving under the men. Everyone was focused, absorbed in their respective tasks, and there was a constant sound of irregular whirring from every part of the large room. The air was thick with whitish dust, and clay was everywhere—on the floor, the walls, the benches, the windows, and on people’s clothes, hands, and faces. It was in this shop, where both hollow-ware and flat pressers were as busy as only craftsmen on piecework can be, that clay was most visibly seen 'in the hand of the potter.' Near the door, a stout man with a cheerful face threw some clay onto a spinning disc, and just as Anna walked by, a jar took shape. In an instant, the clay changed from an amorphous lump to a perfectly circular vessel, with a specific width and depth; the flat and seemingly awkward fingers of the craftsman seemed to blend into the clay for just a moment, and the miracle happened. The man produced these vessels as quickly as a Roman candle shooting off colored stars, while a woman stayed busy supplying him with materials and clearing away the finished items. Mynors pulled Anna toward the batting machines for plate makers, which at the time were a relatively new and innovative invention from the deceased genius who had transformed an entire industry. Facing a piece of clay, the batting machine lunged at it like a wild animal, tore it apart, stretched it, and smoothed it into the width and thickness of a plate, then paused and waited for the flat presser to take its creation to a more precise shaping machine. Several men were making plates, but their quick production seemed less impressive than the initial performance of the batting machine. All the molded ware disappeared into large cupboards in the center of the shop, where Mynors showed Anna countless rows of shelves filled with pots in the process of steam-drying. Not a moment, space, or material was wasted in this bustling hub of industry. To navigate the shop, the women had to squeeze past the stationary bodies of the men. Anna was amazed at how accurately they fed the batting machines with precisely measured lumps of clay to form plates of a specific diameter. Everyone worked as though the fate of the world depended on producing a certain amount of goods by a certain time; dust, heat, and the presence of a stranger were all ignored in the frenzy of creative energy.

'Now,' said Mynors the cicerone, opening another door which gave into the yard, 'when all that stuff is dried and fettled—smoothed, you know—it goes into the biscuit oven: that's the first firing. There's the biscuit oven, but we can't inspect it because it's just being drawn.'

'Now,' said Mynors the tour guide, opening another door that led into the yard, 'once all that stuff is dried and smoothed out, it goes into the biscuit oven: that's the first firing. There's the biscuit oven, but we can't check it out because it's currently being emptied.'

He pointed to the oven near by, in whose dark interior the forms of men, naked to the waist, could dimly be seen struggling with the weight of saggars[2] full of ware. It seemed like some release of martyrs, this unpacking of the immense oven, which, after being flooded with a sea of flame for fifty-four hours, had cooled for two days, and was yet hotter than the Equator. The inertness and pallor of the saggars seemed to be the physical result of their fiery trial, and one wondered that they should have survived the trial. Mynors went into the place adjoining the oven and brought back a plate out of an open saggar; it was still quite warm. It had the matt surface of a biscuit, and adhered slightly to the fingers: it was now a 'crook'; it had exchanged malleability for brittleness, and nothing mortal could undo what the fire had done. Mynors took the plate with him to the biscuit-warehouse, a long room where one was forced to keep to narrow alleys amid parterres of pots. A solitary biscuit-warehouseman was examining the ware in order to determine the remuneration of the pressers.

He pointed to the nearby oven, where the shapes of men, bare from the waist up, could be faintly seen struggling with heavy loads of saggars[2] full of pottery. Unpacking the massive oven felt like a release for martyrs; it had been filled with intense flames for fifty-four hours, cooled for two days, and was still hotter than the Equator. The stillness and pale color of the saggars seemed to be a physical reminder of their fiery ordeal, and it was surprising that they had endured it. Mynors went into the room next to the oven and retrieved a plate from an open saggar; it was still warm. It had the matt surface of a biscuit and clung slightly to his fingers: it was now a 'crook'; it had traded flexibility for brittleness, and nothing could reverse what the fire had done. Mynors took the plate with him to the biscuit warehouse, a long room where people had to navigate narrow paths between rows of pots. A lone biscuit warehouse worker was inspecting the pottery to assess the payment for the pressers.

They climbed a flight of steps to the printing-shop, where, by means of copper-plates, printing-presses, mineral colours, and transfer-papers, most of the decoration was done. The room was filled by a little crowd of people—oldish men, women and girls, divided into printers, cutters, transferors and apprentices. Each interminably repeated some trifling process, and every article passed through a succession of hands until at length it was washed in a tank and rose dripping therefrom with its ornament of flowers and scrolls fully revealed. The room smelt of oil and flannel and humanity; the atmosphere was more languid, more like that of a family party, than in the pressers' shop: the old women looked stern and shrewish, the pretty young women pert and defiant, the younger girls meek. The few men seemed out of place. By what trick had they crept into the very centre of that mass of femineity? It seemed wrong, scandalous that they should remain. Contiguous with the printing-shop was the painting-shop, in which the labours of the former were taken to a finish by the brush of the paintress, who filled in outlines with flat colour, and thus converted mechanical printing into handiwork. The paintresses form the noblesse of the banks. Their task is a light one, demanding deftness first of all; they have delicate fingers, and enjoy a general reputation for beauty: the wages they earn may be estimated from their finery on Sundays. They come to business in cloth jackets, carry dinner in little satchels; in the shop they wear white aprons, and look startlingly neat and tidy. Across the benches over which they bend their coquettish heads gossip flies and returns like a shuttle; they are the source of a thousand intrigues, and one or other of them is continually getting married or omitting to get married. On the bank they constitute 'the sex.' An infinitesimal proportion of them, from among the branch known as ground-layers, die of lead-poisoning—a fact which adds pathos to their frivolous charm. In a subsidiary room off the painting-shop a single girl was seated at a revolving table actuated by a treadle. She was doing the 'band-and-line' on the rims of saucers. Mynors and Anna watched her as with her left hand she flicked saucer after saucer into the exact centre of the table, moved the treadle, and, holding a brush firmly against the rim of the piece, produced with infallible exactitude the band and the line. She was a brunette, about twenty-eight: she had a calm, vacuously contemplative face; but God alone knew whether she thought. Her work represented the summit of monotony; the regularity of it hypnotised the observer, and Mynors himself was impressed by this stupendous phenomenon of absolute sameness, involuntarily assuming towards it the attitude of a showman.

They climbed a flight of steps to the printing shop, where most of the decoration was done using copper plates, printing presses, mineral colors, and transfer papers. The room was filled with a small crowd of people—older men, women, and girls, divided into printers, cutters, transferors, and apprentices. Each person endlessly repeated some minor task, and every item went through several hands until it was finally washed in a tank, coming out dripping with its designs of flowers and scrolls fully revealed. The room smelled of oil, flannel, and humanity; the atmosphere felt more relaxed, almost like a family gathering, rather than the pressers' shop. The older women looked stern and shrewish, the attractive young women were cheeky and defiant, while the younger girls seemed meek. The few men appeared out of place. What trick had allowed them to slip into the heart of that sea of femininity? It felt wrong, almost scandalous, that they should remain. Next to the printing shop was the painting shop, where the work from the former was finished by the paintress, who filled in outlines with flat color, turning mechanical printing into hand-painted work. The paintresses were the elite of the workplace. Their job was light and required mainly skill; they had delicate fingers and were known for their beauty, as seen in their stylish outfits on Sundays. They came to work in cloth jackets and brought their lunches in small bags; inside the shop, they wore white aprons, looking remarkably neat and tidy. Gossip flew back and forth across the benches under their coy heads, making them the source of countless intrigues, with one or another always getting married or backing out of marriage. In the workplace, they were considered 'the women.' A tiny number of them, from the subgroup known as ground-layers, die from lead poisoning—a fact that adds a touch of sadness to their playful charm. In a small room off the painting shop, a single girl sat at a revolving table powered by a treadle. She was working on the 'band-and-line' on the edges of saucers. Mynors and Anna watched her as she flicked saucer after saucer to the exact center of the table with her left hand, moved the treadle, and held a brush firmly against the rim of the piece, producing the band and line with perfect accuracy. She was a brunette, around twenty-eight, with a calm, thoughtless expression; only God knew if she actually thought. Her work was the epitome of monotony; the regularity of it hypnotized the observer, and even Mynors was struck by this remarkable instance of absolute sameness, involuntarily adopting the demeanor of a showman.

'She earns as much as eighteen shillings a week sometimes,' he whispered.

"Sometimes she makes as much as eighteen shillings a week," he whispered.

'May I try?' Anna timidly asked of a sudden, curious to experience what the trick was like.

'Can I give it a try?' Anna asked shyly, suddenly curious to see what the trick felt like.

'Certainly,' said Mynors, in eager assent. 'Priscilla, let this lady have your seat a moment, please.'

'Of course,' Mynors said eagerly. 'Priscilla, please let this lady have your seat for a moment.'

The girl got up, smiling politely. Anna took her place.

The girl stood up, smiling politely. Anna took her seat.

'Here, try on this,' said Mynors, putting on the table the plate which he still carried.

'Here, try this on,' Mynors said, setting down the plate he was still holding on the table.

'Take a full brush,' the paintress suggested, not attempting to hide her amusement at Anna's unaccustomed efforts. 'Now push the treadle. There! It isn't in the middle yet. Now!'

'Take a full brush,' the painter suggested, not trying to hide her amusement at Anna's unfamiliar efforts. 'Now push the treadle. There! It isn't in the middle yet. Now!'

Anna produced a most creditable band, and a trembling but passable line, and rose flushed with the small triumph.

Anna created a pretty good band and a shaky but decent line, feeling a rush of pride from her small victory.

'You have the gift,' said Mynors; and the paintress respectfully applauded.

'You have a real talent,' said Mynors; and the painter respectfully clapped.

'I felt I could do it,' Anna responded. 'My mother's mother was a paintress, and it must be in the blood.'

'I felt like I could do it,' Anna replied. 'My grandmother was a painter, and it must be in my blood.'

Mynors smiled indulgently. They descended again to the ground floor, and following the course of manufacture came to the 'hardening-on' kiln, a minor oven where for twelve hours the oil is burnt out of the colour in decorated ware. A huge, jolly man in shirt and trousers, with an enormous apron, was in the act of drawing the kiln, assisted by two thin boys. He nodded a greeting to Mynors and exclaimed, 'Warm!' The kiln was nearly emptied. As Anna stopped at the door, the man addressed her.

Mynors smiled kindly. They went back down to the ground floor and followed the production process to the ‘hardening-on’ kiln, a small oven where the oil is burned out of the color in decorated pottery for twelve hours. A cheerful, big man in a shirt and pants, wearing a large apron, was in the middle of unloading the kiln, assisted by two skinny boys. He nodded at Mynors and said, “Warm!” The kiln was almost empty. As Anna paused at the door, the man spoke to her.

'Step inside, miss, and try it.'

'Come on in, miss, and give it a try.'

'No, thanks!' she laughed.

'No, thanks!' she chuckled.

'Come now,' he insisted, as if despising this hesitation. 'An ounce of experience——' The two boys grinned and wiped their foreheads with their bare skeleton-like arms. Anna, challenged by the man's look, walked quickly into the kiln. A blasting heat seemed to assault her on every side, driving her back; it was incredible that any human being could support such a temperature.

'Come on,' he urged, as if he couldn't stand this hesitation. 'A little bit of experience—' The two boys smirked and wiped their foreheads with their skinny arms. Anna, challenged by his gaze, rushed into the kiln. A scorching heat seemed to hit her from all sides, pushing her back; it was hard to believe that anyone could endure such a temperature.

'There!' said the jovial man, apparently summing her up with his bright, quizzical eyes. 'You know summat as you didn't know afore, miss. Come along, lads,' he added with brisk heartiness to the boys, and the drawing of the kiln proceeded.

'There!' said the cheerful man, seemingly assessing her with his bright, curious eyes. 'You know something now that you didn't know before, miss. Come on, guys,' he said with energetic friendliness to the boys, and the drawing of the kiln continued.

Next came the dipping-house, where a middle-aged woman, enveloped in a protective garment from head to foot, was dipping jugs into a vat of lead-glaze, a boy assisting her. The woman's hands were covered with the grey, slimy glaze. She alone of all the employees appeared to be cool.

Next came the dipping house, where a middle-aged woman, dressed in a protective outfit from head to toe, was dipping jugs into a vat of lead glaze, with a boy helping her. The woman's hands were covered in the gray, slimy glaze. She was the only one among all the workers who seemed calm.

'That is the last stage but one,' said Mynors. 'There is only the glost-firing,' and they passed out into the yard once more. One of the glost-ovens was empty; they entered it and peered into the lofty inner chamber, which seemed like the cold crater of an exhausted volcano, or like a vault, or like the ruined seat of some forgotten activity. The other oven was firing, and Anna could only look at its exterior, catching glimpses of the red glow at its twelve mouths, and guess at the Tophet, within, where the lead was being fused into glass.

'That's the second-to-last stage,' Mynors said. 'The only thing left is the glost-firing,' and they stepped back into the yard. One of the glost-ovens was empty; they went inside and looked into the high inner chamber, which resembled the cold crater of a spent volcano, or a vault, or the remains of some forgotten activity. The other oven was in firing mode, and Anna could only look at its outside, catching glimpses of the red glow at its twelve openings, and imagine the intense heat within, where the lead was being melted into glass.

'Now for the glost-warehouse, and you will have seen all,' said Mynors, 'except the mould-shop, and that doesn't matter.'

'Now for the glost warehouse, and you will have seen everything,' said Mynors, 'except the mold shop, and that’s not important.'

The warehouse was the largest place on the works, a room sixty-feet long and twenty broad, low, whitewashed, bare and clean. Piles of ware occupied the whole of the walls and of the immense floorspace, but there was no trace here of the soilure and untidiness incident to manufacture; all processes were at an end, clay had vanished into crock: and the calmness and the whiteness atoned for the disorder, noise and squalor which had preceded. Here was a sample of the total and final achievement towards which the thousands of small, disjointed efforts that Anna had witnessed, were directed. And it seemed a miraculous, almost impossible, result; so definite, precise and regular after a series of acts apparently variable, inexact and casual; so inhuman after all that intensely inhuman labour; so vast in comparison with the minuteness of the separate endeavours. As Anna looked, for instance, at a pile of tea-sets, she found it difficult even to conceive that, a fortnight or so before, they had been nothing but lumps of dirty clay. No stage of the manufacture was incredible by itself, but the result was incredible. It was the result that appealed to the imagination, authenticating the adage that fools and children should never see anything till it is done.

The warehouse was the largest space in the factory, a room sixty feet long and twenty feet wide, low, whitewashed, bare, and spotless. Stacks of products filled the walls and the vast floor, but there was no sign of the dirt and mess typical of manufacturing; all processes had come to an end, clay had been transformed into pottery, and the calmness and brightness made up for the chaos, noise, and filth that had come before. This was a showcase of the total and final achievement toward which the thousands of small, disconnected efforts that Anna had witnessed were aimed. It felt like a miraculous, almost impossible result; so definite, precise, and uniform after a series of acts that were apparently variable, imprecise, and random; so impersonal compared to all the intensely impersonal labor; so immense in contrast to the tiny individual efforts. As Anna looked at a stack of tea sets, she struggled to believe that just a couple of weeks earlier, they had been nothing but blobs of dirty clay. No single stage of the manufacturing process was hard to believe on its own, but the final product was astonishing. It was the outcome that sparked the imagination, proving the saying that fools and children should never see anything until it's finished.

Anna pondered over the organising power, the forethought, the wide vision, and the sheer ingenuity and cleverness which were implied by the contents of this warehouse. 'What brains!' she thought, of Mynors; 'what quantities of all sorts of things he must know!' It was a humble and deeply-felt admiration.

Anna thought about the organizing skills, the planning, the broad perspective, and the sheer creativity and cleverness reflected in the contents of this warehouse. 'What intelligence!' she thought of Mynors; 'he must know so much about all kinds of things!' It was a humble and heartfelt admiration.

Her spoken words gave no clue to her thoughts. 'You seem to make a fine lot of tea-sets,' she remarked.

Her words didn't reveal what she was thinking. "You really have a lot of nice tea sets," she said.

'Oh, no,' he said carelessly. 'These few that you see here are a special order. I don't go in much for tea-sets: they don't pay; we lose fifteen per cent. of the pieces in making. It's toilet-ware that pays, and that is our leading line.' He waved an arm vaguely towards rows and rows of ewers and basins in the distance. They walked to the end of the warehouse, glancing at everything.

"Oh, no," he said casually. "These few you see here are a special order. I don't really deal in tea sets; they don’t bring in much profit. We lose fifteen percent of the pieces during production. It's bathroom ware that makes money, and that’s our main focus." He gestured vaguely toward rows and rows of jugs and basins in the distance. They walked to the end of the warehouse, looking at everything.

'See here,' said Mynors, 'isn't that pretty?' He pointed through the last window to a view of the canal, which could be seen thence in perspective, finishing in a curve. On one side, close to the water's edge, was a ruined and fragmentary building, its rich browns reflected in the smooth surface of the canal. On the other side were a few grim, grey trees bordering the towpath. Down the vista moved a boat steered by a woman in a large mob-cap. 'Isn't that picturesque?' he said.

'Look here,' said Mynors, 'isn't that beautiful?' He pointed through the last window to a view of the canal, which could be seen stretching out in perspective, ending in a curve. On one side, right by the water's edge, was a crumbling and incomplete building, its rich browns mirrored in the smooth surface of the canal. On the other side were a few stark, grey trees lining the towpath. Down the view glided a boat steered by a woman in a large mob-cap. 'Isn't that charming?' he said.

'Very,' Anna assented willingly. 'It's really quite strange, such a scene right in the middle of Bursley.'

'Definitely,' Anna agreed readily. 'It's really quite unusual, seeing such a scene right in the heart of Bursley.'

'Oh! There are others,' he said. 'But I always take a peep at that whenever I come into the warehouse.'

'Oh! There are others,' he said. 'But I always take a look at that whenever I’m in the warehouse.'

'I wonder you find time to notice it—with all this place to see after,' she said. 'It's a splendid works!'

"I’m surprised you find time to notice it—with everything there is to see here," she said. "It’s a wonderful piece of work!"

'It will do—to be going on with,' he answered, satisfied. 'I'm very glad you've been down. You must come again. I can see you would be interested in it, and there are plenty of things you haven't looked at yet, you know.'

'That works—for now,' he replied, feeling pleased. 'I'm really glad you came over. You should visit again. I can tell you'd find it interesting, and there are lots of things you haven't explored yet, you know.'

He smiled at her. They were alone in the warehouse.

He smiled at her. They were alone in the warehouse.

'Yes,' she said; 'I expect so. Well, I must go, at once; I'm afraid it's very late now. Thank you for showing me round, and explaining, and—I'm frightfully stupid and ignorant. Good-bye.'

'Yeah,' she said; 'I guess so. Well, I have to go right now; I’m worried it’s pretty late. Thanks for showing me around and explaining everything, and—I'm really embarrassing and clueless. Bye.'

Vapid and trite phrases: what unimaginable messages the hearer heard in you!

Vapid and trite phrases: what unbelievable messages the listener received from you!

Anna held out her hand, and he seized it almost convulsively, his incendiary eyes fastened on her face.

Anna extended her hand, and he grabbed it sharply, his intense eyes fixed on her face.

'I must see you out,' he said, dropping that ungloved hand.

'I need to walk you out,' he said, letting go of that ungloved hand.

It was ten o'clock that night before Ephraim Tellwright returned home from Axe. He appeared to be in a bad temper. Agnes had gone to bed. His supper of bread-and-cheese and water was waiting for him, and Anna sat at the table while he consumed it. He ate in silence, somewhat hungrily, and she did not deem the moment propitious for telling him about her visit to Mynors' works.

It was ten o'clock that night when Ephraim Tellwright came home from Axe. He seemed to be in a bad mood. Agnes had already gone to bed. His dinner of bread and cheese and water was ready for him, and Anna sat at the table while he ate. He ate quietly, somewhat hungrily, and she didn't think it was a good time to tell him about her visit to Mynors' works.

'Has Titus Price sent up?' he asked at length, gulping down the last of the water.

"Has Titus Price arrived?" he asked finally, downing the last of the water.

'Sent up?'

'Sent up?'

'Yes. Art fond, lass? I told him as he mun send up some more o' thy rent to-day—twenty-five pun. He's not sent?'

'Yes. Are you into art, girl? I told him he needs to send over some more of your rent today—twenty-five pounds. He hasn’t sent it?'

'I don't know,' she said timidly. 'I was out this afternoon.'

'I don't know,' she said quietly. 'I was out this afternoon.'

'Out, wast?'

'Are you out?'

'Mr. Mynors sent word to ask me to go down and look over the works; so I went. I thought it would be all right.'

'Mr. Mynors sent a message asking me to come down and check out the works; so I went. I thought everything would be fine.'

'Well, it was'na all right. And I'd like to know what business thou hast gadding out, as soon as my back's turned. How can I tell whether Price sent up or not? And what's more, thou know's as th' house hadn't ought to be left.'

'Well, it wasn't all right. And I’d like to know what you were doing out and about as soon as I turned my back. How can I tell if Price sent someone up or not? And besides, you know the house shouldn’t be left unattended.'

'I'm sorry,' she said pleasantly, with a determination to be meek and dutiful.

'I'm sorry,' she said nicely, with a resolve to be submissive and responsible.

He grunted. 'Happen he didna' send. And if he did, and found th' house locked up, he should ha' sent again. Bring me th' inkpot, and I'll write a note as Agnes must take when her goes to school to-morrow morning.'

He grunted. 'Maybe he didn’t send it. And if he did, and found the house locked up, he should have sent it again. Bring me the inkpot, and I'll write a note that Agnes needs to take when she goes to school tomorrow morning.'

Anna obeyed. 'They'll never be able to pay twenty-five pounds, father,' she ventured. 'They've paid thirty already, you know.'

Anna obeyed. "They'll never be able to pay twenty-five pounds, Dad," she said cautiously. "They've already paid thirty, you know."

'Less gab,' he said shortly, taking up the pen. 'Here—write it thysen.' He threw the pen towards her. 'Tell Titus if he doesn't pay five-and-twenty this wik, us'll put bailiffs in.'

'Less talk,' he said briefly, picking up the pen. 'Here—write it yourself.' He tossed the pen in her direction. 'Tell Titus if he doesn’t pay twenty-five this week, we’ll send in the bailiffs.'

'Won't it come better from you, father?' she pleaded.

"Don't you think it would mean more coming from you, Dad?" she begged.

'Whose property is it?' The laconic question was final. She knew she must obey, and began to write. But, realising that she would perforce meet both Titus Price and Willie on Sunday, she merely demanded the money, omitting the threat. Her hand trembled as she passed the note to him to read.

'Whose property is it?' The brief question was conclusive. She knew she had to comply and started to write. However, knowing she would inevitably encounter both Titus Price and Willie on Sunday, she simply asked for the money, leaving out the threat. Her hand shook as she handed him the note to read.

'Will that do?'

'Is that good enough?'

His reply was to tear the paper across. 'Put down what I tell ye,' he ordered, 'and don't let's have any more paper wasted.' Then he dictated a letter which was an ultimatum in three lines. 'Sign it,' he said.

His response was to rip the paper in half. 'Write down what I tell you,' he commanded, 'and let’s not waste any more paper.' Then he dictated a letter that was an ultimatum in three lines. 'Sign it,' he said.

She signed it, weeping. She could see the wistful reproach in Willie Price's eyes.

She signed it, crying. She could see the sad disappointment in Willie Price's eyes.

'I suppose,' her father said, when she bade him 'Good-night,' 'I suppose if I hadn't asked, I should ha' heard nowt o' this gadding-about wi' Mynors?'

'I guess,' her father said, when she said 'Good-night,' 'I guess if I hadn't asked, I wouldn't have heard anything about this partying with Mynors?'

'I was going to tell you I had been to the works, father,' she said.

'I was going to tell you I had been to the factory, Dad,' she said.

'Going to!' That was his final blow, and having delivered it, he loosed the victim. 'Go to bed,' he said.

'Going to!' That was his final strike, and once he said it, he let the victim go. 'Go to bed,' he said.

She went upstairs, resolutely read her Bible, and resolutely prayed.

She went upstairs, firmly read her Bible, and confidently prayed.


[1] Jacket-man: the artisan's satiric term for anyone who does not work in shirt-sleeves, who is not actually a producer, such as a clerk or a pretentious foreman.

[1] Jacket-man: a sarcastic term used by artisans for anyone who doesn’t work in their shirtsleeves and isn’t directly producing, like a clerk or an arrogant supervisor.

[2] Saggars: large oval receptacles of coarse clay, in which the ware is placed for firing.

[2] Saggars: large oval containers made of rough clay, where the pottery is placed for firing.




CHAPTER IX

THE TREAT

This surly and terrorising ferocity of Tellwright's was as instinctive as the growl and spring of a beast of prey. He never considered his attitude towards the women of his household as an unusual phenomenon which needed justification, or as being in the least abnormal. The women of a household were the natural victims of their master: in his experience it had always been so. In his experience the master had always, by universal consent, possessed certain rights over the self-respect, the happiness and the peace of the defenceless souls set under him—rights as unquestioned as those exercised by Ivan the Terrible. Such rights were rooted in the secret nature of things. It was futile to discuss them, because their necessity and their propriety were equally obvious. Tellwright would not have been angry with any man who impugned them: he would merely have regarded the fellow as a crank and a born fool, on whom logic or indignation would be entirely wasted. He did as his father and uncles had done. He still thought of his father as a grim customer, infinitely more redoubtable than himself. He really believed that parents spoiled their children nowadays: to be knocked down by a single blow was one of the punishments of his own generation. He could recall the fearful timidity of his mother's eyes without a trace of compassion. His treatment of his daughters was no part of a system, nor obedient to any defined principles, nor the expression of a brutal disposition, nor the result of gradually-acquired habit. It came to him like eating, and like parsimony. He belonged to the great and powerful class of house-tyrants, the backbone of the British nation, whose views on income-tax cause ministries to tremble. If you had talked to him of the domestic graces of life, your words would have conveyed to him no meaning. If you had indicted him for simple unprovoked rudeness, he would have grinned, well knowing that, as the King can do no wrong, so a man cannot be rude in his own house. If you had told him that he inflicted purposeless misery not only on others but on himself, he would have grinned again, vaguely aware that he had not tried to be happy, and rather despising happiness as a sort of childish gewgaw. He had, in fact, never been happy at home: he had never known that expansion of the spirit which is called joy; he existed continually under a grievance. The atmosphere of Manor Terrace afflicted him, too, with a melancholy gloom—him, who had created it. Had he been capable of self-analysis, he would have discovered that his heart lightened whenever he left the house, and grew dark whenever he returned; but he was incapable of the feat. His case, like every similar case, was irremediable.

This grumpy and intimidating fierceness of Tellwright's was as natural as the growl and leap of a predator. He never thought of his treatment of the women in his household as something unusual that needed explaining, or as being in any way abnormal. The women in a household were simply the natural victims of their master: that had always been his experience. In his view, the master had universally recognized rights over the self-respect, happiness, and peace of the defenseless people under him—rights as unquestioned as those exercised by Ivan the Terrible. These rights were rooted in the basic nature of things. It was pointless to debate them, because their necessity and appropriateness were both obvious. Tellwright wouldn't have been angry with anyone who challenged these rights; he would have just seen them as a weirdo and a fool, someone on whom logic or anger would be a waste. He did what his father and uncles had done. He still thought of his father as a stern figure, far more formidable than himself. He truly believed that parents spoiled their kids nowadays: being struck down with a single blow was one of the punishments from his generation. He could remember the fearful timidity in his mother’s eyes without any compassion. His treatment of his daughters wasn’t part of any system, nor was it following any set principles, nor the result of a cruel nature, nor a habit he had gradually formed. It came to him as naturally as eating and as saving money. He belonged to the powerful group of household tyrants, the backbone of British society, whose views on income tax made governments uneasy. If you talked to him about the domestic comforts of life, your words would mean nothing to him. If you accused him of simple, unprovoked rudeness, he would have chuckled, knowing that, just as the King can do no wrong, a man cannot be rude in his own house. If you told him that he caused unnecessary misery not just to others but to himself as well, he would have grinned again, vaguely realizing that he hadn't tried to be happy, looking down on happiness as something childish and trivial. In reality, he had never been happy at home: he had never experienced the uplifting feeling known as joy; he constantly lived under a sense of grievance. The atmosphere of Manor Terrace weighed down on him, too, with a heavy sadness—he, who had created it. If he were capable of self-reflection, he would have noticed that he felt lighter whenever he left the house, and heavier whenever he returned; but he was incapable of such insight. His situation, like many others, was hopeless.

The next morning his preposterous displeasure lay like a curse on the house; Anna was silent, and Agnes moved on timid feet. In the afternoon Willie Price called in answer to the note. The miser was in the garden, and Agnes at school. Willie's craven and fawning humility was inexpressibly touching and shameful to Anna. She longed to say to him, as he stood hesitant and confused in the parlour: 'Go in peace. Forget this despicable rent. It sickens me to see you so.' She foresaw, as the effect of her father's vindictive pursuit of her tenants, an interminable succession of these mortifying interviews.

The next morning, his ridiculous anger hung over the house like a dark cloud; Anna was quiet, and Agnes walked around nervously. In the afternoon, Willie Price came by in response to the note. The miser was in the garden, and Agnes was at school. Willie's pathetic and overly submissive attitude was both deeply sad and embarrassing for Anna. She wanted to tell him, as he stood there uncertain and awkward in the living room: 'Just go. Forget about this awful rent. It makes me sick to see you like this.' She imagined that her father's spiteful treatment of their tenants would lead to an endless stream of these humiliating meetings.

'You're rather hard on us,' Willie Price began, using the old phrases, but in a tone of forced and propitiatory cheerfulness, as though he feared to bring down a storm of anger which should ruin all. 'You'll not deny that we've been doing our best.'

'You're being pretty tough on us,' Willie Price started, using the old expressions, but in a tone of forced and overly cheerful politeness, as if he was afraid that he would trigger a wave of anger that would mess everything up. 'You can't deny that we've been trying our hardest.'

'The rent is due, you know, Mr. William,' she replied, blushing.

"The rent is due, you know, Mr. William," she said, blushing.

'Oh, yes,' he said quickly. 'I don't deny that. I admit that. I—did you happen to see Mr. Tellwright's postscript to your letter?'

'Oh, yes,' he said quickly. 'I won't deny that. I accept that. Did you happen to see Mr. Tellwright's postscript to your letter?'

'No,' she answered, without thinking.

'No,' she replied, without a second thought.

He drew the letter, soiled and creased, from his pocket, and displayed it to her. At the foot of the page she read, in Ephraim's thick and clumsy characters: 'P.S. This is final.'

He pulled out the letter, dirty and wrinkled, from his pocket and showed it to her. At the bottom of the page, she read, in Ephraim's messy handwriting: 'P.S. This is final.'

'My father,' said Willie, 'was a little put about. He said he'd never received such a letter before in the whole of his business career. It isn't as if——'

'My father,' said Willie, 'was a bit taken aback. He said he'd never received a letter like that in his entire career. It's not like——'

'I needn't tell you,' she interrupted, with a sudden determination to get to the worst without more suspense, 'that of course I am in father's hands.'

'I don't need to tell you,' she interrupted, with a sudden resolve to get to the worst without any more suspense, 'that I am, of course, at my father's mercy.'

'Oh! Of course, Miss Tellwright; we quite understand that—quite. It's just a matter of business. We owe a debt and we must pay it. All we want is time.' He smiled piteously at her, his blue eyes full of appeal. She was obliged to gaze at the floor.

'Oh! Of course, Miss Tellwright; we totally get that—totally. It's just business. We have a debt, and we need to pay it. All we want is more time.' He gave her a sad smile, his blue eyes filled with longing. She had to look down at the floor.

'Yes,' she said, tapping her foot on the rug. 'But father means what he says.' She looked up at him again, trying to soften her words by means of something more subtle than a smile.

'Yes,' she said, tapping her foot on the rug. 'But Dad means what he says.' She looked up at him again, trying to soften her words with something more subtle than a smile.

'He means what he says,' Willie agreed; 'and I admire him for it.'

'He means what he says,' Willie agreed, 'and I respect him for that.'

The obsequious, truckling lie was odious to her.

The flattering, fawning lie was disgusting to her.

'Perhaps I could see him,' he ventured.

'Maybe I could see him,' he suggested.

'I wish you would,' Anna said, sincerely. 'Father, you're wanted,' she called curtly through the window.

'I wish you would,' Anna said, genuinely. 'Dad, you’re needed,' she called sharply through the window.

'I've got a proposal to make to him,' Price continued, while they awaited the presence of the miser, 'and I can't hardly think he'll refuse it.'

'I've got a proposal to make to him,' Price continued, while they waited for the miser to show up, 'and I can hardly believe he'll refuse it.'

'Well, young sir,' Tellwright said blandly, with an air almost insinuating, as he entered. Willie Price, the simpleton, was deceived by it, and, taking courage, adopted another line of defence. He thought the miser was a little ashamed of his postscript.

'Well, young man,' Tellwright said casually, with a tone that seemed almost suggestive, as he walked in. Willie Price, the simpleton, fell for it, and, feeling emboldened, decided to try a different approach. He believed the miser was somewhat embarrassed about his postscript.

'About your note, Mr. Tellwright; I was just telling Miss Tellwright that my father said he had never received such a letter in the whole of his business career.' The youth assumed a discreet indignation.

'About your note, Mr. Tellwright; I was just telling Miss Tellwright that my father said he had never received such a letter in his entire business career.' The young man feigned a subtle indignation.

'Thy feyther's had dozens o' such letters, lad,' the miser said with cold emphasis, 'or my name's not Tellwright. Dunna tell me as Titus Price's never heard of a bumbailiff afore.'

'Your father has received dozens of these letters, kid,' the miser said coldly, 'or my name's not Tellwright. Don't tell me that Titus Price has never heard of a bailiff before.'

Willie was crushed at a blow, and obliged to retreat. He smiled painfully. 'Come, Mr. Tellwright. Don't talk like that. All we want is time.'

Willie was devastated and forced to step back. He smiled weakly. 'Come on, Mr. Tellwright. Don’t say things like that. All we need is time.'

'Time is money,' said Tellwright, 'and if us give you time us give you money. 'Stead o' that, it's you as mun give us money. That's right reason.'

"Time is money," said Tellwright, "and when we give you our time, we’re giving you money. Instead, it's you who should give us money. That’s the right way to think about it."

Willie laughed with difficulty. 'See here, Mr. Tellwright. To cut a long story short, it's like this. You ask for twenty-five pounds. I've got in my pocket a bill of exchange drawn by us on Mr. Sutton and endorsed by him, for thirty pounds, payable in three months. Will you take that? Remember it's for thirty, and you only ask for twenty-five.'

Willie laughed awkwardly. “Listen, Mr. Tellwright. To make a long story short, here’s the deal. You’re asking for twenty-five pounds. I have a bill of exchange in my pocket that we drew on Mr. Sutton and he endorsed, for thirty pounds, due in three months. Will you accept that? Just keep in mind it’s for thirty, and you’re only asking for twenty-five.”

'So Mr. Sutton has dealings with ye, eh?' Tellwright remarked.

'So Mr. Sutton is doing business with you, huh?' Tellwright said.

'Oh, yes,' Willie answered proudly. 'He buys off us regularly. We've done business for years.'

'Oh, yeah,' Willie replied proudly. 'He buys from us regularly. We've been doing business for years.'

'And pays i' bills at three months, eh?' The miser grinned.

'And pays his bills in three months, huh?' The miser grinned.

'Sometimes,' said Willie.

"Sometimes," said Willie.

'Let's see it,' said the miser.

'Let's take a look,' said the miser.

'What—the bill?'

'What—the invoice?'

'Ay!'

'Hey!'

'Oh! The bill's all right.' Willie took it from his pocket, and opening out the blue paper, gave it to old Tellwright. Anna perceived the anxiety on the youth's face. He flushed and his hand trembled. She dared not speak, but she wished to tell him to be at ease. She knew from infallible signs that her father would take the bill. Ephraim gazed at the stamped paper as at something strange and unprecedented in his experience.

'Oh! The bill's good.' Willie took it from his pocket, and unfolding the blue paper, handed it to old Tellwright. Anna noticed the worry on the young man's face. He turned red and his hand shook. She didn't dare to speak, but she wanted to tell him to relax. She could tell with complete certainty that her father would accept the bill. Ephraim stared at the stamped paper as if it were something odd and unheard of in his experience.

'Father would want you not to negotiate that bill,' said Willie. 'The fact is, we promised Mr. Sutton that that particular bill should not leave our hands—unless it was absolutely necessary. So father would like you not to discount it, and he will redeem it before it matures. You quite understand—we don't care to offend an old customer like Mr. Sutton.'

'Dad would want you not to negotiate that bill,' said Willie. 'The truth is, we promised Mr. Sutton that this specific bill should stay with us—unless it was absolutely necessary. So Dad would prefer you not to discount it, and he’ll redeem it before it matures. You get what I mean—we don’t want to upset a long-time customer like Mr. Sutton.'

'Then this bit o' paper's worth nowt for welly[1] three months?' the old man said, with an affectation of bewildered simplicity.

'Then this piece of paper isn’t worth anything for three months?' the old man said, pretending to be confused.

Happily inspired for once, Willie made no answer, but put the question: 'Will you take it?'

Happily inspired for once, Willie didn't respond but asked the question: 'Will you take it?'

'Ay! Us'll tak' it,' said Tellwright, 'though it is but a promise.' He was well pleased.

"Aye! We'll take it," said Tellwright, "even though it's just a promise." He was very pleased.

Young Price's face showed his relief. It was now evident that he had been passing through an ordeal. Anna guessed that perhaps everything had depended on the acceptance by Tellwright of that bill. Had he refused it, Prices, she thought, might have come to sudden disaster. She felt glad and disburdened for the moment; but immediately it occurred to her that her father would not rest satisfied for long; a few weeks, and he would give another turn to the screw.

Young Price's face showed his relief. It was clear that he had been going through a tough time. Anna suspected that everything had hinged on Tellwright accepting that bill. If he had refused it, she thought, the Prices might have faced sudden disaster. She felt happy and a bit lighter for the moment; but it quickly hit her that her father wouldn't stay satisfied for long; in a few weeks, he would tighten the pressure again.


The Tellwrights were destined to have other visitors that afternoon. Agnes, coming from school, was accompanied by a lady. Anna, who was setting the tea-table, saw a double shadow pass the window, and heard voices. She ran into the kitchen, and found Mrs. Sutton seated on a chair, breathing quickly.

The Tellwrights were meant to have more visitors that afternoon. Agnes, returning from school, was with a lady. Anna, who was setting the tea table, noticed a double shadow move past the window and heard voices. She dashed into the kitchen and found Mrs. Sutton sitting in a chair, breathing fast.

'You'll excuse me coming in so unceremoniously, Anna,' she said, after having kissed her heartily. 'But Agnes said that she always came in by the back way, so I came that way too. Now I'm resting a minute. I've had to walk to-day. Our horse has gone lame.'

'You’ll have to forgive me for barging in like this, Anna,' she said after giving her a warm kiss. 'But Agnes mentioned she always comes in through the back, so I did the same. Now I’m just taking a quick break. I had to walk today since our horse is limping.'

This kind heart radiated a heavenly goodwill, even in the most ordinary phrases. Anna began to expand at once.

This kind spirit exuded a divine warmth, even in the simplest phrases. Anna started to open up immediately.

'Now do come into the parlour,' she said, 'and let me make you comfortable.'

'Come into the living room,' she said, 'and let me get you settled in.'

'Just a minute, my dear,' Mrs. Sutton begged, fanning herself with her handkerchief, 'Agnes's legs are so long.'

'Just a minute, my dear,' Mrs. Sutton pleaded, fanning herself with her handkerchief, 'Agnes's legs are so long.'

'Oh, Mrs. Sutton,' Agnes protested, laughing, 'how can you? I could scarcely keep up with you!'

'Oh, Mrs. Sutton,' Agnes complained, laughing, 'how can you? I can hardly keep up with you!'

'Well, my dear, I never could walk slowly. I'm one of them that go till they drop. It's very silly.' She smiled, and the two girls smiled happily in return.

'Well, my dear, I could never walk slowly. I'm one of those who go until they can't anymore. It's pretty silly.' She smiled, and the two girls smiled back happily.

'Agnes,' said the housewife, 'set another cup and saucer and plate.' Agnes threw down her hat and satchel of books, eager to show hospitality.

'Agnes,' said the housewife, 'set another cup and saucer and plate.' Agnes tossed her hat and bag of books aside, excited to offer hospitality.

'It still keeps very warm,' Anna remarked, as Mrs. Sutton was silent.

'It's still really warm,' Anna said, as Mrs. Sutton stayed quiet.

'It's beautifully cool here,' said Mrs. Sutton. 'I see you've got your kitchen like a new pin, Anna, if you'll excuse me saying so. Henry was very enthusiastic about this kitchen the other night, at our house.'

'It's so nice and cool here,' said Mrs. Sutton. 'I see you've got your kitchen looking as good as new, Anna, if you don’t mind me saying. Henry was really impressed with this kitchen the other night at our place.'

'What! Mr. Mynors?' Anna reddened to the eyes.

'What! Mr. Mynors?' Anna blushed deeply.

'Yes, my dear; and he's a very particular young man, you know.'

'Yes, my dear, and he's a really specific young man, you know.'

The kettle conveniently boiled at that moment, and Anna went to the range to make the tea.

The kettle conveniently boiled at that moment, and Anna went to the stove to make the tea.

'Tea is all ready, Mrs. Sutton,' she said at length. 'I'm sure you could do with a cup.'

'The tea is ready, Mrs. Sutton,' she finally said. 'I'm sure you could use a cup.'

'That I could,' said Mrs. Sutton. 'It's what I've come for.'

'That I could,' said Mrs. Sutton. 'That's why I'm here.'

'We have tea at four. Father will be glad to see you.' The clock struck, and they went into the parlour, Anna carrying the tea-pot and the hot-water jug. Agnes had preceded them. The old man was sitting expectant in his chair.

'We have tea at four. Dad will be happy to see you.' The clock chimed, and they entered the living room, Anna holding the teapot and the hot-water jug. Agnes had gone in ahead of them. The old man was sitting eagerly in his chair.

'Well, Mr. Tellwright,' said the visitor, 'you see I've called to see you, and to beg a cup of tea. I overtook Agnes coming home from school—overtook her, mind—me, at my age!' Ephraim rose slowly and shook hands.

'Well, Mr. Tellwright,' the visitor said, 'I've come to see you and to ask for a cup of tea. I ran into Agnes on her way home from school—ran into her, can you believe it—me, at my age!' Ephraim slowly got up and shook hands.

'You're welcome,' he said curtly, but with a kindliness that amazed Anna. She was unaware that in past days he had known Mrs. Sutton as a young and charming girl, a vision that had stirred poetic ideas in hundreds of prosaic breasts, Tellwright's included. There was scarcely a middle-aged male Wesleyan in Bursley and Hanbridge who had not a peculiar regard for Mrs. Sutton, and who did not think that he alone truly appreciated her.

"You're welcome," he said briefly, but there was a kindness in his tone that surprised Anna. She didn't realize that in earlier days he had known Mrs. Sutton as a young and charming girl, a image that had inspired poetic thoughts in many ordinary men, including Tellwright. Almost every middle-aged male Wesleyan in Bursley and Hanbridge held a special fondness for Mrs. Sutton and believed that he alone truly appreciated her.

'What an' you bin tiring yourself with this afternoon?' he asked, when they had begun tea, and Mrs. Sutton had refused a second piece of bread-and-butter.

'What have you been wearing yourself out with this afternoon?' he asked, when they had started tea, and Mrs. Sutton had declined a second piece of bread-and-butter.

'What have I been doing? I've been seeing to some inside repairs to the superintendent's house. Be thankful you aren't a circuit-steward's wife, Anna.'

'What have I been up to? I've been taking care of some repairs inside the superintendent's house. Be glad you're not a circuit steward's wife, Anna.'

'Why, does she have to see to the repairs of the minister's house?' Anna asked, surprised.

"Why does she need to handle the repairs of the minister's house?" Anna asked, surprised.

'I should just think she does. She has to stand between the minister's wife and the funds of the society. And Mrs. Reginald Banks has been used to the very best of everything. She's just a bit exacting, though I must say she's willing enough to spend her own money too. She wants a new boiler in the scullery now, and I'm sure her boiler is a great deal better than ours. But we must try to please her. She isn't used to us rough folks and our ways. Mr. Banks said to me this afternoon that he tried always to shield her from the worries of this world.' She smiled almost imperceptibly.

'I should just assume she does. She has to manage the relationship between the minister's wife and the society's funds. And Mrs. Reginald Banks is used to having only the best. She can be a bit demanding, but I have to admit she's also willing to spend her own money. Right now, she wants a new boiler in the scullery, and I’m sure her boiler is way better than ours. But we have to try to keep her happy. She’s not accustomed to our rough ways. Mr. Banks mentioned to me this afternoon that he always tries to protect her from the stress of this world.' She smiled almost imperceptibly.

There was a ring at the bell, and Agnes, much perturbed by the august arrival, let in Mr. Banks himself.

There was a ring at the doorbell, and Agnes, feeling quite anxious about the important visitor, let in Mr. Banks himself.

'Shall I enter, my little dear?' said Mr. Banks. 'Your father, your sister, in?'

'Should I come in, my dear?' said Mr. Banks. 'Your dad, your sister, too?'

'It ne'er rains but it pours,' said Tellwright, who had caught the minister's voice.

'It never rains, but it pours,' said Tellwright, who had heard the minister's voice.

'Speak of angels——' said Mrs. Sutton, laughing quietly.

'Speak of angels——' said Mrs. Sutton, chuckling softly.

The minister came grandly into the parlour. 'Ah! How do you do, brother Tellwright, and you, Miss Tellwright? Mrs. Sutton, we two seem happily fated to meet this afternoon. Don't let me disturb you, I beg—I cannot stay. My time is very limited. I wish I could call oftener, brother Tellwright; but really the new régime leaves no time for pastoral visits. I was saying to my wife only this morning that I haven't had a free afternoon for a month.' He accepted a cup of tea.

The minister walked into the living room with great presence. "Ah! How are you, brother Tellwright, and you, Miss Tellwright? Mrs. Sutton, it seems we're destined to meet this afternoon. Please don’t let me interrupt you; I can't stay. My time is quite limited. I wish I could visit more often, brother Tellwright, but honestly, the new régime leaves no time for pastoral visits. I was just telling my wife this morning that I haven't had a free afternoon in a month." He accepted a cup of tea.

'Us'n have a tea-party this afternoon,' said Tellwright quasi-privately to Mrs. Sutton.

'We're having a tea party this afternoon,' said Tellwright quasi-privately to Mrs. Sutton.

'And now,' the minister resumed, 'I've come to beg. The special fund, you know, Mr. Tellwright, to clear off the debt on the new school-buildings. I referred to it from the pulpit last Sabbath. It's not in my province to go round begging, but someone must do it.'

'And now,' the minister continued, 'I've come to ask for help. The special fund, you know, Mr. Tellwright, to pay off the debt on the new school buildings. I mentioned it from the pulpit last Sunday. It's not my role to go around asking for donations, but someone has to do it.'

'Well, for me, I'm beforehand with you, Mr. Banks,' said Mrs. Sutton, 'for it's on that very errand I've called to see Mr. Tellwright this afternoon. His name is on my list.'

'Well, for me, I'm ahead of you, Mr. Banks,' said Mrs. Sutton, 'because it's for that very reason I've come to see Mr. Tellwright this afternoon. His name is on my list.'

'Ah! Then I leave our brother to your superior persuasions.'

'Ah! Then I leave our brother to your better persuasion.'

'Come, Mr. Tellwright,' said Mrs. Sutton, 'you're between two fires, and you'll get no mercy. What will you give?'

'Come on, Mr. Tellwright,' said Mrs. Sutton, 'you're caught in a tough spot, and you won't get any sympathy. What are you willing to offer?'

The miser foresaw a probable discomfiture, and sought for some means of escape.

The miser anticipated a likely failure and looked for a way out.

'What are others giving?' he asked.

'What are others giving?' he asked.

'My husband is giving fifty pounds, and you could buy him up, lock, stock, and barrel.'

'My husband is giving fifty pounds, and you could buy him out completely.'

'Nay, nay!' said Tellwright, aghast at this sum. He had underrated the importance of the Building Fund.

'Nay, nay!' said Tellwright, shocked by this amount. He had underestimated the significance of the Building Fund.

'And I,' said the parson solemnly, 'I have but fifty pounds in the world, but I am giving twenty to this fund.'

'And I,' said the parson seriously, 'I have only fifty pounds to my name, but I'm donating twenty to this fund.'

'Then you're giving too much,' said Tellwright with quick brusqueness. 'You canna' afford it.'

"Then you're giving too much," Tellwright said sharply. "You can't afford it."

'The Lord will provide,' said the parson.

'God will provide,' said the pastor.

'Happen He will, happen not. It's as well you've gotten a rich wife, Mr. Banks.'

'Happen he will, happen he won't. It's good you've married a wealthy woman, Mr. Banks.'

The parson's dignity was obviously wounded, and Anna wondered timidly what would occur next. Mrs. Sutton interposed. 'Come now, Mr. Tellwright,' she said again, 'to the point: what will you give?'

The parson's dignity was clearly hurt, and Anna nervously thought about what would happen next. Mrs. Sutton stepped in. "Come on, Mr. Tellwright," she said again, "let's get to the point: what will you offer?"

'I'll think it over and let you hear,' said Ephraim.

"I'll think about it and get back to you," said Ephraim.

'Oh, no! That won't do at all, will it, Mr. Banks? I, at any rate, am not going away without a definite promise. As an old and good Wesleyan, of course you will feel it your duty to be generous with us.'

"Oh, no! That won't work at all, will it, Mr. Banks? I, for one, am not leaving without a clear promise. As an old and loyal Wesleyan, you’ll definitely feel it’s your responsibility to be generous with us."

'You used to be a pillar of the Hanbridge circuit—was it not so?' said Mr. Banks to the miser, recovering himself.

'You used to be a key figure in the Hanbridge circuit—wasn't that the case?' Mr. Banks said to the miser, regaining his composure.

'So they used to say,' Tellwright replied grimly. 'That was because I cleared 'em of debt in ten years. But they've slipped into th' ditch again sin' I left 'em.'

'So they used to say,' Tellwright replied grimly. 'That was because I got them out of debt in ten years. But they've fallen back into the ditch again since I left them.'

'But if I am right, you do not meet[2] with us,' the minister pursued imperturbably.

'But if I'm right, you don't meet[2] with us,' the minister continued calmly.

'No.'

'No.'

'My own class is at three on Saturdays,' said the minister. 'I should be glad to see you.'

'My class is at three on Saturdays,' said the minister. 'I'd be happy to see you.'

'I tell you what I'll do,' said the miser to Mrs. Sutton. 'Titus Price is a big man at th' Sunday-school. I'll give as much as he gives to th' school buildings. That's fair.'

"I'll tell you what I'm going to do," said the miser to Mrs. Sutton. "Titus Price is a big deal at the Sunday school. I'll donate as much as he donates for the school buildings. That's fair."

'Do you know what Mr. Price is giving?' Mrs. Sutton asked the minister.

"Do you know what Mr. Price is giving?" Mrs. Sutton asked the minister.

'I saw Mr. Price yesterday. He is giving twenty-five pounds.'

'I saw Mr. Price yesterday. He's giving twenty-five pounds.'

'Very well, that's a bargain,' said Mrs. Sutton, who had succeeded beyond her expectations.

'Great, that's a deal,' said Mrs. Sutton, who had done better than she expected.

Ephraim was the dupe of his own scheming. He had made sure that Price's contribution would be a small one. This ostentatious munificence on the part of the beggared Titus filled him with secret anger. He determined to demand more rent at a very early date.

Ephraim was fooled by his own plans. He had ensured that Price's contribution would be minimal. This showy generosity from the struggling Titus made him secretly angry. He decided to ask for higher rent very soon.

'I'll put you down for twenty-five pounds as a first subscription,' said the minister, taking out a pocket-book. Perhaps you will give Mrs. Sutton or myself the cheque to-day?'

"I'll note you for twenty-five pounds for your first subscription," said the minister, pulling out a wallet. "Maybe you could give Mrs. Sutton or me the check today?"

'Has Mr. Price paid?' the miser asked, warily.

'Has Mr. Price paid?' the miser asked cautiously.

'Not yet.'

'Not yet.'

'Then come to me when he has.' Ephraim perceived the way of escape.

'Then come to me when he has.' Ephraim saw the way out.

When the minister was gone, as Mrs. Sutton seemed in no hurry to depart, Anna and Agnes cleared the table.

When the minister left, since Mrs. Sutton didn’t seem in a hurry to leave, Anna and Agnes cleared the table.

'I've just been telling your father, Anna,' said Mrs. Sutton, when Anna returned to the room, 'that Mr. Sutton and myself and Beatrice are going to the Isle of Man soon for a fortnight or so, and we should very much like you to come with us.'

"I was just telling your dad, Anna," said Mrs. Sutton when Anna came back into the room, "that Mr. Sutton, Beatrice, and I are heading to the Isle of Man soon for about two weeks, and we would really love for you to join us."

Anna's heart began to beat violently, though she knew there was no hope for her. This, then, doubtless, was the main object of Mrs. Sutton's visit! 'Oh! But I couldn't, really!' said Anna, scarcely aware what she did say.

Anna's heart started to race, even though she knew there was no chance for her. This, then, was definitely the main reason for Mrs. Sutton's visit! 'Oh! But I really couldn't!' said Anna, hardly realizing what she said.

'Why not?' asked Mrs. Sutton.

"Why not?" asked Mrs. Sutton.

'Well—the house.'

'So—the house.'

'The house? Agnes could see to what little housekeeping your father would want. The schools will break up next week.'

'The house? Agnes could handle whatever little cleaning your father might need. The schools will be closing next week.'

'What do these young folks want holidays for?' Tellwright inquired with philosophic gruffness. 'I never had one. And what's more, I wouldn't thank ye for one. I'll pig on at Bursley. When ye've gotten a roof of your own, where's the sense o' going elsewhere and pigging?'

'What do these young people want holidays for?' Tellwright asked gruffly and thoughtfully. 'I never had one. And honestly, I wouldn't be grateful for one. I'll keep working in Bursley. Once you've got a roof over your head, what's the point of going somewhere else and just scraping by?'

'But we really want Anna to go,' Mrs. Sutton went on. 'Beatrice is very anxious about it. Beatrice is very short of suitable friends.'

'But we really want Anna to go,' Mrs. Sutton continued. 'Beatrice is really worried about it. Beatrice doesn’t have enough suitable friends.'

'I should na' ha' thought it,' said Tellwright. 'Her seems to know everyone.'

"I shouldn't have thought it," said Tellwright. "She seems to know everyone."

'But she is,' Mrs. Sutton insisted.

'But she is,' Mrs. Sutton insisted.

'I think as you'd better leave Anna out this year,' said the miser stubbornly.

'I think you should leave Anna out this year,' said the miser stubbornly.

Anna wished profoundly that Mrs. Sutton would abandon the futile attempt. Then she perceived that the visitor was signalling to her to leave the room. Anna obeyed, going into the kitchen to give an eye to Agnes, who was washing up.

Anna deeply wished that Mrs. Sutton would give up the pointless effort. Then she noticed that the visitor was signaling for her to leave the room. Anna complied, going into the kitchen to check on Agnes, who was doing the dishes.

'It's all right,' said Mrs. Sutton contentedly, when Anna returned to the parlour. 'Your father has consented to your going with us. It is very kind of him, for I'm sure he'll miss you.'

'It's all right,' said Mrs. Sutton happily when Anna returned to the living room. 'Your dad has agreed to let you come with us. It's really nice of him, because I'm sure he'll miss you.'

Anna sat down, limp, speechless. She could not believe the news.

Anna sat down, feeling weak and unable to speak. She couldn’t believe the news.

'You are awfully good,' she said to Mrs. Sutton in the lobby, as the latter was leaving the house. 'I'm ever so grateful—you can't think.' And she threw her arms round Mrs. Sutton's neck.

'You're really amazing,' she said to Mrs. Sutton in the lobby as she was leaving the house. 'I'm so grateful—you have no idea.' And she wrapped her arms around Mrs. Sutton's neck.

Agnes ran up to say good-bye.

Agnes rushed over to say goodbye.

Mrs. Sutton kissed the child. 'Agnes will be the little housekeeper, eh?' The little housekeeper was almost as pleased at the prospect of housekeeping as if she too had been going to the Isle of Man. 'You'll both be at the school-treat next Tuesday, I suppose,' Mrs. Sutton said, holding Agnes by the hand. Agnes glanced at her sister in inquiry.

Mrs. Sutton kissed the child. 'Agnes will be the little housekeeper, right?' The little housekeeper was almost as excited about the idea of housekeeping as if she were actually going to the Isle of Man. 'I guess you both will be at the school treat next Tuesday,' Mrs. Sutton said, holding Agnes by the hand. Agnes looked at her sister for confirmation.

'I don't know,' Anna replied. 'We shall see.'

'I don't know,' Anna replied. 'We'll see.'

The truth was, that not caring to ask her father for the money for the tickets, she had given no thought to the school-treat.

The truth was that, not bothering to ask her dad for the money for the tickets, she hadn't thought at all about the school treat.

'Did I tell you that Henry Mynors will most likely come with us to the Isle of Man?' said Mrs. Sutton from the gate.

'Did I mention that Henry Mynors will probably join us on our trip to the Isle of Man?' said Mrs. Sutton from the gate.

Anna retired to her bedroom to savour an astounding happiness in quietude. At supper the miser was in a mood not unbenevolent. She expected a reaction the next morning, but Ephraim, strange to say, remained innocuous. She ventured to ask him for the money for the treat tickets, two shillings. He made no immediate reply. Half an hour afterwards, he ejaculated: 'What i' th' name o' fortune dost thee want wi' school-treats?'

Anna went to her bedroom to enjoy an incredible happiness in peace. At dinner, the miser was in a surprisingly good mood. She anticipated a reaction the next morning, but Ephraim, strangely enough, stayed calm. She dared to ask him for the money for the treat tickets, two shillings. He didn’t respond right away. Half an hour later, he suddenly said: 'What in the name of fortune do you want with school treats?'

'It's Agnes,' she answered; 'of course Agnes can't go alone.'

'It's Agnes,' she replied; 'of course Agnes can't go by herself.'

In the end he threw down a florin. He became perilous for the rest of the day, but the florin was an indisputable fact in Anna's pocket.

In the end, he tossed down a florin. He became dangerous for the rest of the day, but the florin was a definite reality in Anna's pocket.

The school-treat was held in a twelve-acre field near Sneyd, the seat of a marquis, and a Saturday afternoon resort very popular in the Five Towns. The children were formed at noon on Duck Bank into a procession, which marched to the railway station to the singing of 'Shall we gather at the river?' Thence a special train carried them, in seething compartments, excited and strident, to Sneyd, where there had been two sharp showers in the morning, the procession was reformed along a country road, and the vacillating sky threatened more rain; but because the sun had shone dazzlingly at eleven o'clock all the women and girls, too easily tempted by the glory of the moment, blossomed forth in pale blouses and parasols. The chattering crowd, bright and defenceless as flowers, made at Sneyd a picture at once gay and pathetic. It had rained there at half-past twelve; the roads were wet; and among the two hundred and fifty children and thirty teachers there were less than a score umbrellas. The excursion was theoretically in charge of Titus Price, the Senior Superintendent, but this dignitary had failed to arrive on Duck Bank, and Mynors had taken his place. In the train Anna heard that some one had seen Mr. Price, wearing a large grey wideawake, leap into the guard's van at the very instant of departure. He had not been at school on the previous Sunday, and Anna was somewhat perturbed at the prospect of meeting the man who had defined her letter to him as unique in the whole of his business career. She caught a glimpse of the grey wideawake on the platform at Sneyd, and steered her own scholars so as to avoid its vicinity. But on the march to the field Titus reviewed the procession, and she was obliged to meet his eyes and return his salutation. The look of the man was a shock to her. He seemed thinner, nervous, restless, preoccupied, and terribly careworn; except the new brilliant hat, all his summer clothes were soiled and shabby. It was as though he had forced himself, out of regard for appearances, to attend the fête, but had left his thoughts in Edward Street. His uneasy and hollow cheerfulness was painful to watch. Anna realised the intensity of the crisis through which Mr. Price was passing. She perceived in a single glance, more clearly than she could have done after a hundred interviews with the young and unresponsible William—however distressing these might be—that Titus must for weeks have been engaged in a truly frightful struggle. His face was a proof of the tragic sincerity of William's appeals to herself and to her father. That Price should have contrived to pay seventy pounds of rent in a little more than a month seemed to her, imperfectly acquainted alike with Ephraim's ruthless compulsions and with the financial jugglery often practised by hard-pressed debtors, to be an almost miraculous effort after honesty. Her conscience smote her for conniving at which she now saw to be a persecution. She felt as sorry for Titus as she had felt for his son. The obese man, with his reputation in rags about him, was acutely wistful in her eyes, as a child might have been.

The school event took place in a twelve-acre field near Sneyd, the residence of a marquis, and was a popular Saturday afternoon getaway in the Five Towns. At noon, the children lined up on Duck Bank to form a procession, marching to the train station while singing "Shall we gather at the river?" A special train then took them, packed into the compartments, excited and loud, to Sneyd, where there had been two quick rain showers that morning. The procession was reformed along a country road, and the shifting sky threatened more rain; however, since the sun had shone brightly at eleven o'clock, the women and girls, easily swayed by the moment, dressed in light blouses and carried parasols. The chattering crowd, colorful and unprotected like flowers, created a scene at Sneyd that was both cheerful and sad. It had rained there around twelve-thirty; the roads were wet; and among the two hundred and fifty children and thirty teachers, there were fewer than twenty umbrellas. Although the excursion was officially overseen by Titus Price, the Senior Superintendent, he didn't show up on Duck Bank, so Mynors stepped in for him. On the train, Anna heard that someone had seen Mr. Price, wearing a large grey wide-brimmed hat, jump into the guard's van just as they were leaving. He hadn’t been at school the Sunday before, and Anna felt a bit anxious about encountering the man who had called her letter to him unique in all his career. She caught sight of the grey hat on the platform at Sneyd and steered her students away from it. But as they marched to the field, Titus reviewed the procession, and she had to meet his gaze and return his greeting. His appearance shocked her; he looked thinner, nervous, restless, distracted, and terribly worn out. Aside from the new bright hat, all his summer clothes were dirty and shabby. It seemed like he had forced himself to attend the event for appearances' sake, yet his mind was elsewhere. His uneasy and vacant cheerfulness was painful to see. Anna realized the intensity of the crisis Mr. Price was facing. She understood in an instant, more clearly than she could have after a hundred interviews with the young and careless William—no matter how distressing those might be—that Titus had likely been engaged in a terrible struggle for weeks. His face bore witness to the tragic sincerity of William's pleas to her and her father. The fact that Price had managed to pay seventy pounds in rent in just over a month seemed to her, with her limited understanding of Ephraim's ruthless demands and the financial tricks often used by desperate debtors, to be an almost miraculous act of integrity. Her conscience troubled her for being complicit in what she now recognized as a persecution. She felt just as sorry for Titus as she had for his son. The overweight man, with his reputation in tatters, appeared profoundly yearning in her eyes, like a child might.

A carriage rolled by, raising the dust in places where the strong sun had already dried the road. It was Mr. Sutton's landau, driven by Barrett. Beatrice, in white, sat solitary amid cushions, while two large hampers occupied most of the coachman's box. The carriage seemed to move with lordly ease and rapidity, and the teachers, already weary and fretted by the endless pranks of the children, bitterly envied the enthroned maid who nodded and smiled to them with such charming condescension. It was a social triumph for Beatrice. She disappeared ahead like a goddess in a cloud, and scarcely a woman who saw her from the humble level of the roadway but would have married a satyr to be able to do as Beatrice did. Later, when the field was reached, and the children bursting through the gate had spread like a flood over the daisied grass, the landau was to be seen drawn up near the refreshment tent; Barrett was unpacking the hampers, which contained delicate creamy confectionery for the teachers' tea; Beatrice explained that these were her mother's gift, and that she had driven down in order to preserve the fragile pasties from the risks of a railway journey. Gratitude became vocal, and Beatrice's success was perfected.

A carriage rolled by, kicking up dust where the strong sun had already dried the road. It was Mr. Sutton's landau, driven by Barrett. Beatrice, dressed in white, sat alone among cushions, while two large hampers took up most of the coachman's box. The carriage seemed to glide along effortlessly and quickly, and the teachers, already worn out and annoyed by the children’s endless antics, envied the seated girl who nodded and smiled down at them with charming superiority. It was a social triumph for Beatrice. She disappeared ahead like a goddess in a cloud, and hardly a woman who saw her from the humble road below wouldn’t have married a satyr just to be able to do what Beatrice did. Later, when they reached the field and the kids burst through the gate, spreading across the daisied grass, the landau could be seen parked near the refreshment tent; Barrett was unpacking the hampers, which held delicate creamy treats for the teachers’ tea. Beatrice explained that these were her mother’s gift, and she had come down to keep the fragile pastries safe from the dangers of a train journey. Gratitude was expressed, and Beatrice's success was complete.

Then the more conscientious teachers set themselves seriously to the task of amusing the smaller children, and the smaller children consented to be amused according to the recipes appointed by long custom for school-treats. Many round-games, which invariably comprised singing or kissing, being thus annually resuscitated by elderly people from the deeps of memory, were preserved for a posterity which otherwise would never have known them. Among these was Bobby-Bingo. For twenty-five years Titus Price had played at Bobby-Bingo with the infant classes at the school-treat, and this year he was bound by the expectations of all to continue the practice. Another diversion which he always took care to organise was the three-legged race for boys. Also, he usually joined in the tut-ball, a quaint game which owes its surprising longevity to the fact that it is equally proper for both sexes. Within half an hour the treat was in full career; football, cricket, rounders, tick, leap-frog, prison-bars, and round-games, transformed the field into a vast arena of complicated struggles and emulations. All were occupied, except a few of the women and older girls, who strolled languidly about in the rôle of spectators. The sun shone generously on scores of vivid and frail toilettes, and parasols made slowly-moving hemispheres of glowing colour against the rich green of the grass. All around were yellow cornfields, and meadows where cows of a burnished brown indolently meditated upon the phenomena of a school-treat. Every hedge and ditch and gate and stile was in that ideal condition of plenary correctness which denotes that a great landowner is exhibiting the beauties of scientific farming for the behoof of his villagers. The sky, of an intense blue, was a sea in which large white clouds sailed gently but capriciously; on the northern horizon a low range of smoke marked the sinister region of the Five Towns.

Then the more dedicated teachers focused seriously on entertaining the younger children, and the little ones agreed to be entertained according to the traditional activities set for school treats. Many classic games, which always involved singing or kissing, were revived each year by older folks from the depths of their memories, to be preserved for a future generation that otherwise wouldn’t have experienced them. One of these was Bobby-Bingo. For twenty-five years, Titus Price had played Bobby-Bingo with the younger classes at the school treat, and this year he felt obligated to uphold that tradition for everyone. Another activity he always organized was the three-legged race for boys. He also typically participated in the tut-ball, a charming game that has lasted due to its suitability for both genders. Within half an hour, the treat was in full swing; football, cricket, rounders, tag, leapfrog, prison bars, and group games transformed the field into a vast arena of lively competition. Everyone was busy, except for a few of the women and older girls, who strolled leisurely as spectators. The sun shone brightly on numerous colorful and delicate outfits, and parasols created slowly moving hemispheres of vibrant color against the lush green grass. All around were golden cornfields and meadows where cows of a shiny brown lazily contemplated the spectacle of the school treat. Every hedge, ditch, gate, and stile was in perfect condition, indicating that a wealthy landowner was showcasing the benefits of modern farming to his villagers. The sky, a deep blue, resembled a sea in which large white clouds drifted gently yet whimsically; on the northern horizon, a low line of smoke marked the ominous region of the Five Towns.

'Will you come and help with the bags and cups?' Henry Mynors asked Anna. She was standing by herself, watching Agnes at play with some other girls. Mynors had evidently walked across to her from the refreshment tent, which was at the opposite extremity of the field. In her eyes he was once more the exemplar of style. His suit of grey flannel, his white straw hat, became him to admiration. He stood at ease with his hands in his coat-pockets, and smiled contentedly.

'Will you come and help with the bags and cups?' Henry Mynors asked Anna. She was standing alone, watching Agnes play with some other girls. Mynors had clearly walked over to her from the refreshment tent, which was on the other side of the field. In her eyes, he was once again the perfect example of style. His grey flannel suit and white straw hat looked great on him. He stood relaxed with his hands in his coat pockets and smiled happily.

'After all,' he said, 'the tea is the principal thing, and, although it wants two hours to tea-time yet, it's as well to be beforehand.'

'After all,' he said, 'the tea is the main thing, and even though there are still two hours until tea time, it's better to be prepared early.'

'I should like something to do,' Anna replied.

'I would like something to do,' Anna replied.

'How are you?' he said familiarly, after this abrupt opening, and then shook hands. They traversed the field together, with many deviations to avoid trespassing upon areas of play.

'How's it going?' he said casually after that sudden start, and then they shook hands. They walked across the field together, making several detours to steer clear of the play areas.

The flapping refreshment tent seemed to be full of piles of baskets and piles of bags and piles of cups, which the contractor had brought in a waggon. Some teachers were already beginning to put the paper bags into the baskets; each bag contained bread-and-butter, currant cake, an Eccles-cake, and a Bath-bun. At the far end of the tent Beatrice Sutton was arranging her dainties on a small trestle-table.

The flapping refreshment tent was packed with heaps of baskets, bags, and cups that the contractor had brought in a wagon. Some teachers were already starting to put the paper bags into the baskets; each bag included bread and butter, currant cake, an Eccles cake, and a Bath bun. At the far end of the tent, Beatrice Sutton was setting up her treats on a small folding table.

'Come along quick, Anna,' she exclaimed, 'and taste my tarts, and tell me what you think of them. I do hope the good people will enjoy them.' And then, turning to Mynors, 'Hello! Are you seeing after the bags and things? I thought that was always Willie Price's favourite job!'

'Come on quickly, Anna,' she said, 'and try my tarts, and let me know what you think of them. I really hope everyone enjoys them.' Then, turning to Mynors, she added, 'Hey! Are you taking care of the bags and stuff? I thought that was always Willie Price's favorite job!'

'So it is,' said Mynors. 'But, unfortunately, he isn't here to-day.'

'That's right,' Mynors said. 'But unfortunately, he isn't here today.'

'How's that, pray? I never knew him miss a school-treat before.'

'What do you mean by that? I’ve never seen him miss a school outing before.'

'Mr. Price told me they couldn't both be away from the works just now. Very busy, I suppose.'

'Mr. Price told me they couldn't both be away from work right now. Very busy, I guess.'

'Well, William would have been more use than his father, anyhow.'

'Well, William would have been more helpful than his dad, anyway.'

'Hush, hush!' Mynors murmured with a subdued laugh.

'Hush, hush!' Mynors whispered with a quiet laugh.

Beatrice was in one of her 'downright' moods, as she herself called them.

Beatrice was in one of her "downright" moods, as she called them.

Mynors's arrangements for the prompt distribution of tea at the appointed hour were very minute, and involved a considerable amount of back bending and manual labour. But, though they were enlivened by frequent intervals of gossip, and by excursions into the field to observe this and that amusing sight, all was finished half an hour before time.

Mynors's plans for quickly serving tea at the scheduled time were very detailed and required a lot of bending over and hard work. However, even though they were livened up by lots of gossip and trips into the field to check out various amusing sights, everything was done half an hour early.

'I will go and warn Mr. Price,' said Mynors. 'He is quite capable of forgetting the clock.' Mynors left the tent, and proceeded to the scene of an athletic meeting, at which Titus Price, in shirt-sleeves, was distributing prizes of sixpences and pennies. The famous three-legged race had just been run. Anna followed at a saunter, and shortly afterwards Beatrice overtook her.

'I’ll go warn Mr. Price,' said Mynors. 'He might completely forget about the clock.' Mynors left the tent and walked over to the athletic meeting where Titus Price, in his shirt sleeves, was handing out prizes of sixpences and pennies. The famous three-legged race had just taken place. Anna followed at a leisurely pace, and shortly after, Beatrice caught up with her.

'The great Titus looks better than he did when he came on the field,' Beatrice remarked. And indeed the superintendent had put on quite a merry appearance—flushed, excited, and jocular in his elephantine way—it seemed as if he had not a care in the world. The boys crowded appreciatively round him. But this was his last hour of joy.

'The great Titus looks better than he did when he stepped onto the field,' Beatrice noted. And indeed, the superintendent had a cheerful presence—flushed, excited, and joking in his large way—he seemed like he had no worries at all. The boys gathered around him, clearly impressed. But this was his final hour of happiness.

'Why! Willie Price is here,' Anna exclaimed, perceiving William in the fringe of the crowd. The lanky fellow stood hesitatingly, his left hand busy with his moustache.

'Wow! Willie Price is here,' Anna exclaimed, spotting William at the edge of the crowd. The tall guy stood there uncertainly, his left hand fiddling with his mustache.

'So he is,' said Beatrice. 'I wonder what that means.'

'So he is,' Beatrice said. 'I wonder what that means.'

Titus had not observed the newcomer, but Henry Mynors saw William, and exchanged a few words with him. Then Mr. Mynors advanced into the crowd and spoke to Mr. Price, who glanced quickly round at his son. The girls, at a distance of forty yards, could discern the swift change in the man's demeanour. In a second he had reverted to the deplorable Titus of three hours ago. He elbowed his way roughly to William, getting into his coat as he went. The pair talked, William glanced at his watch, and in another moment they were leaving the field. Henry Mynors had to finish the prize distribution. So much Anna and Beatrice plainly saw. Others, too, had not been blind to this sudden and dramatic departure. It aroused universal comment among the teachers.

Titus hadn’t noticed the new person, but Henry Mynors saw William and exchanged a few words with him. Then Mr. Mynors moved into the crowd and spoke to Mr. Price, who quickly glanced around at his son. The girls, about forty yards away, could see the sudden change in the man’s behavior. In an instant, he had returned to the miserable Titus from three hours ago. He pushed his way roughly to William, putting on his coat as he went. The two talked, William checked his watch, and in a moment, they were leaving the field. Henry Mynors still had to finish the prize distribution. Anna and Beatrice noticed all of this clearly. Others also had not missed this sudden and dramatic exit. It sparked widespread discussion among the teachers.

'Something must be wrong at Price's works,' Beatrice said, 'and Willie has had to fetch his papa.' This was the conclusion of all the gossips. Beatrice added: 'Dad has mentioned Price's several times lately, now I think of it.'

'Something's definitely not right at Price's factory,' Beatrice said, 'and Willie must have gone to get his dad.' This was the assumption everyone was making. Beatrice added, 'Dad has brought up Price's a few times recently, now that I think about it.'

Anna grew extremely self-conscious and uncomfortable. She felt as though all were saying of her: 'There goes the oppressor of the poor!' She was fairly sure, however, that her father was not responsible for this particular incident. There must, then, be other implacable creditors. She had been thoroughly enjoying the afternoon, but now her pleasure ceased.

Anna became very self-conscious and uneasy. She felt like everyone was saying about her, "There goes the oppressor of the poor!" However, she was pretty sure her father wasn't to blame for this specific incident. There must be other relentless creditors. She had been really enjoying the afternoon, but now her enjoyment stopped.

The treat ended disastrously. In the middle of the children's meal, while yet the enormous double-handled tea-cans were being carried up and down the thirsty rows, and the boys were causing their bags to explode with appalling detonations, it began to rain sharply. The fickle sun withdrew his splendour from the toilettes, and was seen no more for a week afterwards. 'It's come at last,' ejaculated Mynors, who had watched the sky with anxiety for an hour previously. He mobilised the children and ranked them under a row of elms. The teachers, running to the tent for their own tea, said to one another that the shower could only be a brief one. The wish was father to the thought, for they were a little ashamed to be under cover while their charges precariously sheltered beneath dripping trees—yet there was nothing else to be done; the men took turns in the rain to keep the children in their places. The sky was completely overcast. 'It's set in for a wet evening, and so we may as well make the best of it,' Beatrice said grimly, and she sent the landau home empty. She was right. A forlorn and disgusted snake of a procession crawled through puddles to the station. The platform resounded with sneezes. None but a dressmaker could have discovered a silver lining to the black and all-pervading cloud which had ruined so many dozens of fair costumes. Anna, melancholy and taciturn, exerted herself to minimise the discomfort of her scholars. A word from Mynors would have been balm to her; but Mynors, the general of a routed army, was parleying by telephone with the traffic-manager of the railway for the expediting of the special train.

The event ended in disaster. In the middle of the kids' meal, while the huge double-handled tea cans were being passed around the eager groups, and the boys were making their bags burst with loud pops, it started to rain heavily. The fickle sun withdrew its shine from the outfits, and we didn’t see it again for a week. "It's finally happened," Mynors said, anxiously watching the sky for the past hour. He organized the children and lined them up under a row of elm trees. The teachers, rushing to the tent for their own tea, commented to each other that the rain would probably be brief. They hoped for it, feeling a bit embarrassed to be under cover while their students huddled under the dripping trees—yet there was nothing else to be done; the men took turns in the rain to keep the children in line. The sky was completely gray. "Looks like we’re in for a wet evening, so we might as well make the best of it," Beatrice said grimly, sending the carriage home empty. She was right. A sad and frustrated line of people trudged through puddles to the station. The platform echoed with sneezes. Only a dressmaker could have found a silver lining in the dark, all-encompassing cloud that ruined so many lovely outfits. Anna, feeling gloomy and quiet, tried to ease her students' discomfort. A word from Mynors would have been comforting to her; but Mynors, like a general of a defeated army, was on the phone with the train traffic manager, trying to hurry the special train.


[1] Welly: nearly.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__] Welly: almost.

[2] Meet: meet in class—a gathering for the exchange of religious counsel and experience.

[2] Meet: meet in class—a gathering to share religious advice and experiences.




CHAPTER X

THE ISLE

About this time Anna was not seeing very much of Henry Mynors. At twenty a man is rash in love, and again, perhaps, at fifty; a man of middle-age enamoured of a young girl is capable of sublime follies. But the man of thirty who loves for the first time is usually the embodiment of cautious discretion. He does not fall in love with a violent descent, but rather lets himself gently down, continually testing the rope. His social value, especially if he have achieved worldly success, is at its highest, and, without conceit, he is aware of it. He has lost many illusions concerning women; he has seen more than one friend wrecked in the sea of foolish marriage; he knows the joys of a bachelor's freedom, without having wearied of them; he perceives risks where the youth perceives only ecstasy, and the oldster only a blissful release from solitude. Instead of searching, he is sought for; accordingly he is selfish and exacting. All these things, combine to tranquillize passion at thirty. Mynors was in love with Anna, and his love had its ardent moments; but in the main it was a temperate affection, an affection that walked circumspectly, with its eyes open, careful of its dignity, too proud to seem in a hurry; if, by impulse, it chanced now and then to leap forward, the involuntary movement was mastered and checked. Mynors called at Manor Terrace once a week, never on the same day of the week, nor without discussing business with the miser. Occasionally he accompanied Anna from school or chapel. Such methods were precisely to Anna's taste. Like him, she loved prudence and decorum, preferring to make haste slowly. Since the Revival, they had only once talked together intimately; on that sole occasion Henry had suggested to her that she might care to join Mrs. Sutton's class, which met on Monday nights; she accepted the hint with pleasure, and found a well of spiritual inspiration in Mrs. Sutton's modest and simple yet fervent homilies. Mynors was not guilty of blowing both hot and cold. She was sure of him. She waited calmly for events, existing, as her habit was, in the future.

Around this time, Anna wasn't seeing much of Henry Mynors. At twenty, a man can be reckless in love, and maybe again at fifty; a middle-aged man in love with a young woman can act in truly foolish ways. But a thirty-year-old man experiencing love for the first time tends to be more cautious. He doesn’t dive headfirst into love; instead, he eases into it, testing the waters along the way. His social standing, especially if he has achieved some success, is at its peak, and he knows it without being arrogant. He has lost many illusions about women; he's seen friends fail in misguided marriages; he enjoys the freedom of being single without growing tired of it; he recognizes the dangers while the young see only bliss, and the older see merely a sweet escape from loneliness. Instead of searching for love, he is pursued, which makes him a bit selfish and demanding. All of this combines to cool down passion at thirty. Mynors loved Anna, and there were moments of intense feeling, but mostly it was a calm affection, one that proceeded carefully, aware of its dignity and too proud to rush. If it occasionally surged forward impulsively, he quickly reined it in. Mynors visited Manor Terrace once a week, never on the same day and always discussing business with the miser. Sometimes he would walk Anna home from school or chapel. This approach suited Anna perfectly; like him, she valued caution and propriety, preferring to take her time. Since the Revival, they had only had one intimate conversation; during that talk, Henry suggested she might like to join Mrs. Sutton's class, which met on Monday nights. She accepted the idea happily and found a deep source of spiritual inspiration in Mrs. Sutton's humble yet passionate teachings. Mynors was consistent in his affections. She felt secure with him. She waited patiently for things to unfold, living, as she often did, in the future.

The future, then, meant the Isle of Man. Anna dreamed of an enchanted isle and hours of unimaginable rapture. For a whole week after Mrs. Sutton had won Ephraim's consent, her vision never stooped to practical details. Then Beatrice called to see her; it was the morning after the treat, and Anna was brushing her muddy frock; she wore a large white apron, and held a cloth-brush in her hand as she opened the door.

The future, then, meant the Isle of Man. Anna dreamed of a magical island and hours of incredible joy. For an entire week after Mrs. Sutton got Ephraim's approval, her vision never bothered with practical details. Then Beatrice came to visit her; it was the morning after the event, and Anna was brushing her muddy dress; she wore a large white apron and held a cloth brush in her hand as she opened the door.

'You're busy?' said Beatrice.

"Are you busy?" Beatrice asked.

'Yes,' said Anna, 'but come in. Come into the kitchen—do you mind?'

'Yes,' Anna said, 'but come in. Come into the kitchen—are you okay with that?'

Beatrice was covered from neck to heel with a long mackintosh, which she threw off when entering the kitchen.

Beatrice was dressed from neck to heel in a long raincoat, which she took off when she walked into the kitchen.

'Anyone else in the house?' she asked.

'Is anyone else home?' she asked.

'No,' said Anna, smiling, as Beatrice seated herself, with a sigh of content, on the table.

'No,' Anna said with a smile as Beatrice settled herself comfortably on the table with a sigh of contentment.

'Well, let's talk, then.' Beatrice drew from her pocket the indispensable chocolates and offered them to Anna. 'I say, wasn't last night perfectly awful? Henry got wet through in the end, and mother made him stop at our house, as he was at the trouble to take me home. Did you see him go down this morning?'

'Well, let’s talk, then.' Beatrice pulled out the essential chocolates from her pocket and offered them to Anna. 'I mean, wasn’t last night completely terrible? Henry ended up soaking wet, and Mom made him stay at our house since he was kind enough to take me home. Did you see him leave this morning?'

'No; why?' said Anna, stiffly.

"No; why?" Anna replied, stiffly.

'Oh—no reason. Only I thought perhaps you did. I simply can't tell you how glad I am that you're coming with us to the Isle of Man; we shall have rare fun. We go every year, you know—to Port Erin, a lovely little fishing village. All the fishermen know us there. Last year Henry hired a yacht for the fortnight, and we all went mackerel-fishing, every day; except sometimes Pa. Now and then Pa had a tendency to go fiddling in caves and things. I do hope it will be fine weather again by then, don't you?'

'Oh—no reason. I just thought maybe you did. I can’t tell you how happy I am that you’re coming with us to the Isle of Man; we’re going to have so much fun. We go every year, you know—to Port Erin, a charming little fishing village. All the fishermen know us there. Last year, Henry rented a yacht for two weeks, and we went mackerel fishing every day, except sometimes Dad. Every now and then, Dad liked to go exploring in caves and stuff. I really hope the weather is nice again by then, don’t you?'

'I'm looking forward to it, I can tell you,' Anna said. 'What day are we supposed to start?'

'I'm really looking forward to it, I can tell you,' Anna said. 'What day are we supposed to start?'

'Saturday week.'

'Next Saturday.'

'So soon?' Anna was surprised at the proximity of the event.

'So soon?' Anna was surprised by how close the event was.

'Yes; and quite late enough, too. We should start earlier, only the Dad always makes out he can't. Men always pretend to be so frightfully busy, and I believe it's all put on.' Beatrice continued to chat about the holiday, and then of a sudden she asked: 'What are you going to wear?'

'Yeah; and it’s definitely late enough already. We should leave earlier, but Dad always acts like he can’t. Guys always pretend to be super busy, and I think it’s all an act.' Beatrice kept talking about the holiday, and then suddenly she asked, 'What are you going to wear?'

'Wear!' Anna repeated; and added, with hesitation: 'I suppose one will want some new clothes?'

'Wear!' Anna repeated and added, hesitantly, 'I guess someone will want some new clothes?'

'Well, just a few! Now let me advise you. Take a blue serge skirt. Sea-water won't harm it, and if it's dark enough it will look well to any mortal blouse. Secondly, you can't have too many blouses; they're always useful at the seaside. Plain straw-hats are my tip. A coat for nights, and thick boots. There! Of course no one ever dresses at Port Erin. It isn't like Llandudno, and all that sort of thing. You don't have to meet your young man on the pier, because there isn't a pier.'

'Well, just a few! Now let me give you some advice. Get a blue serge skirt. Sea water won’t damage it, and if it’s dark enough, it will match any blouse. Secondly, you can never have too many blouses; they’re always handy at the beach. Plain straw hats are my recommendation. Bring a coat for the evenings, and thick boots. There! Of course, no one ever dresses up at Port Erin. It’s not like Llandudno and those places. You don’t have to meet your guy on the pier because there isn’t a pier.'

There was a pause. Anna did not know what to say. At length she ventured: 'I'm not much for clothes, as I dare say you've noticed.'

There was a pause. Anna didn’t know what to say. Finally, she said, "I’m not really into clothes, as I’m sure you’ve noticed."

'I think you always look nice, my dear,' Beatrice responded. Nothing was said as to Anna's wealth, no reference made as to the discrepancy between that and the style of her garments. By a fiction, there was supposed to be no discrepancy.

'I think you always look great, my dear,' Beatrice replied. Nothing was mentioned about Anna's wealth, and there were no references to the gap between that and the style of her clothes. By an unspoken agreement, there was thought to be no gap.

'Do you make your own frocks?' Beatrice asked, later.

'Do you make your own dresses?' Beatrice asked later.

'Yes.'

Yes.

'Do you know I thought you did. But they do you great credit. There's few people can make a plain frock look decent.'

'Do you know, I thought you did. But they really suit you. There are few people who can make a simple dress look good.'

This conversation brought Anna with a shock to the level of earth. She perceived—only too well—a point which she had not hitherto fairly faced in her idyllic meditations: that her father was still a factor in the case. Since Mrs. Sutton's visit both Anna and the miser avoided the subject of the holiday. 'You can't have too many blouses.' Did Beatrice, then, have blouses by the dozen? A coat, a serge skirt, straw hats (how many?)—the catalogue frightened her. She began to suspect that she would not be able to go to the Isle of Man.

This conversation shocked Anna back to reality. She realized—much too clearly—a point she hadn't fully acknowledged during her daydreams: her father was still a factor in the situation. Since Mrs. Sutton’s visit, both Anna and the miser had been avoiding the topic of the holiday. "You can never have too many blouses." Did Beatrice really have dozens of blouses? A coat, a serge skirt, straw hats (how many?)—the list overwhelmed her. She started to fear that she wouldn’t be able to go to the Isle of Man.

'About me going with Suttons to the Isle of Man?' she accosted her father, in the afternoon, outwardly calm, but with secret trembling.

'About me going with Suttons to the Isle of Man?' she confronted her father in the afternoon, seeming calm on the outside but feeling a secret anxiety.

'Well?' he exclaimed savagely.

"Well?" he said fiercely.

'I shall want some money—a little.' She would have given much not to have added that 'little,' but it came out of itself.

'I need some money—a little.' She would have given a lot not to have added that 'little,' but it slipped out.

'It's a waste o' time and money—that's what I call it. I can't think why Suttons asked ye. Ye aren't ill, are ye?' His savagery changed to sullenness.

"It's a waste of time and money—that's what I think. I don't see why Suttons asked you. You're not sick, are you?" His anger shifted to sadness.

'No, father; but as it's arranged, I suppose I shall have to go.'

'No, Dad; but since it's all set up, I guess I have to go.'

'Well, I'm none so set up with the idea mysen.'

'Well, I'm not really sold on the idea myself.'

'Shan't you be all right with Agnes?'

'Won't you be okay with Agnes?'

'Oh, yes. I shall be all right. I don't want much. I've no fads and fal-lals. How long art going to be away?'

'Oh, yes. I will be fine. I don't want much. I don't have any fads or frills. How long are you going to be gone?'

'I don't know. Didn't Mrs. Sutton tell you? You arranged it.'

'I don't know. Didn't Mrs. Sutton tell you? You set it up.'

'That I didna'. Her said nowt to me.'

'That I didn't.' She said nothing to me.'

'Well, anyhow I shall want some clothes.'

'Well, anyway, I’ll need some clothes.'

'What for? Art naked?'

'What for? Art without clothes?'

'I must have some money.' Her voice shook. She was getting near tears.

'I need some money.' Her voice trembled. She was on the verge of tears.

'Well, thou's gotten thy own money, hast na'?'

'Well, you've got your own money, right?'

'All I want is that you shall let me have some of my own money. There's forty odd pounds now in the bank.'

'All I want is for you to let me have some of my own money. There's around forty pounds in the bank now.'

'Oh!' he repeated, sneering, 'all ye want is as I shall let thee have some o' thy own money. And there's forty odd pound i' the bank. Oh!'

'Oh!' he repeated, sneering, 'all you want is for me to give you some of your own money. And there’s over forty pounds in the bank. Oh!'

'Will you give me my cheque-book out of the bureau? And I'll draw a cheque; I know how to.' She had conquered the instinct to cry, and unwillingly her tones became somewhat peremptory. Ephraim seized the chance.

'Can you get my checkbook from the desk? I know how to write a check.' She had suppressed the urge to cry, and reluctantly her voice became a bit demanding. Ephraim took advantage of the moment.

'No, I won't give ye the cheque-book out o' th' bureau,' he said flatly. 'And I'll thank ye for less sauce.'

'No, I won't give you the checkbook from the drawer,' he said flatly. 'And I'll appreciate it if you could tone down the attitude.'

That finished the episode. Proudly she took an oath with herself not to re-open the question, and resolved to write a note to Mrs. Sutton saying that on consideration she found it impossible to go to the Isle of Man.

That wrapped up the episode. Proudly, she made a promise to herself not to revisit the issue and decided to write a note to Mrs. Sutton saying that after thinking it over, she found it impossible to go to the Isle of Man.

The next morning there came to Anna a letter from the secretary of a limited company enclosing a post-office order for ten pounds. Some weeks previously her father had discovered an error of that amount in the deduction of income-tax from the dividend paid by this company, and had instructed Anna to demand the sum. She had obeyed, and then forgotten the affair. Here was the answer. Desperate at the thought of missing the holiday, she cashed the order, bought and made her clothes in secret, and then, two days before the arranged date of departure told her father what she had done. He was enraged; but since his anger was too illogical to be rendered effectively coherent in words, he had the wit to keep silence. With bitterness Anna reflected that she owed her holiday to the merest accident—for if the remittance had arrived a little earlier or a little later, or in the form of a cheque, she could not have utilised it.

The next morning, Anna received a letter from the secretary of a limited company, along with a post-office order for ten pounds. A few weeks earlier, her father had noticed a mistake of that amount in the income-tax deduction from the dividend paid by this company and had told Anna to ask for the money. She had done that and then forgotten about it. This was the response. Worried about missing the holiday, she cashed the order, secretly bought and made her clothes, and then, two days before the planned departure, told her father what she had done. He was furious; however, since his anger was too irrational to express clearly, he wisely chose to stay silent. With a sense of bitterness, Anna realized that her holiday was just a matter of chance—if the payment had arrived a little earlier or later, or in the form of a cheque, she wouldn't have been able to use it.


It was an incredible day, the following Saturday, a warm and benign day of earliest autumn. The Suttons, in a hired cab, called for Anna at half-past eight, on the way to the main line station at Shawport. Anna's tin box was flung on to the roof of the cab amid the trunks and portmanteaux already there.

It was an amazing day the following Saturday, a warm and pleasant early autumn day. The Suttons, in a rented cab, picked up Anna at eight-thirty, on their way to the main line station at Shawport. Anna's tin box was tossed onto the cab's roof among the trunks and suitcases already there.

'Why should not Agnes ride with us to the station?' Beatrice suggested.

'Why shouldn't Agnes ride with us to the station?' Beatrice suggested.

'Nay, nay; there's no room,' said Tellwright, who stood at the door, impelled by an unacknowledged awe of Mrs. Sutton thus to give official sanction to Anna's departure.

'Nay, nay; there's no room,' said Tellwright, standing at the door, driven by an unspoken respect for Mrs. Sutton as she gave her official approval for Anna's departure.

'Yes, yes,' Mrs. Sutton exclaimed. 'Let the little thing come, Mr. Tellwright.'

'Yes, yes,' Mrs. Sutton exclaimed. 'Let the little thing come, Mr. Tellwright.'

Agnes, far more excited than any of the rest, seized her straw hat, and slipping the elastic under her small chin, sprang into the cab, and found a haven between Mr. Sutton's short, fat legs. The driver drew his whip smartly across the aged neck of the cream mare. They were off. What a rumbling, jolting, delicious journey, down the first hill, up Duck Bank, through the market-place, and down the steep declivity of Oldcastle Street! Silent and shy, Agnes smiled ecstatically at the others. Anna answered remarks in a dream. She was conscious only of present happiness and happy expectation. All bitterness had disappeared. At least thirty thousand Bursley folk were not going to the Isle of Man that day—their preoccupied and cheerless faces swam in a continuous stream past the cab window—and Anna sympathised with every unit of them. Her spirit overflowed with universal compassion. What haste and exquisite confusion at the station! The train was signalled, and the porter, crossing the line with the luggage, ran his truck perilously under the very buffers of the incoming engine. Mynors was awaiting them, admirably attired as a tourist. He had got the tickets, and secured a private compartment in the through-coach for Liverpool; and he found time to arrange with the cabman to drive Agnes home on the box-seat. Certainly there was none like Mynors. From the footboard of the carriage Anna bent down to kiss Agnes. The child had been laughing and chattering. Suddenly, as Anna's lips touched hers, she burst into tears, sobbed passionately as though overtaken by some terrible and unexpected misfortune. Tears stood also in Anna's eyes. The sisters had never been parted before.

Agnes, way more excited than anyone else, grabbed her straw hat, slipped the elastic under her little chin, and jumped into the cab, settling in between Mr. Sutton's short, fat legs. The driver cracked his whip sharply against the old neck of the cream mare. They were off. What a rumbling, jolting, amazing ride it was, going down the first hill, up Duck Bank, through the marketplace, and down the steep slope of Oldcastle Street! Silent and shy, Agnes smiled ecstatically at the others. Anna responded to comments like she was in a daze. She was only aware of the happiness of the moment and the joy to come. All bitterness had vanished. At least thirty thousand people from Bursley weren't heading to the Isle of Man that day—their distracted and gloomy faces flashed by in a continuous stream outside the cab window—and Anna felt for each one of them. Her spirit overflowed with compassion for everyone. What chaos and delightful confusion there was at the station! The train was announced, and the porter, crossing the tracks with the luggage, dangerously pushed his cart right under the incoming engine's buffers. Mynors was waiting for them, looking sharp as a tourist. He had the tickets and reserved a private compartment on the direct train to Liverpool; he even managed to arrange for the cab driver to take Agnes home on the driver's seat. There was no one quite like Mynors. From the footboard of the carriage, Anna leaned down to kiss Agnes. The child had been laughing and chatting away. Suddenly, as Anna’s lips touched hers, she broke down in tears, sobbing passionately as if something terrible and unexpected had happened. Tears filled Anna's eyes too. The sisters had never been apart before.

'Poor little thing!' Mrs. Sutton murmured; and Beatrice told her father to give Agnes a shilling to buy chocolates at Stevenson's in St. Luke's Square, that being the best shop. The shilling fell between the footboard and the platform. A scream from Beatrice! The attendant porter promised to rescue the shilling in due course. The engine whistled, the silver-mounted guard asserted his authority, Mynors leaped in, and amid laughter and tears the brief and unique joy of Anna's life began.

'Poor little thing!' Mrs. Sutton said softly; and Beatrice asked her dad to give Agnes a shilling to buy chocolates at Stevenson’s in St. Luke's Square, which was the best shop. The shilling dropped between the footboard and the platform. A scream from Beatrice! The porter promised to get the shilling back eventually. The engine whistled, the silver-mounted guard asserted his authority, Mynors jumped in, and amid laughter and tears, the brief and unique joy of Anna's life began.

In a moment, so it seemed, the train was thundering through the mile of solid rock which ends at Lime Street Station, Liverpool. Thenceforward, till she fell asleep that night, Anna existed in a state of blissful bewilderment, stupefied by an overdose of novel and wondrous sensations. They lunched in amazing magnificence at the Bear's Paw, and then walked through the crowded and prodigious streets to Prince's landing-stage. The luggage had disappeared by some mysterious agency—Mynors said that they would find it safe at Douglas; but Anna could not banish the fear that her tin box had gone for ever.

In an instant, it seemed, the train was roaring through the mile of solid rock that leads to Lime Street Station in Liverpool. From that moment until she fell asleep that night, Anna found herself in a state of blissful confusion, overwhelmed by an excess of new and amazing experiences. They enjoyed an incredible lunch at the Bear's Paw and then strolled through the busy and impressive streets to Prince's landing-stage. Their luggage had vanished through some mysterious means—Mynors assured her they would find it safe at Douglas; but Anna couldn't shake the worry that her tin box was lost forever.

The great, wavy river, churned by thousands of keels; the monstrous steamer—the 'Mona's Isle'—whose side rose like solid wall out of the water; the vistas of its decks; its vast saloons, story under story, solid and palatial (could all this float?); its high bridge; its hawsers as thick as trees; its funnels like sloping towers; the multitudes of passengers; the whistles, hoots, cries; the far-stretching panorama of wharves and docks; the squat ferry-craft carrying horses and carts, and no one looking twice at the feat—it was all too much, too astonishing, too lovely. She had not guessed at this.

The wide, flowing river, stirred by countless boats; the massive steamboat—the 'Mona's Isle'—whose side jutted up like a solid wall from the water; the views from its decks; its grand lounges, story after story, sturdy and luxurious (could all this really float?); its tall bridge; its ropes as thick as trees; its smokestacks like sloping towers; the crowd of passengers; the whistles, honks, shouts; the expansive scene of docks and piers; the short ferryboats carrying horses and carts, with nobody taking a second look at it all—it was too much, too incredible, too beautiful. She never expected any of this.

'They call Liverpool the slum of Europe,' said Mynors.

'They call Liverpool the slum of Europe,' Mynors said.

'How can you!' she exclaimed, shocked.

"How can you!" she exclaimed, shocked.

Beatrice, seeing her radiant and rapt face, walked to and fro with Anna, proud of the effect produced on her friend's inexperience by these sights. One might have thought that Beatrice had built Liverpool and created its trade by her own efforts.

Beatrice, noticing her glowing and mesmerized expression, paced back and forth with Anna, feeling proud of the impression these sights had made on her friend’s naivety. One could easily assume that Beatrice had personally built Liverpool and established its trade through her own hard work.

Suddenly the landing-stage and all the people on it moved away bodily from the ship; there was green water between; a tremor like that of an earthquake ran along the deck; handkerchiefs were waved. The voyage had commenced. Mynors found chairs for all the Suttons, and tucked them up on the lee-side of a deck-house; but Anna did not stir. They passed New Brighton, Seaforth, and the Crosby and Formby lightships.

Suddenly, the boarding platform and everyone on it physically pulled away from the ship; there was green water in between them; a shudder like an earthquake ran along the deck; handkerchiefs were waved. The journey had begun. Mynors found chairs for all the Suttons and set them up on the sheltered side of a deckhouse; but Anna didn’t move. They passed New Brighton, Seaforth, and the Crosby and Formby lighthouses.

'Come and view the ship,' said Mynors, at her side. 'Suppose we go round and inspect things a bit?'

'Come and see the ship,' Mynors said beside her. 'How about we walk around and check things out a bit?'

'It's a very big one, isn't it?' she asked.

'It's really huge, isn't it?' she asked.

'Pretty big,' he said; 'of course not as big as the Atlantic liners—I wonder we didn't meet one in the river—but still pretty big. Three hundred and twenty feet over all. I sailed on her last year on her maiden voyage. She was packed, and the weather very bad.'

'Pretty big,' he said; 'of course not as big as the Atlantic liners—I wonder why we didn't see one in the river—but still pretty big. Three hundred and twenty feet long overall. I sailed on her last year on her maiden voyage. She was full, and the weather was really bad.'

'Will it be rough to-day?' Anna inquired timidly.

'Will it be rough today?' Anna asked nervously.

'Not if it keeps like this,' he laughed. 'You don't feel queer, do you?'

'Not if it stays like this,' he laughed. 'You don't feel weird, do you?'

'Oh, no. It's as firm as a house. No one could be ill with this?'

'Oh, no. It's as solid as a rock. No one could be sick with this?'

'Couldn't they?' he exclaimed. 'Beatrice could be.'

'Couldn't they?' he exclaimed. 'Beatrice could be.'

They descended into the ship, and he explained all its internal economy, with a knowledge that seemed to her encyclopædic. They stayed a long time watching the engines, so Titanic, ruthless, and deliberate; even the smell of the oil was pleasant to Anna. When they came on deck again the ship was at sea. For the first time Anna beheld the ocean. A strong breeze blew from prow to stern, yet the sea was absolutely calm, the unruffled mirror of effulgent sunlight. The steamer moved alone on the waters, exultantly, leaving behind it an endless track of white froth in the green, and the shadow of its smoke. The sun, the salt breeze, the living water, the proud gaiety of the ship, produced a feeling of intense, inexplicable joy, a profound satisfaction with the present, and a negligence of past and future. To exist was enough, then. As Anna and Henry leaned over the starboard quarter and watched the torrent of foam rush madly and ceaselessly from under the paddle-box to be swallowed up in the white wake, the spectacle of the wild torrent almost hypnotised them, destroying thought and reason, and all sense of their relation to other things. With difficulty Anna raised her eyes, and perceived the dim receding line of the Lancashire coast.

They went down into the ship, and he explained all its inner workings with a knowledge that seemed encyclopedic to her. They spent a long time watching the engines, which were so Titanic, ruthless, and deliberate; even the smell of the oil was pleasant to Anna. When they came back on deck, the ship was at sea. For the first time, Anna saw the ocean. A strong breeze blew from front to back, yet the sea was completely calm, like a smooth, shining mirror reflecting the bright sunlight. The ship moved alone on the water, joyfully leaving behind an endless trail of white foam in the green sea, along with the shadow of its smoke. The sun, the salty breeze, the lively water, and the proud cheeriness of the ship created a feeling of intense, inexplicable joy, a deep satisfaction with the present, and a disregard for the past and future. Just existing felt enough in that moment. As Anna and Henry leaned over the starboard side and watched the torrent of foam rush wildly and endlessly from under the paddle-box, only to disappear into the white wake, the sight of the wild stream almost hypnotized them, erasing thought and reason, along with any sense of their connection to other things. With some effort, Anna lifted her gaze and noticed the faint, receding outline of the Lancashire coast.

'Shall we get quite out of sight of land?' she asked.

"Should we get completely out of sight of land?" she asked.

'Yes, for a little while, about half an hour or so. Just as much out of sight of land as if we were in the middle of the Atlantic.'

'Yeah, for a little while, maybe about half an hour or so. Just as far from land as if we were in the middle of the Atlantic.'

'I can scarcely believe it.'

"I can hardly believe it."

'Believe what?'

'What should I believe?'

'Oh! The idea of that—of being out of sight of land—nothing but sea.'

'Oh! The thought of that—being out of sight of land—just endless sea.'

When at last it occurred to them to reconnoitre the Suttons, they found all three still in their deck-chairs, enwrapped and languid. Mr. Sutton and Beatrice were apparently dozing. This part of the deck was occupied by somnolent, basking figures.

When they finally decided to check on the Suttons, they found all three still in their deck chairs, wrapped up and relaxed. Mr. Sutton and Beatrice seemed to be dozing. This section of the deck was filled with sleepy, sunbathing people.

'Don't wake them,' Mrs. Sutton enjoined, whispering out of her hood. Anna glanced curiously at Beatrice's yellow face.

'Don't wake them,' Mrs. Sutton insisted, whispering from her hood. Anna looked curiously at Beatrice's pale face.

'Go away, do,' Beatrice exclaimed, opening her eyes and shutting them again, wearily.

"Go away, please," Beatrice said, opening her eyes and then closing them again, tiredly.

So they went away, and discovered two empty deck-chairs on the fore-deck. Anna was innocently vain of her immunity from malaise. Mynors appeared to appoint himself little errands about the deck, returning frequently to his chair. 'Look over there. Can you see anything?'

So they left and found two empty deck chairs on the front deck. Anna was naively proud of her freedom from malaise. Mynors seemed to take on small tasks around the deck, coming back to his chair often. "Look over there. Can you see anything?"

Anna ran to the rail, with the infantile idea of getting nearer, and Mynors followed, laughing. What looked like a small slate-coloured cloud lay on the horizon.

Anna ran to the railing, thinking it would bring her closer, and Mynors followed, laughing. A small slate-colored cloud rested on the horizon.

'I seem to see something,' she said.

'I think I see something,' she said.

'That is the Isle of Man.'

'That is the Isle of Man.'

By insensible gradations the contours of the land grew clearer in the afternoon haze.

By subtle changes, the outlines of the land became more distinct in the afternoon mist.

'How far are we off now?'

'How far away are we now?'

'Perhaps twenty miles.'

'About twenty miles.'

Twenty miles of uninterrupted flatness, and the ship steadily invading that separating solitude, yard by yard, furlong by furlong! The conception awed her. There, a morsel in the waste of the deep, a speck under the infinite sunlight, lay the island, mysterious, enticing, enchanted, a glinting jewel on, the sea's bosom, a remote entity fraught with strange secrets. It was all unspeakable.

Twenty miles of endless flatness, and the ship steadily moving into that isolating emptiness, yard by yard, furlong by furlong! The idea amazed her. There, a tiny piece in the vastness of the ocean, a dot under the endless sunlight, was the island, mysterious, alluring, magical, a shining gem on the sea's surface, a distant existence filled with strange secrets. It was all beyond words.


'Anna, you have covered yourself with glory,' said Mrs. Sutton, when they were in the diminutive and absurd train which by breathless plunges annihilates the sixteen miles between Douglas and Port Erin in sixty-five minutes.

'Anna, you’ve really made yourself proud,' said Mrs. Sutton, when they were in the tiny and silly train that, with its frantic drops, destroys the sixteen miles between Douglas and Port Erin in sixty-five minutes.

'Have I?' she answered. 'How?'

'Have I?' she replied. 'How?'

'By not being ill.'

'By staying healthy.'

'That's always the beginner's luck,' said Beatrice, pale and dishevelled. They all relapsed into the silence of fatigue. It was growing dusk when the train stopped at the tiny terminus. The station was a hive of bustling activity, the arrival of this train being the daily event at that end of the world. Mynors and the Suttons were greeted familiarly by several sailors, and one of these, Tom Kelly, a tall, middle-aged man, with grey beard, small grey eyes, a wrinkled skin of red mahogany, and an enormous fist, was introduced to Anna. He raised his cap, and shook hands. She was touched by the sad, kind look on his face, the melancholy impress of the sea. Then they drove to their lodging, and here again the party was welcomed as being old and tried friends. A fire was burning in the parlour. Throwing herself down in front of it, Mrs. Sutton breathed, 'At last! Oh, for some tea.' Through the window, Anna had a glimpse of a deeply indented bay at the foot of cliffs below them, with a bold headland to the right. Fishing vessels with flat red sails seemed to hang undecided just outside the bay. From cottage chimneys beneath the road blue smoke softly ascended.

'That's always beginner's luck,' Beatrice said, looking pale and messy. They all fell silent, exhausted. It was getting dark when the train pulled into the tiny station. The station was buzzing with activity; the arrival of this train was the highlight of the day in this remote place. Mynors and the Suttons were greeted by several sailors, and one of them, Tom Kelly, a tall, middle-aged man with a grey beard, small grey eyes, weathered red-brown skin, and a huge fist, was introduced to Anna. He tipped his cap and shook her hand. She was moved by the sad, kind expression on his face, the melancholy aura of the sea. Then they went to their lodging, where they were welcomed like old, trusted friends. A fire was crackling in the living room. Throwing herself down in front of it, Mrs. Sutton sighed, 'Finally! Oh, I need some tea.' From the window, Anna caught a glimpse of a deeply indented bay at the base of cliffs below them, with a bold headland to the right. Fishing boats with flat red sails appeared to be hovering just outside the bay. Blue smoke rose gently from the chimneys of cottages below the road.

All went early to bed, for the weariness of Mr. and Mrs. Sutton seemed to communicate itself to the three young people, who might otherwise have gone forth into the village in search of adventures. Anna and Beatrice shared a room. Each inspected the other's clothes, and Beatrice made Anna try on the new serge skirt. Through the thin wall came the sound of Mr. and Mrs. Sutton talking, a high voice, then a bass reply, in continual alternation. Beatrice said that these two always discussed the day's doings in such manner. In a few moments Beatrice was snoring; she had the subdued but steady and serious snore characteristic of some muscular men. Anna felt no inclination to sleep. She lived again hour by hour through the day, and beneath Beatrice's snore her ear caught the undertone of the sea.

Everyone went to bed early because Mr. and Mrs. Sutton's tiredness seemed to spread to the three young people, who might have otherwise headed into the village for some adventures. Anna and Beatrice shared a room. They each looked at the other's clothes, and Beatrice made Anna try on the new serge skirt. Through the thin wall, Anna could hear Mr. and Mrs. Sutton talking, with a high voice followed by a deep reply, constantly alternating. Beatrice mentioned that they always discussed the day's events that way. In a few moments, Beatrice was snoring; she had a quiet but steady and serious snore typical of some muscular men. Anna didn’t feel like sleeping. She relived each hour of the day, and underneath Beatrice's snore, she could hear the soft sound of the sea.

The next morning was as lovely as the last. It was Sunday, and every activity of the village was stilled. Sea and land were equally folded in a sunlit calm. During breakfast—a meal abundant in fresh herrings, fresh eggs and fresh rolls, eaten with the window wide open—Anna was puzzled by the singular amenity of her friends to one another and to her. They were as polite as though they had been strangers; they chatted amiably, were full of goodwill, and as anxious to give happiness as to enjoy it. She thought at first, so unusual was it to her as a feature of domestic privacy, that this demeanour was affected, or at any rate a somewhat exaggerated punctilio due to her presence; but she soon came to see that she was mistaken. After breakfast Mr. Sutton suggested that they should attend the Wesleyan Chapel on the hill leading to the Chasms. Here they met the sailors of the night before, arrayed now in marvellous blue Melton coats with velveteen collars. Tom Kelly walked back with them to the beach, and showed them the yacht 'Fay' which Mynors had arranged to hire for mackerel-fishing; it lay on the sands speckless in new white paint. All the afternoon they dozed on the cliffs, doing nothing whatever, for this Sunday was tacitly regarded, not as part of the holiday, but as a preparation for the holiday; all felt that the holiday, with its proper exertions and appointed delights, would really begin on Monday morning.

The next morning was just as beautiful as the last. It was Sunday, and everything in the village was quiet. The sea and land were both wrapped in a sunny calm. During breakfast—a feast of fresh herring, fresh eggs, and fresh rolls, enjoyed with the window wide open—Anna was puzzled by how friendly her friends were to each other and to her. They were as polite as if they were strangers; they chatted pleasantly, were full of good intentions, and eager to make each other happy as well as to enjoy happiness themselves. At first, she thought this behavior was affected or, at the very least, a bit overdone because of her presence; but she soon realized she was wrong. After breakfast, Mr. Sutton proposed that they go to the Wesleyan Chapel on the hill towards the Chasms. There, they ran into the sailors from the night before, now dressed in impressive blue Melton coats with velveteen collars. Tom Kelly walked back with them to the beach and showed them the yacht 'Fay,' which Mynors had arranged to hire for mackerel fishing; it sat on the sand, pristine in fresh white paint. All afternoon, they lounged on the cliffs, doing absolutely nothing, as this Sunday was seen not as part of the holiday but as a preparation for it; everyone felt that the real holiday, with its activities and planned fun, would truly begin on Monday morning.

'Let us go for a walk,' said Mynors, after tea, to Beatrice and Anna. They stood at the gate of the lodging-house. The old people were resting within.

"Let's go for a walk," said Mynors, after tea, to Beatrice and Anna. They stood at the gate of the lodging house. The older folks were resting inside.

'You two go,' Beatrice replied, looking at Anna. 'You know I hate walking, Henry. I'll stop with mother and dad.'

'You two go,' Beatrice said, glancing at Anna. 'You know I hate walking, Henry. I'll stay with Mom and Dad.'

Throughout the day Anna had been conscious of the fact that all the Suttons showed a tendency, slight but perceptible, to treat Henry and herself as a pair desirous of opportunities for being alone together. She did not like it. She flushed under the passing glance with which Beatrice accompanied the words: 'You two go.' Nevertheless, when Mynors placidly remarked: 'Very well,' and his eyes sought hers for a consent, she could not refuse it. One part of her nature would have preferred to find an excuse for staying at home; but another, and a stronger, part insisted on seizing this offered joy.

Throughout the day, Anna had been aware that all the Suttons seemed to have a subtle but noticeable tendency to treat Henry and her as a couple looking for chances to be alone together. She didn't like it. She felt a heat rise in her cheeks when Beatrice gave her a quick look as she said, "You two go." Still, when Mynors calmly said, "Very well," and his gaze searched hers for agreement, she couldn't say no. One part of her wished she could come up with a reason to stay home, but another, stronger part urged her to take advantage of this chance for happiness.

They walked straight up out of the village toward the high coast-range which stretches peak after peak from Port Erin to Peel. The stony and devious lanes wound about the bleak hillside, passing here and there small, solitary cottages of whitewashed stone, with children, fowls, and dogs at the doors, all embowered in huge fuchsia trees. Presently they had surmounted the limit of habitation and were on the naked flank of Bradda, following a narrow track which crept upwards amid short mossy turf of the most vivid green. Nothing seemed to flourish on this exposed height except bracken, sheep, and boulders that, from a distance, resembled sheep; there was no tree, scarcely a shrub; the immense contours, stark, grim, and unrelieved, rose in melancholy and defiant majesty against the sky: the hand of man could coax no harvest from these smooth but obdurate slopes; they had never relented, and they would never relent. The spirit was braced by the thought that here, to the furthest eternity of civilisation more and more intricate, simple and strong souls would always find solace and repose.

They walked straight out of the village toward the high coastal range that stretches peak after peak from Port Erin to Peel. The rocky, winding paths snaked around the desolate hillside, occasionally passing small, isolated cottages made of whitewashed stone, with kids, chickens, and dogs at the doors, all surrounded by large fuchsia trees. Soon they reached the end of the village and found themselves on the bare slope of Bradda, following a narrow trail that climbed gently through soft, bright green moss. Nothing seemed to thrive on this exposed height except bracken, sheep, and rocks that, from a distance, looked like sheep; there were no trees, hardly any shrubs; the vast, stark contours rose in a mournful yet defiant majesty against the sky: no harvest could be coaxed from these smooth but unyielding slopes; they had never given in, and they never would. The spirit was uplifted by the idea that here, at the edge of an increasingly complex civilization, simple and strong souls would always find comfort and peace.

Mynors bore to the left for a while, striking across the moor in the direction of the sea. Then he said:

Mynors turned left for a bit, making his way across the moor toward the sea. Then he said:

'Look down, now.'

'Look down now.'

The little bay lay like an oblong swimming-bath five hundred feet below them. The surface of the water was like glass; the strand, with its phalanx of boats drawn up in Sabbath tidiness, glittered like marble in the living light, and over this marble black dots moved slowly to and fro; behind the boats were the houses—dolls' houses—each with a curling wisp of smoke; further away the railway and the high road ran out in a black and white line to Port St. Mary; the sea, a pale grey, encompassed all; the southern sky had a faint sapphire tinge, rising to delicate azure. The sight of this haven at rest, shut in by the restful sea and by great moveless hills, a calm within a calm, aroused profound emotion.

The little bay lay like an elongated swimming pool five hundred feet below them. The water's surface was as smooth as glass; the beach, with its row of boats neatly lined up, sparkled like marble in the bright light, and over this marble, small black dots moved slowly back and forth. Behind the boats were the houses—like dollhouses—each with a curling wisp of smoke. Further away, the railway and the main road stretched out in a black and white line toward Port St. Mary; the sea, a pale gray, surrounded it all; the southern sky had a soft sapphire hue, fading into delicate blue. The sight of this tranquil haven, enclosed by the peaceful sea and towering, still hills—a calm within a calm—stirred deep emotions.

'It's lovely,' said Anna, as they stood gazing. Tears came to her eyes and hung there. She wondered that scenery should cause tears, felt ashamed, and turned her face so that Mynors should not see. But he had seen.

'It's beautiful,' said Anna, as they stood admiring it. Tears filled her eyes and lingered there. She was surprised that a view could make her cry, felt embarrassed, and turned her face so Mynors wouldn't notice. But he had seen.

'Shall we go on to the top?' he suggested, and they set their faces northwards to climb still higher. At length they stood on the rocky summit of Bradda, seven hundred feet from the sea. The Hill of the Night Watch lifted above them to the north, but on east, south, and west, the prospect was bounded only by the ocean. The coast-line was revealed for thirty miles, from Peel to Castletown. Far to the east was Castletown Bay, large, shallow and inhospitable, its floor strewn with a thousand unseen wrecks; the lighthouse at Scarlet Point flashed dimly in the dusk; thence the beach curved nearer in an immense arc, without a sign of life, to the little cove of Port St. Mary, and jutted out again into a tongue of land at the end of which lay the Calf of Man with its single white cottage and cart-track. The dangerous Calf Sound, where the vexed tide is forced to run nine hours one way and three the other, seemed like a grey ribbon, and the Chicken Rock like a tiny pencil on a vast slate. Port Erin was hidden under their feet. They looked westward. The darkening sky was a labyrinth of purple and crimson scarves drawn pellucid, as though by the finger of God, across a sheet of pure saffron. These decadent tints of the sunset faded in every direction to the same soft azure which filled the south, and one star twinkled in the illimitable field. Thirty miles off, on the horizon, could be discerned the Mourne Mountains of Ireland.

"Shall we head to the top?" he suggested, and they turned their faces north to climb even higher. Eventually, they stood on the rocky peak of Bradda, seven hundred feet above the sea. The Hill of the Night Watch rose above them to the north, but to the east, south, and west, the view was only ocean. The coastline stretched for thirty miles, from Peel to Castletown. Far to the east was Castletown Bay, large, shallow, and unwelcoming, its floor scattered with a thousand unseen shipwrecks; the lighthouse at Scarlet Point flickered dimly in the dusk; from there, the beach curved inward in a huge arc, completely lifeless, to the small cove of Port St. Mary, then jutted out again into a strip of land where the Calf of Man lay with its single white cottage and cart track. The treacherous Calf Sound, where the turbulent tide runs nine hours one way and three the other, appeared like a gray ribbon, and the Chicken Rock like a tiny pencil on a vast slate. Port Erin was hidden below them. They looked westward. The darkening sky was a maze of purple and crimson shades, drawn clearly, as if by God's finger, across a canvas of pure saffron. These fading hues of sunset diminished in every direction to the same soft blue that filled the south, and one star twinkled in the endless expanse. Thirty miles away, on the horizon, the Mourne Mountains of Ireland could be seen.

'See!' Mynors exclaimed, touching her arm.

'Look!' Mynors said, touching her arm.

The huge disc of the moon was rising in the east, and as this mild lamp passed up the sky, the sense of universal quiescence increased. Lovely, Anna had said. It was the loveliest sight her eyes had ever beheld, a panorama of pure beauty transcending all imagined visions. It overwhelmed her, thrilled her to the heart, this revelation of the loveliness of the world. Her thoughts went back to Hanbridge and Bursley and her life there; and all the remembered scenes, bathed in the glow of a new ideal, seemed to lose their pain. It was as if she had never been really unhappy, as if there was no real unhappiness on the whole earth. She perceived that the monotony, the austerity, the melancholy of her existence had been sweet and beautiful of its kind, and she recalled, with a sort of rapture, hours of companionship with the beloved Agnes, when her father was equable and pacific. Nothing was ugly nor mean. Beauty was everywhere, in everything.

The large disk of the moon was rising in the east, and as this gentle light moved across the sky, the feeling of universal calm grew stronger. Beautiful, Anna had said. It was the most beautiful sight her eyes had ever seen, a scene of pure beauty surpassing all imagined visions. It overwhelmed her, thrilling her to the core, this revelation of the world's loveliness. Her thoughts drifted back to Hanbridge and Bursley and her life there; all the memories, bathed in the glow of a new ideal, seemed to lose their pain. It felt as if she had never truly been unhappy, as if there was no real unhappiness anywhere on earth. She realized that the monotony, the severity, the sadness of her life had been sweet and beautiful in its own way, and she remembered, with a sort of joy, moments of companionship with her beloved Agnes, when her father was calm and peaceful. Nothing was ugly or small. Beauty was everywhere, in everything.

In silence they began to descend, perforce walking quickly because of the steep gradient. At the first cottage they saw a little girl in a mob-cap playing with two kittens.

In silence, they started to go down, having to walk quickly because of the steep slope. At the first cottage, they saw a little girl in a mob-cap playing with two kittens.

'How like Agnes!' Mynors said.

"Just like Agnes!" Mynors said.

'Yes. I was just thinking so,' Anna answered.

'Yeah. I was just thinking that too,' Anna replied.

'I thought of her up on the hill,' he continued. 'She will miss you, won't she?'

'I thought about her up on the hill,' he continued. 'She's really going to miss you, right?'

'I know she cried herself to sleep last night. You mightn't guess it, but she is extremely sensitive.'

'I know she cried herself to sleep last night. You might not believe it, but she is really sensitive.'

'Not guess it? Why not? I am sure she is. Do you know—I am very fond of your sister. She's a simply delightful child. And there's a lot in her, too. She's so quick and bright, and somehow like a little woman.'

'Can't guess it? Why not? I'm sure she is. You know—I really like your sister. She's such a delightful kid. And there's so much to her, too. She's so sharp and lively, and in a way, she’s like a little woman.'

'She's exactly like a woman sometimes,' Anna agreed. 'Sometimes I fancy she's a great deal older than I am.'

'She's just like a woman sometimes,' Anna agreed. 'Sometimes I feel like she's a lot older than I am.'

'Older than any of us,' he corrected.

'Older than any of us,' he said.

'I'm glad you like her,' Anna said, content. 'She thinks all the world of you.' And she added: 'My word, wouldn't she be vexed if she knew I had told you that!'

"I'm glad you like her," Anna said, feeling pleased. "She thinks the world of you." And she added, "Wow, she'd be so upset if she knew I told you that!"

This appreciation of Agnes brought them into closer intimacy, and they talked the more easily of other things.

This admiration for Agnes brought them closer together, and they found it easier to talk about other things.

'It will freeze to-night,' Mynors said; and then, suddenly looking at her in the twilight: 'You are feeling chill.'

'It’s going to freeze tonight,' Mynors said; and then, suddenly looking at her in the fading light: 'You look cold.'

'Oh, no!' she protested.

'Oh, no!' she said.

'But you are. Put this muffler round your neck.' He took a muffler from his pocket.

'But you are. Put this scarf around your neck.' He took a scarf from his pocket.

'Oh, no, really! You will need it yourself.' She drew a little away from him, as if to avoid the muffler.

'Oh, no, really! You'll need it yourself.' She moved slightly away from him, as if trying to avoid the scarf.

'Please take it.'

'Please take it.'

She did so, and thanked him, tying it loosely and untidily round her throat. That feeling of the untidiness of the muffler, of its being something strange to her skin, something with the rough virtue of masculinity, which no one could detect in the gloom, was in itself pleasant.

She did that and thanked him, tying it loosely and messily around her neck. The feeling of the messy scarf, something foreign against her skin, something with the roughness of masculinity that no one could see in the dark, was kind of nice.

'I wager Mrs. Sutton has a good fire burning when we get in,' he said.

"I bet Mrs. Sutton has a nice fire going when we get there," he said.

She thought with joyous anticipation of the warm, bright, sitting-room, the supper, and the vivacious good-natured conversation. Though the walk was nearly at an end, other delights were in store. Of the holiday, thirteen complete days yet remained, each to be as happy as the one now closing. It was an age! At last they entered the human cosiness of the village. As they walked up the steps of their lodging and he opened the door for her, she quickly drew off the muffler and returned it to him with a word of thanks.

She imagined the warm, bright living room, the dinner, and the lively, cheerful conversations with excitement. Even though the walk was almost over, more pleasures awaited. There were still thirteen full days of the holiday left, each one promising to be as joyful as this one. It felt like forever! Finally, they stepped into the comforting atmosphere of the village. As they climbed the steps to their place and he opened the door for her, she quickly took off her scarf and handed it back to him with a thank you.

On Monday morning, when Beatrice and Anna came downstairs, they found the breakfast odorously cooling on the table, and nobody in the room.

On Monday morning, when Beatrice and Anna came downstairs, they found breakfast sitting on the table, getting cold, with no one in the room.

'Where are they all, I wonder. Any letters?' Beatrice said.

"Where is everyone, I wonder? Any letters?" Beatrice asked.

'There's your mother, out on the front—and Mr. Mynors too.'

'There's your mom out front—and Mr. Mynors too.'

Beatrice threw up the window, and called: 'Come along, Henry; come along, mother. Everything's going cold.'

Beatrice threw open the window and called out, "Come on, Henry; hurry up, Mom. Everything's getting cold."

'Is it?' Mynors cheerfully replied. 'Come out here, both of you, and begin the day properly with a dose of ozone.'

'Is it?' Mynors cheerfully replied. 'Come out here, both of you, and start the day right with some fresh air.'

'I loathe cold bacon,' said Beatrice, glancing at the table, and they went out into the road, where Mrs. Sutton kissed them with as much fervour as if they had arrived from a long journey.

'I can't stand cold bacon,' Beatrice said, looking at the table, and they stepped out onto the road, where Mrs. Sutton greeted them with as much warmth as if they had just returned from a long trip.

'You look pale, Anna,' she remarked.

'You look pale, Anna,' she said.

'Do I?' said Anna, 'I don't feel pale.'

'Do I?' Anna said. 'I don't feel pale.'

'It's that long walk last night,' Beatrice put in. 'Henry always goes too far.'

'It's that long walk from last night,' Beatrice added. 'Henry always goes too far.'

'I don't——' Anna began; but at that moment Mr. Sutton, lumbering and ponderous, joined the party.

'I don't——' Anna started, but at that moment Mr. Sutton, heavyset and slow-moving, joined the group.

'Henry,' he said, without greeting anyone, 'hast noticed those half-finished houses down the road yonder by the "Falcon"? I've been having a chat with Kelly, and he tells me the fellow that was building them has gone bankrupt, and they're at a stand-still. The Receiver wants to sell 'em. In fact Kelly says they're going cheap. I believe they'd be a good spec.'

'Henry,' he said, without greeting anyone, 'have you noticed those half-finished houses down the road by the "Falcon"? I've been talking to Kelly, and he told me the guy who was building them has gone bankrupt, and they're stalled. The Receiver wants to sell them. In fact, Kelly says they're going for a good price. I think they’d be a solid investment.'

'Eh, dear!' Mrs. Sutton interrupted him. 'Father, I wish you would leave your specs alone when you're on your holiday.'

'Eh, dear!' Mrs. Sutton interrupted him. 'Dad, I wish you would leave your glasses alone when you're on vacation.'

'Now, missis!' he affectionately protested, and continued: 'They're fairly well built, seemingly, and the rafters are on the roof. Anna,' he turned to her quickly, as if counting on her sympathy, 'you must come with me and look at 'em after breakfast. Happen they might suit your father—or you. I know your father's fond of a good spec.'

'Now, ma'am!' he said affectionately, and continued: 'They’re pretty solid, it seems, and the rafters are on the roof. Anna,' he turned to her quickly, hoping for her support, 'you have to come with me and check them out after breakfast. They might be just the thing for your father—or for you. I know your dad loves a good deal.'

She assented with a ready smile. This was the beginning of a fancy which the Alderman always afterwards showed for Anna.

She agreed with a bright smile. This was the start of a fondness that the Alderman always had for Anna.

After breakfast Mrs. Sutton, Beatrice, and Anna arranged to go shopping:

After breakfast, Mrs. Sutton, Beatrice, and Anna planned to go shopping:

'Father—brass,' Mrs. Sutton ejaculated in two monosyllables to her husband.

'Father—brass,' Mrs. Sutton exclaimed in two short words to her husband.

'How much will content ye?' he asked mildly.

'How much will you be satisfied?' he asked gently.

'Give me five or ten pounds to go on with.'

'Give me five or ten bucks to keep going.'

He opened the left-hand front pocket of his trousers—a pocket which fastened with a button; and leaning back in his chair drew out a fat purse, and passed it to his wife with a preoccupied air. She helped herself, and then Beatrice intercepted the purse and lightened it of half a sovereign.

He opened the left front pocket of his pants—a pocket that had a button—and leaning back in his chair, pulled out a thick wallet and handed it to his wife with a distracted look. She took some money, and then Beatrice grabbed the wallet and took half a sovereign from it.

'Pocket-money,' Beatrice said; 'I'm ruined.'

"Allowance," Beatrice said; "I'm ruined."

The Alderman's eyes requested Anna to observe how he was robbed. At last the purse was safely buttoned up again.

The Alderman's eyes urged Anna to see how he was being robbed. Finally, the purse was safely buttoned up again.

Mrs. Sutton's purchases of food at the three principal shops of the village seemed startlingly profuse to Anna, but gradually she became accustomed to the scale, and to the amazing habit of always buying the very best of everything, from beefsteak to grapes. Anna calculated that the housekeeping could not cost less than six pounds a week for the five. At Manor Terrace three people existed on a pound. With her half-sovereign Beatrice bought a belt and a pair of sand-shoes, and some cigarettes for Henry. Mrs. Sutton bought a pipe with a nickel cap, such as is used by sailors. When they returned to the house, Mr. Sutton and Henry were smoking on the front. All five walked in a row down to the harbour, the Alderman giving an arm each to Beatrice and Anna. Near the 'Falcon' the procession had to be stopped in order to view the unfinished houses. Tom Kelly had a cabin partly excavated out of the rock behind the little quay. Here they found him entangled amid nets, sails, and oars. All crowded into the cabin and shook hands with its owner, who remarked with severity on their pallid faces, and insisted that a change of complexion must be brought about. Mynors offered him his tobacco-pouch, but on seeing the light colour of the tobacco he shook his head and refused it, at the same time taking from within his jersey a lump of something that resembled leather.

Mrs. Sutton's grocery shopping at the three main stores in the village seemed way too excessive to Anna at first, but she eventually got used to the scale and the incredible habit of always picking the absolute best of everything, from steak to grapes. Anna figured that the weekly grocery bill couldn't be less than six pounds for the five of them. Back at Manor Terrace, three people managed on a pound. With her half-sovereign, Beatrice bought a belt, a pair of sneakers, and some cigarettes for Henry. Mrs. Sutton bought a pipe with a nickel cap, like the ones sailors use. When they got back to the house, Mr. Sutton and Henry were smoking on the porch. The five of them walked in a line down to the harbor, with the Alderman linking arms with Beatrice and Anna. Near the 'Falcon,' they had to pause their little parade to check out the unfinished houses. Tom Kelly had a cabin partially dug out of the rock behind the small quay. They found him tangled up in nets, sails, and oars. Everyone squeezed into the cabin and shook hands with him, who sternly commented on their pale faces and insisted they needed to get some color back. Mynors offered him his tobacco pouch, but when he saw the light-colored tobacco, he shook his head and refused it, while pulling out a chunk of something that looked like leather from inside his jersey.

'Give him this, Henry,' Mrs. Sutton whispered, handing Mynors the pipe which she had bought.

'Give him this, Henry,' Mrs. Sutton whispered, handing Mynors the pipe she had bought.

'Mrs. Sutton wishes you to accept this,' said Mynors.

'Mrs. Sutton wants you to take this,' said Mynors.

'Eh, thank ye,' he exclaimed. 'There's a leddy that knows my taste.' He cut some shreds from his plug with a clasp-knife and charged and lighted the pipe, filling the cabin with asphyxiating fumes.

'Oh, thank you,' he exclaimed. 'There's a lady who knows what I like.' He sliced some pieces from his tobacco with a pocket knife and packed and lit the pipe, filling the cabin with thick smoke.

'I don't know how you can smoke such horrid, nasty stuff,' said Beatrice, coughing.

'I don't understand how you can smoke that disgusting stuff,' Beatrice said, coughing.

He laughed condescendingly at Beatrice's petulant manner. 'That stuff of Henry's is boy's tobacco,' he said shortly.

He laughed dismissively at Beatrice's sulky attitude. "That stuff Henry has is just childish tobacco," he said curtly.

It was decided that they should go fishing in the 'Fay.' There was a light southerly breeze, a cloudy sky, and smooth water. Under charge of young Tom Kelly, a sheepish lad of sixteen, with his father's smile, they all got into an inconceivably small dinghy, loading it down till it was almost awash. Old Tom himself helped Anna to embark, told her where to tread, and forced her gently into a seat at the stern. No one else seemed to be disturbed, but Anna was in a state of desperate fear. She had never committed herself to a boat before, and the little waves spat up against the sides in a most alarming way as young Tom jerked the dinghy along with the short sculls. She went white, and clung in silence fiercely to the gunwale. In a few moments they were tied up to the 'Fay,' which seemed very big and safe in comparison with the dinghy. They clambered on board, and in the deep well of the two-ton yacht Anna contrived to collect her wits. She was reassured by the painted legend in the well, 'Licensed to carry eleven.' Young Tom and Henry busied themselves with ropes, and suddenly a huge white sail began to ascend the mast; it flapped like thunder in the gentle breeze. Tom pulled up the anchor, curling the chain round and round on the forward deck, and then Anna noticed that, although the wind was scarcely perceptible, they were gliding quickly past the embankment. Henry was at the tiller. The next minute Tom had set the jib, and by this time the 'Fay' was approaching the breakwater at a great pace. There was no rolling or pitching, but simply a smooth, swift progression over the calm surface. Anna thought it the ideal of locomotion. As soon as they were beyond the breakwater and the sails caught the breeze from the Sound, the 'Fay' lay over as if shot, and a little column of green water flung itself on the lee coaming of the well. Anna screamed as she saw the water and felt the angle of the floor suddenly change, but when everyone laughed, she laughed too. Henry, noticing the whiteness of her knuckles as she gripped the coaming, explained the disconcerting phenomena. Anna tried to be at ease, but she was not. She could not for a long time dismiss the suspicion that all these people were foolishly blind to a peril which she alone had the sagacity to perceive.

It was agreed that they would go fishing on the 'Fay.' There was a light breeze from the south, a cloudy sky, and calm water. Under the guidance of young Tom Kelly, a shy 16-year-old with his father's smile, they all squeezed into a surprisingly tiny dinghy, weighing it down until it was nearly filling with water. Old Tom himself helped Anna get in, showed her where to step, and gently pushed her into a seat at the back. Everyone else seemed unfazed, but Anna was filled with anxiety. She had never been on a boat before, and the little waves splashed against the sides in a really unsettling way as Tom awkwardly rowed with the short oars. She turned pale and held on tightly to the edge in silence. In a few moments, they were tied up to the 'Fay,' which looked very big and safe compared to the dinghy. They climbed aboard, and in the deep space of the two-ton yacht, Anna managed to gather her thoughts. She felt reassured by the painted sign that read, 'Licensed to carry eleven.' Young Tom and Henry busied themselves with the ropes, and suddenly a huge white sail started to rise up the mast; it flapped like thunder in the light breeze. Tom pulled up the anchor, winding the chain round and round on the front deck, and then Anna noticed that even though the wind was hardly noticeable, they were gliding swiftly past the embankment. Henry was at the steering. The next moment, Tom had set the jib, and by then the 'Fay' was speeding toward the breakwater. There was no rolling or pitching, just a smooth, fast movement over the calm surface. Anna thought it was the perfect way to travel. As soon as they were past the breakwater and the sails caught the wind from the Sound, the 'Fay' tilted as if propelled, and a small wave of green water splashed against the side of the well. Anna screamed when she saw the water and felt the floor suddenly angle down, but when everyone else laughed, she laughed too. Henry, noticing how white her knuckles were as she gripped the coaming, explained the surprising situation. Anna tried to relax, but she couldn't. For a long time, she couldn't shake the feeling that everyone else was foolishly unaware of a danger that she alone had the insight to see.

They cruised about while Tom prepared the lines. The short waves chopped cheerfully against the carvel sides of the yacht; the clouds were breaking at a hundred points; the sea grew lighter in tone; gaiety was in the air; no one could possibly be indisposed in that innocuous weather. At length the lines were ready, but Tom said the yacht was making at least a knot too much for serious fishing, so Henry took a reef in the mainsail, showing Anna how to tie the short strings. The Alderman, lying on the fore-deck, was placidly smoking. The lines were thrown out astern, and Mrs. Sutton and Beatrice each took one. But they had no success; young Tom said it was because the sun had appeared.

They cruised around while Tom got the lines ready. The short waves playfully splashed against the wooden sides of the yacht; the clouds were breaking in a hundred places; the sea looked lighter; there was a cheerful vibe in the air; no one could possibly be feeling down in such nice weather. Finally, the lines were ready, but Tom mentioned that the yacht was going at least a knot too fast for serious fishing, so Henry reefed the mainsail, showing Anna how to tie the short lines. The Alderman, lounging on the foredeck, was calmly smoking. The lines were tossed out behind, and Mrs. Sutton and Beatrice each took one. But they had no luck; young Tom said it was because the sun had come out.

'Caught anything?' Mr. Sutton inquired at intervals. After a time he said:

'Have you caught anything?' Mr. Sutton asked from time to time. After a while, he said:

'Suppose Anna and I have a try?'

'What if Anna and I give it a shot?'

It was agreed.

It’s a deal.

'What must I do?' asked Anna, brave now.

'What do I need to do?' Anna asked, feeling brave now.

'You just hold the line—so. And if you feel a little jerk-jerk, that's a mackerel.' These were the instructions of Beatrice. Anna was becoming excited. She had not held the line ten seconds before she cried out:

'Just hold the line like this. And if you feel a little tug, that's a mackerel.' These were Beatrice's instructions. Anna was getting excited. She hadn't held the line for ten seconds before she shouted:

'I've got one.'

"I have one."

'Nonsense,' said Beatrice. 'Everyone thinks at first that the motion of the waves against the line is a fish.'

'Nonsense,' Beatrice said. 'At first, everyone assumes that the movement of the waves along the line is a fish.'

'Well,' said Henry, giving the tiller to young Tom. 'Let's haul in and see, anyway.' Before doing so he held the line for a moment, testing it, and winked at Anna. While Anna and Henry were hauling in, the Alderman, dropping his pipe, began also to haul in his own line with great fury.

'Well,' said Henry, handing the tiller to young Tom. 'Let's pull in and check it out, anyway.' Before doing so, he held the line for a moment, testing it, and winked at Anna. While Anna and Henry were pulling in, the Alderman, dropping his pipe, started to pull in his own line with great enthusiasm.

'Got one, father?' Mrs. Sutton asked.

'Got one, Dad?' Mrs. Sutton asked.

'Ay!'

'Hey!'

Both lines came in together, and on each was a pounder. Anna saw her fish gleam and flash like silver in the clear water as it neared the surface. Henry held the line short, letting the mackerel plunge and jerk, and then seized and unhooked the catch.

Both lines came in together, and each had a pounder. Anna watched her fish shine and flash like silver in the clear water as it got closer to the surface. Henry kept the line tight, allowing the mackerel to dive and struggle, and then quickly grabbed and unhooked the catch.

'How cruel!' Anna cried, startled at the nearness of the two fish as they sprang about in an old sugar box at her feet. Young Tom laughed loud at her exclamation. 'They cairn't feel, miss,' he sniggered. Anna wondered that a mouth so soft and kind could utter such heartless words.

'How cruel!' Anna exclaimed, shocked by how close the two fish were as they jumped around in an old sugar box at her feet. Young Tom laughed loudly at her reaction. 'They can't feel, miss,' he sneered. Anna was surprised that a mouth so soft and kind could say such heartless things.

In an hour the united efforts of the party had caught nine mackerel; it was not a multitude, but the sun, in perfecting the weather, had spoilt the sport. Anna had ceased to commiserate the captured fish. She was obliged, however, to avert her head when Tom cut some skin from the side of one of the mackerel to provide fresh bait; this device seemed to her the extremest refinement of cruelty. Beatrice grew ominously silent and inert, and Mrs. Sutton glanced first at her daughter and then at her husband; the latter nodded.

In an hour, the team had caught nine mackerel; it wasn't a lot, but the nice weather had ruined the fun. Anna had stopped feeling sorry for the caught fish. However, she had to turn her head when Tom cut some skin off one of the mackerel to use as fresh bait; to her, this felt like the height of cruelty. Beatrice became worryingly quiet and still, and Mrs. Sutton looked first at her daughter and then at her husband; he nodded.

'We'd happen better be getting back, Henry,' said the Alderman.

"We should probably head back, Henry," said the Alderman.

The 'Fay' swept home like a bird. They were at the quay, and Kelly was dragging them one by one from the black dinghy on to what the Alderman called terra-firma. Henry had the fish on a string.

The 'Fay' glided in like a bird. They were at the dock, and Kelly was pulling them one by one from the black dinghy onto what the Alderman referred to as terra-firma. Henry had the fish on a string.

'How many did ye catch, Miss Tellwright?' Kelly asked benevolently.

'How many did you catch, Miss Tellwright?' Kelly asked kindly.

'I caught four,' Anna replied. Never before had she felt so proud, elated, and boisterous. Never had the blood so wildly danced in her veins. She looked at her short blue skirt which showed three inches of ankle, put forward her brown-shod foot like a vain coquette, and darted a covert look at Henry. When he caught it she laughed instead of blushing.

'I caught four,' Anna replied. Never before had she felt so proud, excited, and lively. Never had her blood raced so wildly. She glanced at her short blue skirt that revealed three inches of ankle, stepped forward with her brown-shod foot like a playful flirt, and threw a quick look at Henry. When he noticed, she laughed instead of blushing.

'Ye're doing well,' Tom Kelly approved. 'Ye'll make a famous mackerel-fisher.'

'You're doing great,' Tom Kelly said. 'You'll become a famous mackerel fisherman.'

Five of the mackerel were given to young Tom, the other four preceded a fowl in the menu of dinner. They were called Anna's mackerel, and all the diners agreed that better mackerel had never been lured out of the Irish Sea.

Five of the mackerel were given to young Tom, while the other four were served before the main dish at dinner. They were called Anna's mackerel, and everyone at the table agreed that no better mackerel had ever been caught from the Irish Sea.

In the afternoon the Alderman and his wife slept as usual, Mr. Sutton with a bandanna handkerchief over his face. The rest went out immediately; the invitation of the sun and the sea was far too persuasive to be resisted.

In the afternoon, the Alderman and his wife took their usual nap, with Mr. Sutton covering his face with a bandanna handkerchief. The others went out right away; the allure of the sun and the sea was just too tempting to ignore.

'I'm going to paint,' said Beatrice, with a resolute mien. 'I want to paint Bradda Head frightfully. I tried last year, but I got it too dark, somehow. I've improved since then. What are you going to do?'

"I'm going to paint," Beatrice said firmly. "I want to paint Bradda Head really well. I tried last year, but I made it too dark for some reason. I've gotten better since then. What are you going to do?"

'We'll come and watch you,' said Henry.

'We'll come and watch you,' Henry said.

'Oh, no, you won't. At least you won't; you're such a critic. Anna can if she likes.'

'Oh, no, you won't. At least you won't; you're such a critic. Anna can if she wants to.'

'What! And me be left all afternoon by myself?'

'What! Am I really going to be left alone all afternoon?'

'Well, suppose you go with him, Anna, just to keep him from being bored?'

'Well, how about you go with him, Anna, just to keep him from getting bored?'

Anna hesitated. Once more she had the uncomfortable suspicion that Mynors and herself were being manoeuvred.

Anna hesitated. Again, she had the unsettling feeling that Mynors and she were being manipulated.

'Look here,' said Mynors to Beatrice. 'Have you decided absolutely to paint?'

'Look here,' Mynors said to Beatrice. 'Have you definitely decided to paint?'

'Absolutely.' The finality of the answer seemed to have a touch of resentment.

'Absolutely.' The way the answer was delivered felt a bit resentful.

'Then'—he turned to Anna—'let's go and get that dinghy and row about the bay. Eh?'

'Then'—he turned to Anna—'let's go get that dinghy and paddle around the bay. Sound good?'

She could offer no rational objection, and they were soon putting off from the jetty, impelled seaward by a mighty push from Kelly's arm. It was very hot. Mynors wore white flannels. He removed his coat, and turned up his sleeves, showing thick, hairy arms. He sculled in a manner almost dramatic, and the dinghy shot about like a water-spider on a brook. Anna had nothing to do except to sit still and enjoy. Everything was drowned in dazzling sunlight, and both Henry and Anna could feel the process of tanning on their faces. The bay shimmered with a million diamond points; it was impossible to keep the eyes open without frowning, and soon Anna could see the beads of sweat on Henry's crimson brow.

She had no logical reason to object, and they were quickly pushing off from the dock, driven out to sea by a strong shove from Kelly's arm. It was really hot. Mynors was dressed in white pants. He took off his jacket and rolled up his sleeves, revealing his thick, hairy arms. He rowed in a nearly dramatic way, and the small boat darted around like a water spider in a stream. Anna had nothing to do but sit still and enjoy it. Everything was bathed in bright sunlight, and both Henry and Anna could feel their faces tanning. The bay sparkled with a million diamond-like reflections; it was hard to keep their eyes open without squinting, and soon Anna could see beads of sweat forming on Henry's red forehead.

'Warm?' she said. This was the first word of conversation. He merely smiled in reply. Presently they were at the other side of the bay, in a cave whose sandy and rock-strewn floor trembled clear under a fathom of blue water. They landed on a jutting rock; Henry pushed his straw hat back, and wiped his forehead. 'Glorious! glorious!' he exclaimed. 'Do you swim? No? You should get Beatrice to teach you. I swam out here this morning at seven o'clock. It was chilly enough then. Oh! I forgot, I told you at breakfast.'

'Warm?' she asked. This was the first word exchanged. He just smiled in response. Soon they had made it to the other side of the bay, in a cave with a sandy and rocky floor that shivered under a foot of blue water. They landed on a protruding rock; Henry pushed his straw hat back and wiped his forehead. 'Amazing! Amazing!' he exclaimed. 'Can you swim? No? You should ask Beatrice to teach you. I swam out here this morning at seven o'clock. It was pretty chilly then. Oh! I forgot, I mentioned it at breakfast.'

She could see him in the translucent water, swimming with long, powerful strokes. Dozens of boats were moving lazily in the bay, each with a cargo of parasols.

She could see him in the clear water, swimming with long, strong strokes. Dozens of boats were drifting slowly in the bay, each carrying a load of parasols.

'There's a good deal of the sunshade afloat,' he remarked. 'Why haven't you got one? You'll get as brown as Tom Kelly.'

'There's a lot of sunshade out here,' he said. 'Why don't you have one? You'll get as tan as Tom Kelly.'

'That's what I want,' she said.

'That's what I want,' she said.

'Look at yourself in the water there,' he said, pointing to a little pool left on the top of the rock by the tide. She did so, and saw two fiery cheeks, and a forehead divided by a horizontal line into halves of white and crimson; the tip of the nose was blistered.

'Look at yourself in that water,' he said, pointing to a small pool left on top of the rock by the tide. She did, and saw two flushed cheeks and a forehead split by a horizontal line into halves of pale and red; the tip of her nose was burned.

'Isn't it disgraceful?' he suggested.

"Isn't that disgraceful?" he suggested.

'Why,' she exclaimed, 'they'll never know me when I get home!'

'Why,' she exclaimed, 'they'll never recognize me when I get home!'

It was in such wise that they talked, endlessly exchanging trifles of comment. Anna thought to herself: 'Is this love-making?' It could not be, she decided; but she infinitely preferred it so. She was content. She wished for nothing better than this apparently frivolous and irresponsible dalliance. She felt that if Mynors were to be tender, sentimental, and serious, she would become wretchedly self-conscious.

It was in this way that they talked, constantly exchanging little comments. Anna thought to herself, "Is this love-making?" She decided it couldn't be, but she much preferred it this way. She was happy. She wanted nothing more than this seemingly light-hearted and carefree flirtation. She felt that if Mynors were to be affectionate, sentimental, and serious, she would become painfully self-aware.

They re-embarked, and, skirting the shore, gradually came round to the beach. Up above them, on the cliffs, they could discern the industrious figure of Beatrice, with easel and sketching-umbrella, and all the panoply of the earnest amateur.

They got back on board and, staying close to the shore, slowly made their way to the beach. Up above them, on the cliffs, they could see Beatrice, hard at work with her easel and sketching umbrella, looking like a dedicated amateur artist.

'Do you sketch?' she asked him.

'Do you draw?' she asked him.

'Not I!' he said scornfully.

"Not me!" he said scornfully.

'Don't you believe in that sort of thing, then?'

'So you don't believe in that kind of stuff, huh?'

'It's all right for professional artists,' he said; 'people who can paint. But—— Well, I suppose it's harmless for the amateurs—finds them something to do.'

'It's fine for professional artists,' he said; 'people who can paint. But—well, I guess it's harmless for the amateurs—it gives them something to do.'

'I wish I could paint, anyway,' she retorted.

'I wish I could paint, anyway,' she shot back.

'I'm glad you can't,' he insisted.

"I'm glad you can't," he said firmly.

When they got back to the cliffs, towards tea-time, Beatrice was still painting, but in a new spot. She seemed entirely absorbed in her work, and did not hear their approach.

When they returned to the cliffs around tea time, Beatrice was still painting, but in a different location. She appeared completely focused on her work and didn't notice them coming.

'Let's creep up and surprise her,' Mynors whispered. 'You go first, and put your hands over her eyes.'

'Let's sneak up and surprise her,' Mynors whispered. 'You go first and cover her eyes.'

'Oh!' exclaimed Beatrice, blindfolded; 'how horrid you are, Henry! I know who it is—I know who it is.'

'Oh!' exclaimed Beatrice, blindfolded; 'how awful you are, Henry! I know who it is—I know who it is.'

'You just don't, then,' said Henry, now in front of her. Anna removed her hands.

'You just don't, then,' Henry said, now standing in front of her. Anna took her hands away.

'Well, you told her to do it, I'm sure of that. And I was getting on so splendidly! I shan't do another stroke now.'

'Well, you told her to do it, I'm sure of that. And I was doing so well! I won't do another thing now.'

'That's right,' said Henry. 'You've wasted quite enough time as it is.'

'That's right,' Henry said. 'You've already wasted more than enough time.'

Beatrice pouted. She was evidently annoyed with both of them. She looked from one to the other, jealous of their mutual understanding and agreement. Mr. and Mrs. Sutton issued from the house, and the five stood chatting till tea was ready; but the shadow remained on Beatrice's face. Mynors made several attempts to laugh it away, and at dusk these two went for a stroll to Port St. Mary. They returned in a state of deep intimacy. During supper Beatrice was consciously and elaborately angelic, and there was that in her voice and eyes, when sometimes she addressed Mynors, which almost persuaded Anna that he might once have loved his cousin. At night, in the bedroom, Anna imagined that she could detect in Beatrice's attitude the least shade of condescension. She felt hurt, and despised herself for feeling hurt.

Beatrice sulked. She was clearly annoyed with both of them. She glanced back and forth between them, envious of their shared understanding and agreement. Mr. and Mrs. Sutton came out of the house, and the five of them chatted until tea was ready; but the frown stayed on Beatrice's face. Mynors tried several times to joke around and lighten the mood, and as evening fell, the two of them took a walk to Port St. Mary. They returned feeling very close to each other. During dinner, Beatrice acted deliberately sweet, and there was something in her voice and eyes when she sometimes spoke to Mynors that nearly made Anna believe he might have once had feelings for his cousin. Later that night in the bedroom, Anna thought she sensed a hint of condescension in Beatrice's attitude. She felt hurt and then despised herself for feeling that way.

So the days passed, without much variety, for the Suttons were not addicted to excursions. Anna was profoundly happy; she had forgotten care. She agreed to every suggestion for amusement; each moment had its pleasure, and this pleasure was quite independent of the thing done; it sprang from all activities and idlenesses. She was at special pains to fraternise with Mr. Sutton. He made an interesting companion, full of facts about strata, outcrops, and breaks, his sole weakness being the habit of quoting extremely sentimental scraps of verse when walking by the sea-shore. He frankly enjoyed Anna's attention to him, and took pride in her society. Mrs. Sutton, that simple heart, devoted herself to the attainment of absolute quiescence. She had come for a rest, and she achieved her purpose. Her kindliness became for the time passive instead of active. Beatrice was a changing quantity in the domestic equation. Plainly her parents had spoiled their only child, and she had frequent fits of petulance, particularly with Mynors; but her energy and spirits atoned well for these. As for Mynors, he behaved exactly as on the first Monday. He spent many hours alone with Anna—(Beatrice appeared to insist on leaving them together, even while showing a faint resentment at the loneliness thus entailed on herself)—and his attitude was such as Anna, ignorant of the ways of brothers, deemed a brother might adopt.

So the days went by without much change, since the Suttons weren’t big on outings. Anna felt incredibly happy; she had put her worries aside. She agreed to every suggestion for fun; every moment brought its own joy, which didn’t depend on what they were doing; it came from all their activities and leisure. She made an extra effort to connect with Mr. Sutton. He was an interesting companion, full of facts about rock layers, formations, and faults, with the only flaw being his tendency to quote overly sentimental lines of poetry while walking along the beach. He genuinely enjoyed Anna’s attention and took pride in her company. Mrs. Sutton, with her simple heart, focused on achieving complete relaxation. She came to rest, and she succeeded. Her kindness became more passive during this time. Beatrice was a variable in the family dynamic. It was obvious her parents had spoiled their only child, and she often had fits of annoyance, especially with Mynors; but her energy and spirit more than made up for it. As for Mynors, he acted exactly as he had on the first Monday. He spent many hours alone with Anna—(Beatrice seemed to insist on leaving them together, even while showing a hint of resentment about being left out)—and his demeanor was what Anna, unaware of how brothers typically behaved, thought a brother might display.

On the second Monday an incident occurred. In the afternoon Mr. Sutton had asked Beatrice to go with him to Port St. Mary, and she had refused on the plea that the light was of a suitable grey for painting. Mr. Sutton had slipped off alone, unseen by Anna and Henry, who had meant to accompany him in place of Beatrice. Before tea, while Anna, Beatrice and Henry were awaiting the meal in the parlour, Mynors referred to the matter.

On the second Monday, something happened. In the afternoon, Mr. Sutton asked Beatrice to go with him to Port St. Mary, but she refused, saying the light was perfect for painting. Mr. Sutton went off on his own, without Anna and Henry noticing, even though they planned to go with him instead of Beatrice. Before tea, while Anna, Beatrice, and Henry were waiting for the meal in the living room, Mynors brought up the topic.

'I hope you've done some decent work this afternoon,' he said to Beatrice.

'I hope you did some good work this afternoon,' he said to Beatrice.

'I haven't,' she replied shortly; 'I haven't done a stroke.'

'I haven't,' she replied flatly; 'I haven't done anything.'

'But you said you were going to paint hard!'

'But you said you were going to paint intensely!'

'Well, I didn't.'

'Well, I didn’t.'

'Then why couldn't you have gone to Port St. Mary, instead of breaking your fond father's heart by a refusal?'

'Then why couldn't you have gone to Port St. Mary instead of breaking your loving father's heart by saying no?'

'He didn't want me, really.'

'He didn't actually want me.'

Anna interjected: 'I think he did, Bee.'

Anna said, "I think he did, Bee."

'You know you're very self-willed, not to say selfish,' Mynors said.

'You know you're really stubborn, not to mention selfish,' Mynors said.

'No, I'm not,' Beatrice protested seriously. 'Am I, Anna?'

'No, I'm not,' Beatrice said firmly. 'Am I, Anna?'

'Well——' Anna tried to think of a diplomatic pronouncement. Beatrice took offence at the hesitation.

'Well——' Anna tried to come up with a diplomatic statement. Beatrice took offense at the delay.

'Oh! You two are bound to agree, of course. You're as thick as thieves.'

'Oh! You two are definitely in agreement, of course. You're as close as ever.'

She gazed steadily out of the window, and there was a silence. Mynors' lip curled.

She stared out of the window, and there was a quietness. Mynors' lip twisted.

'Oh! There's the loveliest yacht just coming into the bay,' Beatrice cried suddenly, in a tone of affected enthusiasm. 'I'm going out to sketch it.' She snatched up her hat and sketching-block, and ran hastily from the room. The other two saw her sitting on the grass, sharpening a pencil. The yacht, a large and luxurious craft, had evidently come to anchor for the night.

'Oh! There's the most beautiful yacht just coming into the bay,' Beatrice exclaimed suddenly, in a tone of exaggerated excitement. 'I'm going out to sketch it.' She grabbed her hat and sketchbook and rushed out of the room. The other two saw her sitting on the grass, sharpening a pencil. The yacht, a large and luxurious vessel, had clearly come to anchor for the night.

Mrs. Sutton arrived from her bedroom, and then Mr. Sutton also came in. Tea was served. Mynors called to Beatrice through the window and received no reply. Then Mrs. Sutton summoned her.

Mrs. Sutton came out of her bedroom, and then Mr. Sutton also walked in. Tea was served. Mynors called to Beatrice through the window but got no response. Then Mrs. Sutton called for her.

'Go on with your tea,' Beatrice shouted, without turning her head. 'Don't wait for me. I'm bound to finish this now.'

'Go ahead with your tea,' Beatrice shouted, not turning her head. 'Don't wait for me. I'm determined to finish this now.'

'Fetch her, Anna dear,' said Mrs. Sutton after another interval. Anna rose to obey, half-fearful.

'Go get her, Anna dear,' said Mrs. Sutton after a moment. Anna stood up to do as she was asked, feeling a bit scared.

'Aren't you coming in, Bee?' She stood by the sketcher's side, and observed nothing but a few meaningless lines on the block.

'Aren't you coming in, Bee?' She stood by the sketcher's side and looked at nothing but a few random lines on the block.

'Didn't you hear what I said to mother?'

'Didn't you hear what I told Mom?'

Anna retired in discomfiture.

Anna retired in discomfort.

Tea was finished. They went out, but kept at a discreet distance from the artist, who continued to use her pencil until dusk had fallen. Then they returned to the sitting-room, where a fire had been lighted, and Beatrice at length followed. As the others sat in a circle round the fire, Beatrice, who occupied the sofa in solitude, gave a shiver.

Tea was over. They went outside but stayed a respectful distance from the artist, who kept drawing until it got dark. Then they headed back to the living room, where a fire was already lit, and Beatrice eventually came in. While the others sat in a circle around the fire, Beatrice sat alone on the sofa and shivered.

'Beatrice, you've taken cold,' said her mother, sitting out there like that.'

'Beatrice, you’re cold out there,' her mother said.

'Oh, nonsense, mother—what a fidget you are!'

'Oh, come on, mom—you're such a worrywart!'

'A fidget I certainly am not, my darling, and that you know very well. As you've had no tea, you shall have some gruel at once, and go to bed and get warm.'

'I definitely am not a fidget, my darling, and you know that very well. Since you haven't had any tea, you should have some gruel right away, then go to bed and warm up.'

'Oh no, mother!' But Mrs. Sutton was resolved, and in half an hour she had taken Beatrice to bed and tucked her up.

'Oh no, Mom!' But Mrs. Sutton was determined, and in half an hour she had taken Beatrice to bed and tucked her in.

When Anna went to the bedroom Beatrice was awake.

When Anna went to the bedroom, Beatrice was awake.

'Can't you sleep?' she inquired kindly.

"Are you having trouble sleeping?" she asked gently.

'No,' said Beatrice, in a feeble voice, 'I'm restless, somehow.'

'No,' Beatrice said weakly, 'I feel restless, for some reason.'

'I wonder if it's influenza,' said Mrs. Sutton, on the following morning, when she learnt from Anna that Beatrice had had a bad night, and would take breakfast in bed. She carried the invalid's food upstairs herself. 'I hope it isn't influenza,' she said later. 'The girl is very hot.'

"I wonder if it's the flu," said Mrs. Sutton the next morning when she learned from Anna that Beatrice had a rough night and would be having breakfast in bed. She took the food up to the sick girl herself. "I hope it isn't the flu," she said later. "The girl is really hot."

'You haven't a clinical thermometer?' Mynors suggested.

'You don't have a clinical thermometer?' Mynors suggested.

'Go, see if you can buy one at the little chemist's,' she replied eagerly. In a few minutes he came back with the instrument.

'Go check if you can buy one at the little pharmacy,' she replied eagerly. In a few minutes, he came back with the device.

'She's at over a hundred,' Mrs. Sutton reported, having used the thermometer. 'What do you say, father? Shall we send for a doctor? I'm not so set up with doctors as a general rule,' she added, as if in defence, to Anna. 'I brought Beatrice through measles and scarlet fever without a doctor—we never used to think of having a doctor in those days for ordinary ailments; but influenza—that's different. Eh, I dread it; you never know how it will end. And poor Beatrice had such a bad attack last Martinmas.'

"She’s over a hundred," Mrs. Sutton said after checking the thermometer. "What do you think, Dad? Should we call a doctor? I’m not usually a fan of doctors," she added, almost in defense to Anna. "I managed to take Beatrice through measles and scarlet fever without one—we never thought to call a doctor back then for regular illnesses; but influenza—that's a whole different story. Ugh, I really worry about it; you never know how it’ll turn out. And poor Beatrice had such a terrible case last Christmas."

'If you like, I'll run for a doctor now,' said Mynors.

'If you want, I'll go get a doctor now,' said Mynors.

'Let be till to-morrow,' the Alderman decided. 'We'll see how she goes on. Happen it's nothing but a cold.'

'Let's wait until tomorrow,' the Alderman said. 'We'll see how she is. Maybe it's just a cold.'

'Yes,' assented Mrs. Sutton; 'it's no use crying out before you're hurt.'

'Yes,' agreed Mrs. Sutton; 'there's no point in complaining before you're actually hurt.'

Anna was struck by the placidity with which they covered their apprehension. Towards noon, Beatrice, who said that she felt better, insisted on rising. A fire was lighted at once in the parlour, and she sat in front of it till tea-time, when she was obliged to go to bed again. On the Wednesday morning, after a night which had been almost sleepless for both girls, her temperature stood at 103°, and Henry fetched the doctor, who pronounced it a case of influenza, severe, demanding very careful treatment. Instantly the normal movement of the household was changed. The sickroom became a mysterious centre round which everything revolved, and the parlour, without the alteration of a single chair, took on a deserted, forlorn appearance. Meals were eaten like the passover, with loins girded for any sudden summons. Mrs. Sutton and Anna, as nurses, grew important in the eyes of the men, who instinctively effaced themselves, existing only like messenger-boys whose business it is to await a call. Yet there was no alarm, flurry, nor excitement. In the evening the doctor returned. The patient's temperature had not fallen. It was part of the treatment that a medicine should be administered every two hours with absolute regularity, and Mrs. Sutton said that she should sit up through the night.

Anna was taken aback by how calmly they hid their worries. Around noon, Beatrice, claiming she felt better, insisted on getting up. A fire was lit in the living room immediately, and she sat in front of it until tea time, when she had to go back to bed. On Wednesday morning, after a night of almost no sleep for both girls, her temperature was at 103°, and Henry called the doctor, who diagnosed it as a severe case of influenza that required very careful treatment. Suddenly, the usual routine of the household was disrupted. The sickroom became a mysterious hub around which everything revolved, while the living room, without any changes to the arrangement of the chairs, looked empty and desolate. Meals were taken like a hurried passover, with everyone ready for a sudden call. Mrs. Sutton and Anna, acting as nurses, became important figures in the eyes of the men, who instinctively faded into the background, existing only to deliver messages. Yet there was no panic, fuss, or excitement. In the evening, the doctor returned. The patient’s temperature hadn’t dropped. Part of the treatment required medicine to be given every two hours without fail, and Mrs. Sutton said she would stay up through the night.

'I shall do that,' said Anna.

"I'll do that," Anna said.

'Nay, I won't hear of it,' Mrs. Sutton replied, smiling.

'Nah, I won't hear of it,' Mrs. Sutton replied, smiling.

But the three men (the doctor had remained to chat in the parlour), recognising Anna's capacity and reliability, and perhaps impressed also by her business-like appearance as, arrayed in a white apron, she stood with firm lips before them, gave a unanimous decision against Mrs. Sutton.

But the three men (the doctor had stayed to talk in the living room), recognizing Anna's competence and dependability, and maybe also influenced by her professional look as, in a white apron, she stood before them with determined lips, made a unanimous decision against Mrs. Sutton.

'We'st have you ill next, lass,' said the Alderman to his wife; 'and that'll never do.'

'We'll have you sick next, girl,' said the Alderman to his wife; 'and that won't do at all.'

'Well,' Mrs. Sutton surrendered, 'if I can leave her to anyone, it's Anna.'

'Well,' Mrs. Sutton gave in, 'if I can leave her to anyone, it's Anna.'

Mynors smiled appreciatively.

Mynors smiled in appreciation.

On the Thursday morning there was still no sign of recovery. The temperature was 104°, and the patient slightly delirious. Anna left the sickroom at eight o'clock to preside at breakfast, and Mrs. Sutton took her place.

On Thursday morning, there was still no sign of recovery. The temperature was 104°, and the patient was slightly delirious. Anna left the sickroom at eight o'clock to oversee breakfast, and Mrs. Sutton took her place.

'You look tired, my dear,' said the Alderman affectionately.

'You look tired, my dear,' said the Alderman warmly.

'I feel perfectly well,' she replied with cheerfulness.

"I feel great," she replied cheerfully.

'And you aren't afraid of catching it?' Mynors asked.

'Are you not afraid of catching it?' Mynors asked.

'Afraid?' she said; 'there's no fear of me catching it.'

'Afraid?' she said; 'there's no way I'm going to catch it.'

'How do you know?'

'How do you know that?'

'I know, that's all. I'm never ill.'

'I know, that's it. I'm never sick.'

'That's the right way to keep well,' the Alderman remarked.

'That's the best way to stay healthy,' the Alderman said.

The quiet admiration of these two men was very pleasant to her. She felt that she had established herself for ever in their esteem. After breakfast, in obedience to them, she slept for several hours on Mrs. Sutton's bed. In the afternoon Beatrice was worse. The doctor called, and found her temperature at 105°.

The quiet admiration from these two men was very nice for her. She felt like she had secured her place in their respect for good. After breakfast, she obeyed them and took a nap for several hours on Mrs. Sutton's bed. In the afternoon, Beatrice was feeling worse. The doctor came by and found her temperature at 105°.

'This can't last,' he remarked briefly.

'This can't go on,' he said shortly.

'Well, Doctor,' Mr. Sutton said, 'it's i' your hands.'

'Well, Doctor,' Mr. Sutton said, 'it's in your hands.'

'Nay,' Mrs. Sutton murmured with a smile, 'I've left it with God. It's with Him.'

'Nah,' Mrs. Sutton said with a smile, 'I've left it to God. It's in His hands.'

This was the first and only word of religion, except grace at table, that Anna heard from the Suttons during her stay in the Isle of Man. She had feared lest vocal piety might form a prominent feature of their daily life, but her fear had proved groundless. She, too, from reason rather than instinct, had tried to pray for Beatrice's recovery. She had, however, found much more satisfaction in the activity of nursing.

This was the first and only mention of religion, aside from saying grace at dinner, that Anna heard from the Suttons during her time on the Isle of Man. She had worried that they might be openly religious in their daily lives, but her worries turned out to be unfounded. She, too, had tried to pray for Beatrice's recovery, more out of reason than instinct. However, she found far more satisfaction in the act of nursing.

Again that night she sat up, and on the Friday morning Beatrice was better. At noon all immediate danger was past; the patient slept; her temperature was almost correct. Anna went to bed in the afternoon and slept soundly till supper-time, when she awoke very hungry. For the first time in three days Beatrice could be left alone. The other four had supper together, cheerful and relieved after the tension.

Again that night she stayed up, and by Friday morning, Beatrice was feeling better. By noon, all immediate danger had passed; the patient was asleep, and her temperature was almost normal. Anna went to bed in the afternoon and slept soundly until suppertime when she woke up feeling very hungry. For the first time in three days, Beatrice could be left alone. The other four had supper together, feeling cheerful and relieved after the tension.

'She'll be as right as a trivet in a few days,' said the Alderman.

'She'll be just fine in a few days,' said the Alderman.

'A few weeks,' said Mrs. Sutton.

'A few weeks,' said Mrs. Sutton.

'Of course,' said Mynors, 'you'll stay on here, now?'

'Of course,' Mynors said, 'you'll stick around here, right?'

'We shall stay until Beatrice is quite fit to travel,' Mr. Sutton answered. 'I might have to run over to th' Five Towns for a day or two middle of next week, but I can come back immediately.'

'We'll stay until Beatrice is fully well enough to travel,' Mr. Sutton replied. 'I might need to head over to the Five Towns for a day or two in the middle of next week, but I can return right away.'

'Well, I must go tomorrow,' Mynors sighed.

'Well, I have to leave tomorrow,' Mynors sighed.

'Surely you can stay over Sunday, Henry?'

'Surely you can stay over on Sunday, Henry?'

'No; I've no one to take my place at school.'

'No; I don't have anyone to take my place at school.'

'And I must go to-morrow, too,' said Anna suddenly.

'And I have to go tomorrow, too,' Anna said suddenly.

'Fiddle-de-dee, Anna!' the Alderman protested.

'Oh please, Anna!' the Alderman protested.

'I must,' she insisted. 'Father will expect me. You know I came for a fortnight. Besides, there's Agnes.'

'I have to,' she insisted. 'Dad will expect me. You know I came for two weeks. Plus, there's Agnes.'

'Agnes will be all right.'

'Agnes will be fine.'

'I must go.' They saw that she was fixed.

'I have to go.' They noticed that she seemed determined.

'Won't a short walk do you good?' Mynors suggested to her, with singular gravity, after supper. 'You've not been outside for two days.'

'Wouldn't a short walk be good for you?' Mynors suggested to her, with serious intent, after dinner. 'You haven't been outside for two days.'

She looked inquiringly at Mrs. Sutton.

She looked questioningly at Mrs. Sutton.

'Yes, take her, Henry; she'll sleep better for it. Eh, Anna, but it's a shame to send you home with those rings round your eyes.'

'Yeah, take her, Henry; she'll sleep better because of it. Hey, Anna, but it's a pity to send you home with those dark circles under your eyes.'

She went upstairs for a jacket. Beatrice was awake. 'Anna,' she exclaimed in a weak voice, without any preface, 'I was awfully silly and cross the other afternoon, before all this business. Just now, when you came into the room, I was feeling quite ashamed.'

She went upstairs to grab a jacket. Beatrice was awake. "Anna," she said in a weak voice, without any introduction, "I was really silly and irritable the other afternoon, before all this happened. Just now, when you came into the room, I felt pretty ashamed."

'Oh! Bee!' she answered, bending over her, 'what nonsense! Now go off to sleep at once.' She was very happy. Beatrice, victim of a temperament which had the childishness and the impulsiveness of the artist without his higher and sterner traits, sank back in facile content.

'Oh! Bee!' she replied, leaning over her, 'what nonsense! Now go to sleep right away.' She was really happy. Beatrice, who had the childishness and impulsiveness of an artist without any of his more serious qualities, relaxed back in easy satisfaction.

The night was still and very dark. When Anna and Mynors got outside they could distinguish neither the sky nor the sea; but the faint, restless murmur of the sea came up the cliffs. Only the lights of the houses disclosed the direction of the road.

The night was calm and pitch-black. When Anna and Mynors stepped outside, they couldn't make out the sky or the sea; only the soft, restless sound of the waves echoed up the cliffs. The lights from the houses were the only indication of the path ahead.

'Suppose we go down to the jetty, and then along as far as the breakwater?' he said, and she concurred. 'Won't you take my muffler—again?' he added, pulling this ever-present article from his pocket.

'How about we head down to the jetty and then walk along to the breakwater?' he suggested, and she agreed. 'Will you take my scarf—again?' he added, pulling the always-present item from his pocket.

'No, thanks,' she said, almost coldly, 'it's really quite warm.' She regarded the offer of the muffler as an indiscretion—his sole indiscretion during their acquaintance. As they walked down the hill to the shore she though how Beatrice's illness had sharply interrupted their relations. If she had come to the Isle of Man with a vague idea that he would possibly propose to her, the expectation was disappointed; but she felt no disappointment. She felt that events had lifted her to a higher plane than that of love-making. She was filled with the proud satisfaction of a duty accomplished. She did not seek to minimise to herself the fact that she had been of real value to her friends in the last few days, had probably saved Mrs. Sutton from illness, had certainly laid them all under an obligation. Their gratitude, unexpressed, but patent on each face, gave her infinite pleasure. She had won their respect by the manner in which she had risen to the height of an emergency that demanded more than devotion. She had proved, not merely to them but to herself, that she could be calm under stress, and could exert moral force when occasion needed. Such were the joyous and exultant reflections which passed through her brain—unnaturally active in the factitious wakefulness caused by excessive fatigue. She was in an extremely nervous and excitable condition—and never guessed it, fancying indeed that her emotions were exceptionally tranquil that night. She had not begun to realise the crisis through which she had just lived.

'No, thanks,' she said, almost coldly, 'it's actually quite warm.' She viewed the offer of the scarf as a bit inappropriate—his only misstep during their time together. As they walked down the hill to the shore, she thought about how Beatrice's illness had abruptly changed their relationship. If she had come to the Isle of Man with a vague idea that he might propose to her, that expectation was dashed; yet she felt no disappointment. She sensed that the situation had elevated her beyond the realm of romance. She was filled with the proud satisfaction of duty fulfilled. She didn't try to downplay the fact that she had genuinely helped her friends in the past few days, possibly saved Mrs. Sutton from getting sick, and had definitely put them all in her debt. Their gratitude, though unspoken, was evident on each face, giving her immense pleasure. She had earned their respect by the way she rose to an emergency that required more than just love. She had shown not only them but herself that she could stay calm under pressure and could exert moral strength when it was necessary. Such were the joyful and triumphant thoughts that raced through her mind—unnaturally active from the artificial wakefulness brought on by extreme fatigue. She was in a highly nervous and excitable state—and never realized it, believing instead that her emotions were particularly calm that night. She hadn’t yet begun to understand the crisis she had just gone through.

The uneven road to the ruined breakwater was quite deserted. Having reached the limit of the path, they stood side by side, solitary, silent, gazing at the black and gently heaving surface of the sea. The eye was foiled by the intense gloom; the ear could make nothing of the strange night-noises of the bay and the ocean beyond; but the imagination was stimulated by the appeal of all this mystery and darkness. Never had the water seemed so wonderful, terrible, and austere.

The bumpy road to the ruined breakwater was pretty empty. Once they got to the end of the path, they stood next to each other, alone and quiet, looking at the dark, gently rolling surface of the sea. The darkness made it hard to see; the sounds of the bay and the ocean beyond were confusing; but all this mystery and darkness sparked their imagination. The water had never looked so amazing, frightening, and imposing.

'We are going away to-morrow,' he said at length.

'We're leaving tomorrow,' he said after a pause.

Anna started and shook with apprehension at the tremor in his voice. She had read that a woman was always well warned by her instincts when a man meant to propose to her. But here was the proposal imminent, and she had not suspected. In a flash of insight she perceived that the very event which had separated them for three days had also impelled the lover forward in his course. It was the thought of her vigils, her fortitude, her compassion, that had fanned the flame. She was not surprised, only made uncomfortable, when he took her hand.

Anna felt a shiver of anxiety at the tremor in his voice. She had heard that a woman instinctively knows when a man is about to propose. But now that the proposal was actually happening, she hadn’t seen it coming. In an instant, she realized that the very event that had kept them apart for three days had also pushed him to take this step. It was her late-night waits, her strength, her kindness, that had fueled his desire. She wasn’t surprised, just uneasy, when he took her hand.

'Anna,' he said, 'it's no use making a long story of it. I'm tremendously in love with you; you know I am.'

'Anna,' he said, 'there's no point in dragging this out. I'm incredibly in love with you; you know that, right?'

He stepped back, still holding her hand. She could say nothing.

He stepped back, still holding her hand. She couldn't say anything.

'Well?' he ventured. 'Didn't you know?'

'Well?' he asked. 'Didn't you know?'

'I thought—I thought,' she murmured stupidly, 'I thought you liked me.'

'I thought—I thought,' she said, sounding a bit silly, 'I thought you liked me.'

'I can't tell you how I admire you. I'm not going to praise you to your face, but I simply never met anyone like you. From the very first moment I saw you, it was the same. It's something in your face, Anna—— Anna, will you be my wife?'

'I can’t express how much I admire you. I’m not going to flatter you directly, but I’ve never met anyone like you. From the very first moment I saw you, it was the same. There’s something in your face, Anna—— Anna, will you marry me?'

The actual question was put in a precise, polite, somewhat conventional tone. To Anna he was never more himself than at that moment.

The question was asked in a clear, polite, and somewhat formal way. In that moment, Anna saw him at his truest self.

She could not speak; she could not analyse her feelings; she could not even think. She was adrift. At last she stammered: 'We've only known each other——'

She couldn't speak; she couldn't sort out her feelings; she couldn't even think. She felt lost. Finally, she stammered, "We've only known each other——"

'Oh, dear,' he exclaimed masterfully, 'what does that matter? If it had been a dozen years instead of one, that would have made no difference.' She drew her hand timidly away, but he took it again. She felt that he dominated her and would decide for her. 'Say yes.'

'Oh, dear,' he exclaimed confidently, 'what difference does that make? If it had been a dozen years instead of one, it wouldn't matter at all.' She pulled her hand back hesitantly, but he grabbed it again. She sensed that he was in control and would make the decision for her. 'Just say yes.'

'Yes,' she said.

'Yeah,' she said.

She saw pictures of her career as his wife, and resolved that one of the first acts of her freedom should be to release Agnes from the more ignominious of her father's tyrannies.

She envisioned her life as his wife and decided that one of the first things she would do with her newfound freedom would be to free Agnes from the more humiliating of her father's oppressive ways.

They walked home almost in silence. She was engaged, then. Yet she experienced no new sensation. She felt as she had felt on the way down, except that she was sorely perturbed. There was no ineffable rapture, no ecstatic bliss. Suddenly the prospect of happiness swept over her like a flood.

They walked home mostly in silence. She was engaged, then. Yet, she didn't feel anything new. She felt the same way she did on the way down, except that she was very troubled. There was no indescribable joy, no ecstatic happiness. Suddenly, the idea of happiness washed over her like a wave.

At the gate she wished to make a request to him, but hesitated, because she could not bring herself to use his Christian name. It was proper for her to use his Christian name, however, and she would do so, or perish.

At the gate, she wanted to ask him something, but she hesitated because she couldn't bring herself to use his first name. It was appropriate for her to use his first name, though, and she would do it, or she would die trying.

'Henry,' she said, 'don't tell anyone here.' He merely kissed her once more. She went straight upstairs.

'Henry,' she said, 'don’t tell anyone here.' He just kissed her one more time. She went straight upstairs.




CHAPTER XI

THE DOWNFALL

In order to catch the Liverpool steamer at Douglas it was necessary to leave Port Erin at half-past six in the morning. The freshness of the morning, and the smiles of the Alderman and his wife as they waved God-speed from the doorstep, filled Anna with a serene content which she certainly had not felt during the wakeful night. She forgot, then, the hours passed with her conscience in realising how serious and solemn a thing was this engagement, made in an instant on the previous evening. All that remained in her mind, as she and Henry walked quickly down the road, was the tonic sensation of high resolves to be a worthy wife. The duties, rather than the joys, of her condition, had lain nearest her heart until that moment of setting out, giving her an anxious and almost worried mien which at breakfast neither Henry nor the Suttons could quite understand. But now the idea of duty ceased for a time to be paramount, and she loosed herself to the pleasures of the day in store. The harbour was full of low wandering mists, through which the brown sails of the fishing-smacks played at hide-and-seek. High above them the round forms of immense clouds were still carrying the colours of sunrise. The gentle salt wind on the cheek was like the touch of a life-giver. It was impossible, on such a morning, not to exult in life, not to laugh childishly from irrational glee, not to dismiss the memory of grief and the apprehension of grief as morbid hallucinations. Mynor's face expressed the double happiness of present and anticipated pleasure. He had once again succeeded, he who had never failed; and the voyage back to England was for him a triumphal progress. Anna responded eagerly to his mood. The day was an ecstasy, a bright expanse unstained. To Anna in particular it was a unique day, marking the apogee of her existence. In the years that followed she could always return to it and say to herself: 'That day I was happy, foolishly, ignorantly, but utterly. And all that I have since learnt cannot alter it—I was happy.'

To catch the Liverpool steamer at Douglas, they had to leave Port Erin at 6:30 in the morning. The fresh morning air, along with the smiles of the Alderman and his wife as they waved goodbye from the doorstep, filled Anna with a calm happiness she hadn't felt during her restless night. She momentarily forgot the hours spent worrying about how serious and significant this engagement was, decided on a whim the night before. All that occupied her mind as she and Henry hurried down the road was the uplifting resolve to be a good wife. Up until that moment of departure, the responsibilities of her new role weighed heavily on her, giving her an anxious and almost concerned look that neither Henry nor the Suttons could quite place during breakfast. But now, the idea of duty faded for a while, and she allowed herself to embrace the joys of the day ahead. The harbor was shrouded in soft, wandering mists, through which the brown sails of the fishing boats were playing hide-and-seek. Above them, the massive clouds still carried the colors of the sunrise. The gentle salt wind against her cheek felt like the touch of a life-giver. On such a morning, it was impossible not to feel joyful, to laugh childishly with irrational happiness, and to brush aside memories of sorrow and worries about the future as mere illusions. Mynor's face reflected the combined joy of both present and expected pleasures. He had once again succeeded where he never failed, and for him, the journey back to England was a triumphant celebration. Anna eagerly matched his mood. The day felt like ecstasy, a bright, unblemished expanse. For Anna, it was a special day, marking the peak of her existence. In the years to come, she could always look back and think to herself, "That day I was happy—foolishly, unknowing, but completely. And everything I've learned since can't change that—I was happy."

When they reached Shawport Station a cab was waiting for Anna. Unknown to her, Henry had ordered it by telegraph. This considerateness was of a piece, she thought, with his masterly conduct of the entire journey—on the steamer, at Liverpool, in the train; nothing that an experienced traveller could devise had been lacking to her comfort. She got into the cab alone, while Mynors, followed by a boy and his bag, walked to his rooms in Mount Street. It had been arranged, at Anna's wish, that he should not appear at Manor Terrace till supper-time. Ephraim opened for her the door of her home. It seemed to her that he was pleased.

When they arrived at Shawport Station, a cab was waiting for Anna. Unbeknownst to her, Henry had arranged it by telegraph. She thought this thoughtfulness matched his expert handling of the entire trip—on the steamer, in Liverpool, and on the train; nothing an experienced traveler could think of was missing from her comfort. She got into the cab by herself, while Mynors, followed by a boy and his bag, walked to his place on Mount Street. It had been decided, at Anna's request, that he wouldn’t show up at Manor Terrace until dinner time. Ephraim opened the door to her home. It seemed to her that he was pleased.

'Well, father, here I am again, you see.'

'Well, Dad, here I am again, you see.'

'Ay, lass.' They shook hands, and she indicated to the cabman where to deposit her tin-box. She was glad and relieved to be back. Nothing had changed, except herself, and this absolute sameness was at once pleasant and pathetic to her.

'Ay, girl.' They shook hands, and she pointed to the cab driver where to drop off her metal box. She felt happy and relieved to be back. Nothing had changed, except for her, and this complete sameness was both comforting and sad to her.

'Where's Agnes?' she asked, smiling at her father. In the glow of arrival she had a vague notion that her relations with him had been permanently softened by absence.

'Where's Agnes?' she asked, smiling at her father. In the bright light of their reunion, she had a feeling that her relationship with him had been permanently warmed by their time apart.

'I see thou's gotten into th' habit o' flitting about in cabs,' he said, without answering her question.

"I see you've gotten into the habit of getting around in cabs," he said, without answering her question.

'Well, father,' she said, smiling yet, 'there was the box. I couldn't carry the box.'

'Well, Dad,' she said, still smiling, 'there was the box. I couldn't carry the box.'

'I reckon thou couldst ha' hired a lad to carry it for sixpence.'

'I think you could have hired a kid to carry it for six pence.'

She did not reply. The cabman had gone to his vehicle.

She didn't respond. The taxi driver had gone to his vehicle.

'Art'na going to pay th' cabby?'

'Are you going to pay the cab driver?'

'I've paid him, father.'

"I've paid him, Dad."

'How much?'

'How much is it?'

She paused. 'Eighteen-pence, father.' It was a lie; she had paid two shillings.

She paused. 'Eighteen pence, Dad.' It was a lie; she had paid two shillings.

She went eagerly into the kitchen, and then into the parlour, where tea was set for one. Agnes was not there. 'Her's upstairs,' Ephraim said, meeting Anna as she came into the lobby again. She ran softly upstairs, and into the bedroom. Agnes was replacing ornaments on the mantelpiece with mathematical exactitude; under her arm was a duster. The child turned, startled, and gave a little shriek.

She eagerly walked into the kitchen, and then into the living room, where tea was prepared for one. Agnes wasn’t there. “She’s upstairs,” Ephraim said, encountering Anna as she returned to the hallway. She quietly rushed upstairs and into the bedroom. Agnes was rearranging decorative items on the mantelpiece with precise care; a duster was tucked under her arm. The child turned, surprised, and let out a small shriek.

'Eh, I didn't know you'd come. How early you are!'

'Eh, I didn’t know you’d be here. You’re so early!'

They rushed towards each other, embraced, and kissed. Anna was overcome by the pathos of her sister's loneliness in that grim house for fourteen days, while she, the elder, had been absorbed in selfish gaiety. The pale face, large, melancholy eyes, and long, thin arms, were a silent accusation. She wondered that she could ever have brought herself to leave Agnes even for a day. Sitting down on the bed, she drew the child on her knee in a fury of love, and kissed her again, weeping. Agnes cried too, for sympathy.

They ran toward each other, hugged, and kissed. Anna was overwhelmed by the sadness of her sister's loneliness in that bleak house for fourteen days, while she, the older sister, had been caught up in her own selfish happiness. The pale face, big, sad eyes, and long, thin arms seemed to silently blame her. She was shocked that she had ever been able to leave Agnes, even for a day. Sitting on the bed, she pulled the child onto her lap in a rush of love and kissed her again, crying. Agnes cried too, out of sympathy.

'Oh, my dear, dear Anna, I'm so glad you've come back!' She dried her eyes, and in quite a different tone of voice asked: 'Has Mr. Mynors proposed to you?'

'Oh, my dear, dear Anna, I'm so happy you're back!' She wiped her eyes and, in a much different tone, asked: 'Has Mr. Mynors proposed to you?'

Anna could not avoid a blush at this simple and astounding query. She said: 'Yes.' It was the one word of which she was capable, under the circumstances. That was not the moment to tax Agnes with too much precocity and abruptness.

Anna couldn't help but blush at this simple yet surprising question. She replied, "Yes." It was the only word she could manage in that moment. It wasn't the right time to challenge Agnes with too much impatience or bluntness.

'You're engaged, then? Oh, Anna, does it feel nice? It must. I knew you would be!'

'So, you’re engaged now? Oh, Anna, how does it feel? It must be amazing. I knew you would be!'

'How did you know, Agnes?'

'How did you know, Ag?'

'I mean I knew he would ask you, some time. All the girls at school knew too.'

'I knew he would ask you eventually. All the girls at school knew that too.'

'I hope you didn't talk about it,' said the elder sister.

"I hope you didn't say anything about it," said the older sister.

'Oh, no! But they did; they were always talking about it.'

'Oh, no! But they really did; they were always discussing it.'

'You never told me that.'

'You never mentioned that.'

'I—I didn't like to. Anna, shall I have to call him Henry now?'

'I—I didn't want to. Anna, do I have to call him Henry now?'

'Yes, of course. When we're married he will be your brother-in-law.'

'Yes, of course. When we get married, he will be your brother-in-law.'

'Shall you be married soon, Anna?'

'Are you getting married soon, Anna?'

'Not for a very long time.'

'Not in a while.'

'When you are—shall I keep house alone? I can, you know—— I shall never dare to call him Henry. But he's awfully nice; isn't he, Anna? Yes, when you are married, I shall keep house here, but I shall come to see you every day. Father will have to let me do that. Does father know you're engaged?'

'So, will I be living on my own? I can manage that, you know— I'll never dare to call him Henry. But he's really great; don’t you think so, Anna? Yes, when you’re married, I'll take care of the house here, but I’ll visit you every day. Dad will have to let me do that. Does Dad know you’re engaged?'

'Not yet. And you mustn't say anything. Henry is coming for supper. And then father will be told.'

'Not yet. And you can’t say anything. Henry is coming for dinner. And then Dad will be told.'

'Did he kiss you, Anna?'

"Did he kiss you, Anna?"

'Who—father?'

'Who—Dad?'

'No, silly! Henry, of course—I mean when he'd asked you?'

'No, silly! Henry, of course—I mean when he asked you?'

'I think you are asking all the questions. Suppose I ask you some now. How have you managed with father? Has he been nice?'

'I think you’re the one asking all the questions. Let me ask you some now. How have you been getting along with Dad? Has he been nice?'

'Some days—yes,' said Agnes, after thinking a moment. 'We have had some new cups and saucers up from Mr. Mynors works. And father has swept the kitchen chimney. And, oh Anna! I asked him to-day if I'd kept house well, and he said "Pretty well," and he gave me a penny. Look! It's the first money I've ever had, you know. I wanted you at nights, Anna—and all the time, too. I've been frightfully busy. I cleaned silvers all afternoon. Anna, I have tried—— And I've got some tea for you. I'll go down and make it. Now you mustn't come into the kitchen. I'll bring it to you in the parlour.'

'Some days—yeah,' said Agnes, after thinking for a moment. 'We’ve gotten some new cups and saucers from Mr. Mynors’ shop. And Dad has swept the kitchen chimney. Oh, Anna! I asked him today if I’ve been keeping the house well, and he said "Pretty well," and gave me a penny. Look! It’s the first money I’ve ever had, you know. I wanted you at nights, Anna—and all the time, too. I’ve been super busy. I cleaned the silverware all afternoon. Anna, I have tried—— And I’ve got some tea for you. I’ll go down and make it. Now you mustn’t come into the kitchen. I’ll bring it to you in the parlor.'

'I had my tea at Crewe,' Anna was about to say, but refrained, in due course drinking the cup prepared by Agnes. She felt passionately sorry for Agnes, too young to feel the shadow which overhung her future. Anna would marry into freedom, but Agnes would remain the serf. Would Agnes marry? Could she? Would her father allow it? Anna had noticed that in families the youngest, petted in childhood, was often sacrificed in maturity. It was the last maid who must keep her maidenhood, and, vicariously filial, pay out of her own life the debt of all the rest.

'I had my tea at Crewe,' Anna was about to say, but stopped herself, eventually drinking the cup made by Agnes. She felt deeply sorry for Agnes, too young to sense the shadow hanging over her future. Anna would marry into freedom, but Agnes would stay trapped. Would Agnes marry? Could she? Would her father even allow it? Anna had noticed that in families, the youngest, often spoiled in childhood, was frequently sacrificed in adulthood. It was the last daughter who had to maintain her virginity and, in a way, repay the debt of the others through her own life.

'Mr. Mynors is coming up for supper to-night. He wants to see you;' Anna said to her father, as calmly as she could. The miser grunted. But at eight o'clock, the hour immutably fixed for supper, Henry had not arrived. The meal proceeded, of course, without him. To Anna his absence was unaccountable and disturbing, for none could be more punctilious than he in the matter of appointments. She expected him every moment, but he did not appear. Agnes, filled full of the great secret confided to her, was more openly impatient than her sister. Neither of them could talk, and a heavy silence fell upon the family group, a silence which her father, on that particular evening of Anna's return, resented.

'Mr. Mynors is coming over for dinner tonight. He wants to see you,' Anna said to her father, trying to stay calm. The miser grunted. But at eight o'clock, the time set for dinner, Henry hadn’t shown up. The meal continued, of course, without him. For Anna, his absence was puzzling and unsettling, as no one was more punctual than he when it came to plans. She expected him to arrive at any moment, but he didn’t. Agnes, keeping the big secret to herself, was more openly frustrated than her sister. Neither of them could speak, and a heavy silence settled over the family, a silence that her father resented on that particular evening of Anna's return.

'You dunna' tell us much,' he remarked, when the supper was finished.

'You don't tell us much,' he said, when dinner was over.

She felt that the complaint was a just one. Even before supper, when nothing had occurred to preoccupy her, she had spoken little. There had seemed so much to tell—at Port Erin, and now there seemed nothing to tell. She ventured into a flaccid, perfunctory account of Beatrice's illness, of the fishing, of the unfinished houses which had caught the fancy of Mr. Sutton; she said the sea had been smooth, that they had had something to eat at Liverpool, that the train for Crewe was very prompt; and then she could think of no more. Silence fell again. The supper-things were cleared away and washed up. At a quarter-past nine, Agnes, vainly begging permission to stay up in order to see Mr. Mynors, was sent to bed, only partially comforted by a clothes-brush, long desired, which Anna had brought for her as a present from the Isle of Man.

She thought the complaint was valid. Even before dinner, when nothing had distracted her, she had spoken very little. There had seemed like so much to share—at Port Erin, and now there was nothing to share. She managed a dull, half-hearted update about Beatrice's illness, the fishing, and the unfinished houses that had intrigued Mr. Sutton; she mentioned that the sea had been calm, that they had grabbed a bite to eat in Liverpool, and that the train to Crewe was on time; and then she couldn't think of anything else. Silence fell again. The dinner things were cleared away and cleaned up. At a quarter past nine, Agnes, desperately asking to stay up to see Mr. Mynors, was sent to bed, only slightly comforted by a long-desired clothes-brush that Anna had brought her as a gift from the Isle of Man.

'Shall you tell father yourself, now Henry hasn't come?' the child asked Anna, who had gone upstairs to unpack her box.

"Are you going to tell Dad yourself, since Henry hasn't shown up?" the child asked Anna, who had gone upstairs to unpack her box.

'Yes,' said Anna, briefly.

"Yeah," Anna said, briefly.

'I wonder what he'll say,' Agnes reflected, with that habit, always annoying to Anna, of meeting trouble half-way.

'I wonder what he'll say,' Agnes thought, with that annoying habit, always frustrating to Anna, of anticipating trouble before it even arrived.

At a quarter to ten Anna ceased to expect Mynors, and finally braced herself to the ordeal of a solemn interview with her father, well knowing that she dared not leave him any longer in ignorance of her engagement. Already the old man was locking and bolting the door; he had wound up the kitchen clock. When he came back to the parlour to extinguish the gas she was standing by the mantelpiece.

At a quarter to ten, Anna stopped expecting Mynors and finally prepared herself for the difficult conversation with her father, fully aware that she could no longer keep him in the dark about her engagement. The old man was already locking and bolting the door; he had wound the kitchen clock. When he returned to the living room to turn off the gas, she was standing by the mantelpiece.

'Father,' she began, 'I've something I must tell you.'

'Dad,' she started, 'I have something I need to tell you.'

'Eh, what's that ye say?' his hand was on the gas-tap. He dropped it, examining her face curiously.

"Eh, what did you say?" he had his hand on the gas tap. He let it go, looking at her face with curiosity.

'Mr. Mynors has asked me to marry him; he asked me last night. We settled he should come up to-night to see you—I can't think why he hasn't. It must be something very unexpected and important, or he'd have come.' She trembled, her heart beat violently; but the words were out, and she thanked God.

'Mr. Mynors proposed to me last night. We agreed that he would come up tonight to see you—I can't imagine why he hasn't. It must be something really unexpected and important, or he would have come.' She trembled, her heart racing; but the words were out, and she thanked God.

'Asked ye to marry him, did he?' The miser gazed at her quizzically out of his small blue eyes.

'Did he ask you to marry him?' The miser looked at her curiously with his small blue eyes.

'Yes, father.'

'Yeah, Dad.'

'And what didst say?'

'And what did you say?'

'I said I would.'

"I said I would."

'Oh! Thou saidst thou wouldst! I reckon it was for thatten as thou must go gadding off to seaside, eh?'

'Oh! You said you would! I guess that’s why you have to go wandering off to the seaside, huh?'

'Father, I never dreamt of such a thing when Suttons asked me to go. I do wish Henry'—the cost of that Christian name!—'had come. He quite meant to come to-night.' She could not help insisting on the propriety of Henry's intentions.

'Father, I never imagined anything like this when the Suttons invited me to go. I really wish Henry—what a price to pay for that name!—had come. He really intended to come tonight.' She couldn't help but emphasize how proper Henry's intentions were.

'Then I am for be consulted, eh?'

'So, you want me to be consulted, huh?'

'Of course, father.'

'Of course, Dad.'

'Ye've soon made it up, between ye.'

'You've sorted it out quickly, between you.'

His tone was, at the best, brusque; but she breathed more easily, divining instantly from his manner that he meant to offer no violent objection to the engagement. She knew that only tact was needed now. The miser had, indeed, foreseen the possibility of this marriage for months past, and had long since decided in his own mind that Henry would make a satisfactory son-in-law. Ephraim had no social ambitions—with all his meanness, he was above them; he had nothing but contempt for rank, style, luxury, and 'the theory of what it is to be a lady and a gentleman.' Yet, by a curious contradiction, Henry's smartness of appearance—the smartness of an unrivalled commercial traveller—pleased him. He saw in Henry a young and sedate man of remarkable shrewdness, a man who had saved money, had made money for others, and was now making it for himself; a man who could be trusted absolutely to perform that feat of 'getting on'; a 'safe' and profoundly respectable man, at the same time audacious and imperturbable. He was well aware that Henry had really fallen in love with Anna, but nothing would have convinced him that Anna's money was not the primal cause of Henry's genuine passion for Anna's self.

His tone was, at best, blunt; but she relaxed a bit, instantly picking up from his demeanor that he didn't intend to strongly oppose the engagement. She understood that all it took now was some tact. The miser had, in fact, anticipated the chance of this marriage for months and had already concluded that Henry would be a decent son-in-law. Ephraim had no social aspirations—despite his stinginess, he was above that; he held nothing but disdain for status, style, luxury, and 'the notion of what it means to be a lady or gentleman.' Yet, in a strange twist, Henry's polished appearance—characteristic of an exceptional salesman—appealed to him. He saw Henry as a young, composed man with impressive shrewdness, someone who had saved money, made money for others, and was now earning it for himself; a person who could be completely trusted to succeed; a 'safe' and highly respectable man, yet bold and unflappable. He was well aware that Henry had genuinely fallen in love with Anna, but nothing would convince him that Anna's wealth wasn't the main reason for Henry's true affection for her.

'You like Henry, don't you, father?' Anna said. It was a failure in the desired tact, for Ephraim had never been known to admit that he liked anyone or anything. Such natures are capable of nothing more positive than toleration.

'You like Henry, don't you, Dad?' Anna said. It missed the mark in the subtlety she aimed for, because Ephraim had never been one to admit that he liked anyone or anything. People like him are only capable of going beyond indifference to mere tolerance.

'He's a hard-headed chap, and he knows the value o' money. Ay! that he does; he knows which side his bread's buttered on.' A sinister emphasis marked the last sentence.

'He's a stubborn guy, and he understands the value of money. Yeah! He really does; he knows which way his bread's buttered.' A dark emphasis highlighted the last sentence.

Instead of remaining silent, Anna, in her nervousness, committed another imprudence. 'What do you mean, father?' she asked, pretending that she thought it impossible he could mean what he obviously did mean.

Instead of keeping quiet, Anna, feeling nervous, made another mistake. “What do you mean, Dad?” she asked, pretending that she thought it was impossible for him to mean what he clearly did.

'Thou knows what I'm at, lass. Dost think he isna' marrying thee for thy brass? Dost think as he canna' make a fine guess what thou'rt worth? But that wunna' bother thee as long as thou'st hooked a good-looking chap.'

'You know what I'm saying, girl. Do you really think he's not marrying you for your money? Do you think he can't figure out what you're worth? But that won't bother you as long as you've landed a good-looking guy.'

'Father!'

'Dad!'

'Ay! thou mayst bridle; but it's true. Dunna' tell me.'

'Ay! You might hold back, but it's true. Don't tell me.'

Securely conscious of the perfect purity of Mynors' affection, she was not in the least hurt. She even thought that her father's attitude was not quite sincere, an attitude partially due to mere wilful churlishness. 'Henry has never even mentioned money to me,' she said mildly.

Securely aware of the genuine purity of Mynors' love, she wasn't hurt at all. She even thought her father's attitude was somewhat insincere, partly because of his deliberate grumpiness. "Henry has never even brought up money with me," she said calmly.

'Happen not; he isna' such a fool as that.' He paused, and continued: 'Thou'rt free to wed, for me. Lasses will do it, I reckon, and thee among th' rest.' She smiled, and on that smile he suddenly turned out the gas. Anna was glad that the colloquy had ended so well. Congratulations, endearments, loving regard for her welfare: she had not expected these things, and was in no wise grieved by their absence. Groping her way towards the lobby, she considered herself lucky, and only wished that nothing had happened to keep Mynors away. She wanted to tell him at once that her father had proved tractable.

'Happen not; he’s not that foolish.' He paused and continued: 'You’re free to marry, as far as I’m concerned. Girls will do it, I guess, and you’re one of them.' She smiled, and at that smile, he suddenly turned off the gas. Anna was glad that the conversation had ended so positively. Congratulations, sweet words, caring for her well-being: she hadn’t expected any of this and wasn’t at all upset by their absence. Making her way towards the lobby, she felt fortunate and only hoped that nothing had happened to keep Mynors away. She wanted to tell him right away that her father had been agreeable.


The next morning, Tellwright, whose attendance at chapel was losing the strictness of its old regularity, announced that he should stay at home. Sunday's dinner was to be a cold repast, and so Anna and Agnes went to chapel. Anna's thoughts were wholly occupied with the prospect of seeing Mynors, and hearing the explanation of his absence on Saturday night.

The next morning, Tellwright, whose attendance at chapel was becoming less consistent than before, announced that he would stay home. Sunday’s dinner was going to be cold, so Anna and Agnes went to chapel. Anna's mind was completely focused on the idea of seeing Mynors and hearing why he had been absent on Saturday night.

'There he is!' Agnes exclaimed loudly, as they were approaching the chapel.

'There he is!' Agnes shouted excitedly as they got closer to the chapel.

'Agnes,' said Anna, 'when will you learn to behave in the street?'

'Agnes,' Anna said, 'when are you going to learn to act appropriately in public?'

Mynors stood at the chapel-gates; he was evidently awaiting them. He looked grave, almost sad. He raised his hat and shook hands, with a particular friendliness for Agnes, who was speculating whether he would kiss Anna, as his betrothed, or herself, as being only a little girl, or both or neither of them. Her eyes already expressed a sort of ownership in him.

Mynors stood at the chapel gates, clearly waiting for them. He looked serious, almost somber. He tipped his hat and shook hands, showing extra warmth towards Agnes, who was wondering if he would kiss Anna as his fiancé, or her since she was just a little girl, or maybe both or neither. Her eyes already showed a sense of claim over him.

'I should like to speak to you a moment,' Henry said. 'Will you come into the school-yard?'

'I’d like to talk to you for a moment,' Henry said. 'Will you come into the schoolyard?'

'Agnes, you had better go straight into chapel,' said Anna. It was an ignominious disaster to the child, but she obeyed.

'Agnes, you should go straight to chapel,' said Anna. It was a humiliating disaster for the child, but she complied.

'I didn't give you up last night till nearly ten o'clock,' Anna remarked as they passed into the school-yard. She was astonished to discover in herself an inclination to pout, to play the offended fair one, because Mynors had failed in his appointment. Contemptuously she crushed it.

'I didn't give you up last night until almost ten o'clock,' Anna said as they walked into the schoolyard. She was surprised to find herself wanting to pout, to act like the slighted princess, because Mynors had missed their meeting. She dismissed the feeling with disdain.

'Have you heard about Mr. Price?' Mynors began.

'Have you heard about Mr. Price?' Mynors started.

'No. What about him? Has anything happened?'

'No. What about him? Has anything happened?'

'A very sad thing has happened. Yes——' He stopped, from emotion. 'Our superintendent has committed suicide!'

'A very sad thing has happened. Yes——' He paused, overwhelmed with emotion. 'Our superintendent has taken his own life!'

'Killed himself?' Anna gasped.

'Committed suicide?' Anna gasped.

'He hanged himself yesterday afternoon at Edward Street, in the slip-house after the works were closed. Willie had gone home, but he came back, when his father didn't turn up for dinner, and found him. Mr. Price was quite dead. He ran in to my place to fetch me just as I was getting my tea. That was why I never came last night.'

'He hung himself yesterday afternoon at Edward Street, in the slip-house after the factory closed. Willie had gone home, but he came back when his father didn’t show up for dinner and found him. Mr. Price was already dead. He ran to my place to get me just as I was getting my tea. That’s why I didn’t come last night.'

Anna was speechless.

Anna was at a loss for words.

'I thought I would tell you myself,' Henry resumed. 'It's an awful thing for the Sunday-school, and the whole society, too. He, a prominent Wesleyan, a worker among us! An awful thing!' he repeated, dominated by the idea of the blow thus dealt to the Methodist connexion by the man now dead.

'I thought I’d let you know myself,' Henry continued. 'It's a terrible situation for the Sunday school, and the entire community as well. He was a key Wesleyan, a dedicated worker among us! It's just awful!' he repeated, overwhelmed by the impact of the loss on the Methodist connection caused by the man now gone.

'Why did he do it?' Anna demanded, curtly.

'Why did he do that?' Anna asked sharply.

Mynors shrugged his shoulders, and ejaculated: 'Business troubles, I suppose; it couldn't be anything else. At school this morning I simply announced that he was dead.' Henry's voice broke, but he added, after a pause: 'Young Price bore himself splendidly last night.'

Mynors shrugged his shoulders and said, "I guess it's business troubles; it couldn't be anything else. This morning at school, I just announced that he was dead." Henry's voice cracked, but after a pause, he added, "Young Price handled himself exceptionally well last night."

Anna turned away in silence. 'I shall come up for tea, if I may,' Henry said, and then they parted, he to the singing-seat, she to the portico of the chapel. People were talking in groups on the broad steps and in the vestibule. All knew of the calamity, and had received from it a new interest in life. The town was aroused as if from a lethargy. Consternation and eager curiosity were on every face. Those who arrived in ignorance of the event were informed of it in impressive tones, and with intense satisfaction to the informer; nothing of equal importance had happened in the society for decades. Anna walked up the aisle to her pew, filled with one thought:

Anna turned away quietly. "I'll come up for tea, if that's alright," Henry said, and then they separated—he headed for the singing area, and she went to the chapel's portico. Groups of people were talking on the wide steps and in the foyer. Everyone knew about the tragedy and it had sparked a new interest in life. The town seemed to wake up from a daze. Shock and eager curiosity were visible on every face. Those who arrived unaware of the event were informed of it in serious tones, with the informer feeling a sense of satisfaction; nothing as significant had happened in the community for decades. Anna walked up the aisle to her pew, consumed by one thought:

'We drove him to it, father and I.'

'We drove him to it, Dad and I.'

Her fear was that the miser had renewed his terrible insistence during the previous fortnight. She forgot that she had disliked the dead man, that he had always seemed to her mean, pietistic, and two-faced. She forgot that in pressing him for rent many months overdue she and her father had acted within their just rights—acted as Price himself would have acted in their place. She could think only of the strain, the agony, the despair that must have preceded the miserable tragedy. Old Price had atoned for all in one sublime sin, the sole deed that could lend dignity and repose to such a figure as his. Anna's feverish imagination reconstituted the scene in the slip-house: she saw it as something grand, accusing, and unanswerable; and she could not dismiss a feeling of acute remorse that she should have been engaged in pleasure at that very hour of death. Surely some instinct should have warned her that the hare which she had helped to hunt was at its last gasp!

Her fear was that the miser had intensified his terrible demands during the past two weeks. She forgot that she had disliked the dead man, that he had always seemed mean, overly pious, and two-faced to her. She forgot that in pressing him for rent many months overdue, she and her father had acted within their rights—just as Price himself would have done in their situation. All she could think about was the strain, the agony, the despair that must have led up to the tragic end. Old Price had atoned for everything in one grand sin, the only act that could give dignity and peace to someone like him. Anna's anxious imagination pieced together the scene in the boarding house: she saw it as something dramatic, accusatory, and unavoidable; and she couldn't shake the feeling of deep remorse that she had been enjoying herself at that very moment of death. Surely some instinct should have warned her that the hare she had helped hunt was at its last breath!

Mr. Sargent, the newly-appointed second minister, was in the pulpit—a little, earnest bachelor, who emphasised every sentence with a continual tremor of the voice. 'Brethren,' he said, after the second hymn—and his tones vibrated with a singular effect through the half-empty building: 'Before I proceed to my sermon I have one word to say in reference to the awful event which is doubtless uppermost in the minds of all of you. It is not for us to judge the man who is now gone from us, ushered into the dread presence of his Maker with the crime of self-murder upon his soul. I say it is not for us to judge him. The ways of the Almighty are past finding out. Therefore at such a moment we may fitly humble ourselves before the Throne, and while prostrate there let us intercede for the poor young man who is left behind, bereft, and full of grief and shame. We will engage in silent prayer.' He lifted his hand, and closed his eyes, and the congregation leaned forward against the fronts of the pews. The appealing face of Willie presented itself vividly to Anna.

Mr. Sargent, the newly-appointed second minister, was in the pulpit—a small, earnest bachelor who emphasized every sentence with a constant tremor in his voice. "Brethren," he said after the second hymn, and his tone resonated in a unique way throughout the half-empty building, "Before I continue with my sermon, I have something to address regarding the terrible event that is surely on all your minds. It’s not our place to judge the man who is now gone, who has entered the daunting presence of his Maker with the sin of suicide weighing on his soul. I say it’s not for us to judge him. The ways of the Almighty are beyond our understanding. Therefore, at such a moment, we should humbly bow before the Throne, and while we’re there, let’s pray for the poor young man left behind, grieving and filled with shame. Let’s engage in silent prayer." He raised his hand and closed his eyes, and the congregation leaned forward against the fronts of the pews. The pleading face of Willie vividly appeared to Anna.

'Who is it?' Agnes asked, in a whisper of appalling distinctness. Anna frowned angrily, and gave no reply.

'Who is it?' Agnes asked, whispering clearly. Anna frowned in anger and didn't respond.

While the last hymn was being sung, Anna signed to Agnes that she wished to leave the chapel. Everyone would be aware that she was among Price's creditors, and she feared that if she stayed till the end of the service some chatterer might draw her into a distressing conversation. The sisters went out, and Agnes's burning curiosity was at length relieved.

While the last hymn was being sung, Anna signaled to Agnes that she wanted to leave the chapel. Everyone knew she was one of Price's creditors, and she worried that if she stayed until the service was over, someone might start an awkward conversation with her. The sisters walked out, and Agnes's intense curiosity was finally satisfied.

'Mr. Price has hanged himself,' Anna said to her father when they reached home.

'Mr. Price has hung himself,' Anna told her father when they got home.

The miser looked through the window for a moment. 'I am na' surprised,' he said. 'Suicide's i' that blood. Titus's uncle 'Lijah tried to kill himself twice afore he died o' gravel. Us'n have to do summat wi' Edward Street at last.'

The miser looked out the window for a moment. 'I'm not surprised,' he said. 'There’s suicide in that blood. Titus's uncle Elijah tried to kill himself twice before he died of gravel. We have to do something with Edward Street at last.'

She wanted to ask Ephraim if he had been demanding more rent lately, but she could not find courage to do so.

She wanted to ask Ephraim if he had been asking for higher rent lately, but she couldn't find the courage to do it.

Agnes had to go to Sunday-school alone that afternoon. Without saying anything to her father, Anna decided to stay at home. She spent the time in her bedroom, idle, preoccupied; and did not come downstairs till half-past three. Ephraim had gone out. Agnes presently returned, and then Henry came in with Mr. Tellwright. They were conversing amicably, and Anna knew that her engagement was finally and satisfactorily settled. During tea no reference was made to it, nor to the suicide. Mynors' demeanour was quiet but cheerful. He had partly recovered from the morning's agitation, and gave Ephraim and Agnes a vivacious account of the attractions of Port Erin. Anna noticed the amusement in his eyes when Agnes, reddening, said to him: 'Will you have some more bread-and-butter, Henry?' It seemed to be tacitly understood afterwards that Agnes and her father would attend chapel, while Henry and Anna kept house. No one was ingenious enough to detect an impropriety in the arrangement. For some obscure reason, immediately upon the departure of the chapel-goers, Anna went into the kitchen, rattled some plates, stroked her hair mechanically, and then stole back again to the parlour. It was a chilly evening, and instead of walking up and down the strip of garden the betrothed lovers sat together under the window. Anna wondered whether or not she was happy. The presence of Mynors was, at any rate, marvellously soothing.

Agnes had to go to Sunday school alone that afternoon. Without telling her dad, Anna decided to stay home. She spent the time in her bedroom, feeling idle and distracted, and didn’t come downstairs until half-past three. Ephraim had gone out. Agnes soon returned, followed by Henry and Mr. Tellwright. They were chatting cheerfully, and Anna knew that her engagement was finally and satisfactorily settled. During tea, no one mentioned it or the suicide. Mynors seemed calm but cheerful. He had mostly recovered from the morning's stress and gave Ephraim and Agnes an enthusiastic account of the attractions of Port Erin. Anna noticed the amusement in his eyes when Agnes, blushing, asked him, "Will you have some more bread and butter, Henry?" It seemed to be an unspoken agreement afterwards that Agnes and her dad would go to chapel while Henry and Anna stayed home. No one thought it was inappropriate. For some unknown reason, as soon as the chapel-goers left, Anna went into the kitchen, clattered some plates, brushed her hair absentmindedly, and then quietly returned to the parlor. It was a chilly evening, and instead of walking back and forth in the garden, the engaged couple sat together by the window. Anna wondered if she was happy or not. Mynors' presence was, at least, incredibly calming.

'Did your father say anything about the Price affair?' he began, yielding at once to the powerful hypnotism of the subject which fascinated the whole town that night, and which Anna could bear neither to discuss nor to ignore.

'Did your dad say anything about the Price situation?' he started, giving in immediately to the strong pull of the topic that captivated the whole town that night, and which Anna could neither talk about nor avoid.

'Not much,' she said, and repeated to him her father's remark.

'Not much,' she said, and told him what her father had said.

Mynors told her all he knew; how Willie had discovered his father with his toes actually touching the floor, leaning slightly forward, quite dead; how he had then cut the rope and fetched Mynors, who went with him to the police-station; how they had tied up the head of the corpse, and then waited till night to wheel the body on a hand-cart from Edward Street to the mortuary chamber at the police-station; how the police had telephoned to the coroner, and settled at once that the inquest should be held on Tuesday in the court-room at the town-hall; and how quiet, self-contained, and dignified Willie had been, surprising everyone by this new-found manliness. It all seemed hideously real to Anna, as Henry added detail to detail.

Mynors told her everything he knew: how Willie had found his father with his toes actually touching the floor, leaning slightly forward, completely dead; how he had then cut the rope and gotten Mynors, who went with him to the police station; how they had secured the head of the corpse and then waited until night to wheel the body on a hand cart from Edward Street to the mortuary at the police station; how the police had called the coroner and quickly decided that the inquest would be held on Tuesday in the court room at the town hall; and how calm, composed, and dignified Willie had been, surprising everyone with this newly found manliness. It all felt disturbingly real to Anna as Henry added detail after detail.

'I think I ought to tell you,' she said very calmly, when he had finished the recital, 'that I—I'm dreadfully upset over it. I can't help thinking that I—that father and I, I mean—are somehow partly responsible for this.'

'I think I should tell you,' she said very calmly, when he had finished the recital, 'that I—I'm really upset about it. I can't help thinking that I—that my dad and I, I mean—are somehow partly responsible for this.'

'For Price's death? How?'

'What happened to Price?'

'We have been so hard on him for his rent lately, you know.'

'We've been really tough on him about his rent lately, you know.'

'My dearest girl! What next?' He took her hand in his. 'I assure you the idea is absurd. You've only got it because you're so sensitive and high-strung. I undertake to say Price was stuck fast everywhere—everywhere—hadn't a chance.'

'My dearest girl! What now?' He took her hand in his. 'I promise you the idea is ridiculous. You only think that because you're so sensitive and high-strung. I bet Price was completely stuck—everywhere—didn't stand a chance.'

'Me high-strung!' she exclaimed. He kissed her lovingly. But, beneath the feeling of reassurance, which by superior force he had imposed on her, there lay a feeling that she was treated like a frightened child who must be tranquillized in the night. Nevertheless, she was grateful for his kindness, and when she went to bed she obtained relief from the returning obsession of the suicide by making anew her vows to him.

'Me high-strung!' she exclaimed. He kissed her lovingly. But beneath the reassurance he was forcing on her, she felt like a scared child who needed to be calmed down at night. Still, she appreciated his kindness, and when she went to bed, she found relief from her recurring thoughts of suicide by renewing her vows to him.

As a theatrical effect the death of Titus Price could scarcely have been surpassed. The town was profoundly moved by the spectacle of this abject yet heroic surrender of all those pretences by which society contrives to tolerate itself. Here was a man whom no one respected, but everyone pretended to respect—who knew that he was respected by none, but pretended that he was respected by all; whose whole career was made up of dissimulations: religious, moral, and social. If any man could have been trusted to continue the decent sham to the end, and so preserve the general self-esteem, surely it was this man. But no! Suddenly abandoning all imposture, he transgresses openly, brazenly; and, snatching a bit of hemp cries: 'Behold me; this is real human nature. This is the truth; the rest was lies. I lied; you lied. I confess it, and you shall confess it.' Such a thunderclap shakes the very base of the microcosm. The young folk in particular could with difficulty believe their ears. It seemed incredible to them that Titus Price, the Methodist, the Sunday-school superintendent, the loud champion of the highest virtues, should commit the sin of all sins—murder. They were dazed. The remembrance of his insincerity did nothing to mitigate the blow. In their view it was perhaps even worse that he had played false to his own falsity. The elders were a little less disturbed. The event was not unique in their experience. They had lived longer and felt these seismic shocks before. They could go back into the past and find other cases where a swift impulse had shattered the edifice of a lifetime. They knew that the history of families and of communities is crowded with disillusion. They had discovered that character is changeless, irrepressible, incurable. They were aware of the astonishing fact, which takes at least thirty years to learn, that a Sunday-school superintendent is a man. And the suicide of Titus Price, when they had realised it, served but to confirm their most secret and honest estimate of humanity, that estimate which they never confided to a soul. The young folk thought the Methodist Society shamed and branded by the tragic incident, and imagined that years must elapse before it could again hold up its head in the town. The old folk were wiser, foreseeing with certainty that in only a few days this all-engrossing phenomenon would lose its significance, and be as though it had never been. Even in two days, time had already begun its work, for by Tuesday morning the interest of the affair—on Sunday at the highest pitch—had waned so much that the thought of the inquest was capable of reviving it. Although everyone knew that the case presented no unusual features, and that the coroner's inquiry would be nothing more than a formal ceremony, the almost greedy curiosity of Methodist circles lifted it to the level of a cause célèbre. The court was filled with irreproachable respectability when the coroner drove into the town, and each animated face said to its fellow: 'So you're here, are you?' Late comers of the official world—councillors, guardians of the poor, members of the school board, and one or two of their ladies, were forced to intrigue for room with the police and the town-hall keeper, and, having succeeded, sank into their narrow seats with a sigh of expectancy and triumph. Late comers with less influence had to retire, and by a kind of sinister fascination were kept wandering about the corridor before they could decide to go home. The market-place was occupied by hundreds of loafers, who seemed to find a mystic satisfaction in beholding the coroner's dogcart and the exterior of the building which now held the corpse.

As a theatrical moment, the death of Titus Price was hard to beat. The town was deeply affected by the spectacle of this pathetic yet brave giving up of all the pretenses that society uses to justify itself. Here was a man nobody respected, but everyone acted like they did—who was fully aware that no one actually respected him, yet pretended to believe he was respected by all; whose entire life was filled with deceit: religious, moral, and social. If anyone could have been trusted to keep up the decent charade until the end and maintain the community's self-esteem, it was this man. But no! Suddenly abandoning all pretense, he openly and shamelessly breaks the mold; and, grabbing a piece of rope, proclaims: 'Look at me; this is real human nature. This is the truth; everything else was a lie. I lied; you lied. I admit it, and you will too.' Such a shock reverberates through the very foundation of society. The young people, in particular, could hardly believe what they were hearing. It seemed unimaginable to them that Titus Price, the Methodist, the Sunday-school superintendent, the loud advocate of the highest values, would commit the ultimate sin—murder. They were stunned. The memory of his insincerity did nothing to soften the impact. In their eyes, it might have been even worse that he had betrayed his own deceit. The older folks were a bit less troubled. This was not their first experience with a shocking event. They had lived longer and had felt these earthquakes before. They could recall past cases where sudden impulses had devastated the foundations of a lifetime. They understood that the history of families and communities is filled with disillusionment. They realized an astonishing truth, which takes at least thirty years to grasp: a Sunday-school superintendent is a human being. And the suicide of Titus Price, once they processed it, only confirmed their deepest and most honest understanding of humanity, one they never shared with anyone. The younger generation thought the Methodist Society was shamed and marked by the tragic event, believing it would take years before it could raise its head in the town again. The older generation was wiser, knowing for certain that within just a few days, this all-consuming event would lose its significance and be forgotten as if it had never happened. Even within two days, time had already begun its work, because by Tuesday morning, the interest in the event—which had peaked on Sunday—had diminished so much that just the thought of the inquest could spark renewed curiosity. Although everyone knew that the case was not unusual and that the coroner's inquiry would be nothing more than a formal procedure, the almost eager interest of the Methodist circles elevated it to a cause célèbre. The court was filled with impeccably respectable people when the coroner arrived in town, and each animated face seemed to say to the other: 'So, you’re here, are you?' Latecomers from the official world—council members, guardians of the poor, school board members, and a few of their wives—had to compete for space with the police and the town-hall keeper, and after managing to get in, settled into their cramped seats with sighs of anticipation and triumph. Those with less influence were turned away, and a sort of dark fascination kept them wandering the corridor before they decided to go home. The market square was filled with hundreds of onlookers, who seemed to find a strange satisfaction in watching the coroner’s carriage and the exterior of the building that now held the body.

It was by accident that Anna was in the town. She knew that the inquest was to occur that morning, but had not dreamed of attending it. When, however, she saw the stir of excitement in the market-place, and the police guarding the entrances of the town-hall, she walked directly across the road, past the two officers at the east door, and into the dark main corridor of the building, which was dotted with small groups idly conversing. She was conscious of two things: a vehement curiosity, and the existence somewhere in the precincts of a dead body, unsightly, monstrous, calm, silent, careless—the insensible origin of all this simmering ferment which disgusted her even while she shared in it. At a small door, half hidden by a curtain, she was startled to see Mynors.

It was by chance that Anna was in town. She knew the inquest was happening that morning but hadn’t considered attending. However, when she noticed the buzz of excitement in the marketplace and the police stationed at the entrances of the town hall, she walked straight across the road, past the two officers at the east door, and into the dim main corridor of the building, where small groups were chatting idly. She felt two things: a strong curiosity and the awareness that somewhere in the vicinity was a dead body—ugly, monstrous, calm, silent, indifferent—the lifeless source of all this unsettling energy that she found repulsive even as she was a part of it. At a small door, partially concealed by a curtain, she was surprised to see Mynors.

'You here!' he exclaimed, as if painfully surprised, and shook hands with a preoccupied air. 'They are examining Willie. I came outside while he was in the witness-box.'

'You’re here!' he exclaimed, as if he were really surprised, and shook hands with a distracted look. 'They are questioning Willie. I stepped outside while he was on the stand.'

'Is the inquest going on in there?' she asked, pointing to the door. Each appeared to be concealing a certain resentment against the other; but this appearance was due only to nervous agitation.

'Is the inquest happening in there?' she asked, pointing to the door. They both seemed to hide some resentment toward each other; but this was just due to nervous tension.

A policeman down the corridor called: 'Mr. Mynors, a moment.' Henry hurried away, answering Anna's question as he went: 'Yes, in there. That's the witnesses' and jurors' door; but please don't go in. I don't like you to, and it is sure to upset you.'

A policeman down the hallway called out, "Mr. Mynors, a moment." Henry quickly walked away, responding to Anna's question as he went: "Yes, in there. That's the witnesses' and jurors' entrance, but please don't go in. I really would prefer if you didn't; it’s definitely going to upset you."

She opened the door and went in. None said nay, and she found a few inches of standing-room behind the jury-box. A terrible stench nauseated her; the chamber was crammed, and not a window open. There was silence in the court—no one seemed to be doing anything; but at last she perceived that the coroner, enthroned on the bench justice was writing in a book with blue leaves. In the witness-box stood William Price, dressed in black, with kid gloves, not lounging in an ungainly attitude, as might have been expected, but perfectly erect; he kept his eyes fixed on the coroner's head. Sarah Vodrey, Price's aged housekeeper, sat on a chair near the witness-box, weeping into a black-bordered handkerchief; at intervals she raised her small, wrinkled, red face, with its glistening, inflamed eyes, and then buried it again in the handkerchief. The members of the jury, whom Anna could see only in profile, shuffled to and fro on their long, pew-like seats—they were mostly working men, shabbily clothed; but the foreman was Mr. Leal, the provision dealer, a freemason, and a sidesman at the parish church. The general public sat intent and vacuous; their minds gaped, if not their mouths; occasionally one whispered inaudibly to another; the jury, conscious of an official status, exchanged remarks in a whisper courageously loud. Several tall policemen, helmet in hand, stood in various corners of the room, and the coroner's officer sat near the witness-box to administer the oath. At length the coroner lifted his head. He was rather a young man, with a large, intelligent face; he wore eyeglasses, and his chin was covered with a short, wavy beard. His manner showed that, while secretly proud of his supreme position in that assemblage, he was deliberately trying to make it appear that this exercise of judicial authority was nothing to him, that in truth these eternal inquiries, which interested others so deeply, were to him a weariness conscientiously endured.

She opened the door and stepped inside. No one objected, and she found a few inches of standing room behind the jury box. A terrible smell made her feel sick; the room was packed, and not a window was open. There was silence in the courtroom—no one seemed to be doing anything; but eventually, she noticed the coroner, seated on the bench of justice, writing in a book with blue pages. In the witness box stood William Price, dressed in black with kid gloves, not slouched in an awkward position as one might expect, but standing straight; he kept his eyes fixed on the coroner’s head. Sarah Vodrey, Price's elderly housekeeper, sat on a chair near the witness box, crying into a black-bordered handkerchief; at intervals, she raised her small, wrinkled, red face, with its glistening, inflamed eyes, and then buried it again in the handkerchief. The jury members, whom Anna could only see in profile, shuffled back and forth on their long, pew-like seats—they were mostly working-class men in ragged clothing; however, the foreman was Mr. Leal, the provision dealer, a freemason, and a sidesman at the parish church. The general public sat with blank expressions; their minds were vacant, if not their mouths; occasionally one would whisper softly to another; the jury, aware of their official position, exchanged comments in whispers that felt a bit too loud. Several tall policemen, holding their helmets, stood in different corners of the room, and the coroner's officer sat near the witness box to administer the oath. Finally, the coroner lifted his head. He was quite a young man, with a large, intelligent face; he wore glasses, and his chin was covered with a short, wavy beard. His demeanor showed that while he was secretly proud of his top position in that gathering, he was intentionally trying to make it seem like his role in administering justice was nothing to him, and that, in reality, these endless inquiries, which captivated others so much, were to him a tedious duty he was enduring conscientiously.

'Now, Mr. Price,' the coroner said blandly, and it was plain that he was being ceremoniously polite to an inferior, in obedience to the rules of good form, 'I must ask you some more questions. They may be inconvenient, even painful; but I am here simply as the instrument of the law, and I must do my duty. And these gentlemen here,' he waved a hand in the direction of the jury, 'must be told the whole facts of the case. We know, of course, that the deceased committed suicide—that has been proved beyond doubt; but, as I say, we have the right to know more.' He paused, well satisfied with the sound of his voice, and evidently thinking that he had said something very weighty and impressive.

'Now, Mr. Price,' the coroner said flatly, clearly being overly polite to someone he saw as beneath him, following the rules of decorum, 'I need to ask you some more questions. They might be uncomfortable, even upsetting; but I'm here just as a representative of the law, and I have to do my job. And these gentlemen here,' he gestured towards the jury, 'need to know the entire story. We know, of course, that the deceased took his own life—that's been established beyond doubt; but, as I mentioned, we have the right to know more.' He paused, clearly pleased with the sound of his own voice, apparently believing he had said something very significant and impressive.

'What do you want to know?' Willie Price demanded, his broad Five Towns speech contrasting with the Kensingtonian accents of the coroner. The latter, who came originally from Manchester, was irritated by the brusque interruption; but he controlled his annoyance, at the same time glancing at the public as if to signify to them that he had learnt not to take too seriously the unintentional rudeness characteristic of their district.

'What do you want to know?' Willie Price insisted, his strong Five Towns accent standing out against the Kensington accents of the coroner. The coroner, originally from Manchester, felt irritated by the abrupt interruption; however, he held back his frustration while glancing at the audience as if to signal that he had learned not to take the unintentional rudeness typical of their area too seriously.

'You say it was probably business troubles that caused your late father to commit the rash act?'

'Are you saying it was probably business issues that led your late father to take such a reckless action?'

'Yes.'

'Yeah.'

'You are sure there was nothing else?'

'Are you certain there was nothing else?'

'What else could there be?'

'What more could there be?'

'Your late father was a widower?'

'Was your dad a widower?'

'Yes.'

Yes.

'Now as to these business troubles—what were they?'

'Now regarding these business troubles—what were they?'

'We were being pressed by creditors.'

'We were being pushed by creditors.'

'Were you a partner with your late father?'

'Were you business partners with your late father?'

'Yes.'

Yes.

'Oh! You were a partner with him!'

'Oh! You were his partner!'

The jury seemed surprised, and the coroner wrote again: 'What was your share in the business?'

The jury looked surprised, and the coroner wrote again: 'What was your role in the business?'

'I don't know.'

"I don't know."

'You don't know? Surely that is rather singular?'

'You don't know? That's pretty unusual, isn't it?'

'My father took me in Co. not long since. We signed a deed, but I forget what was in it. My place was principally on the bank, not in the office.'

'My dad took me to Co. not long ago. We signed a document, but I can’t remember what it said. I mainly worked by the river, not in the office.'

'And so you were being pressed by creditors?'

'So you were being pressured by creditors?'

'Yes. And we were behind with the rent.'

'Yes. And we were late on the rent.'

'Was the landlord pressing you, too?'

'Was the landlord bothering you, too?'

Anna lowered her eyes, fearful lest every head had turned towards her.

Anna looked down, afraid that everyone was staring at her.

'Not then; he had been—she, I mean.'

'Not then; he had been—she, I mean.'

'The landlord is a lady?' Here the coroner faintly smiled. 'Then, as regards the landlord, the pressure was less than it had been?'

'The landlord is a woman?' Here the coroner faintly smiled. 'Then, as for the landlord, the pressure was less than it had been?'

'Yes; we had paid some rent, and settled some other claims.'

'Yeah; we had paid some rent and taken care of a few other bills.'

'Does it not seem strange——?' the coroner began, with a suave air of suggesting an idea.

'Doesn’t it seem odd—?' the coroner started, with a smooth way of hinting at an idea.

'If you must know,' Willie surprisingly burst out, 'I believe it was the failure of a firm in London that owed us money that caused father to hang himself.'

'If you really want to know,' Willie suddenly exclaimed, 'I think it was the collapse of a company in London that owed us money that drove my father to take his own life.'

'Ah!' exclaimed the coroner. 'When did you hear of that failure?'

'Ah!' exclaimed the coroner. 'When did you hear about that failure?'

'By second post on Friday. Eleven in the morning.'

'By the second post on Friday. Eleven in the morning.'

'I think we have heard enough, Mr. Coroner,' said Leal, standing up in the jury-box. 'We have decided on our verdict.'

'I think we've heard enough, Mr. Coroner,' Leal said, standing up in the jury box. 'We've made our decision on the verdict.'

'Thank you, Mr. Price,' said the coroner, dismissing Willie. He added, in a tone of icy severity to the foreman: 'I had concluded my examination of the witness.' Then he wrote further in his book.

'Thank you, Mr. Price,' said the coroner, waving Willie off. He added, in a stern tone to the foreman: 'I have finished my questioning of the witness.' Then he continued writing in his book.

'Now, gentlemen of the jury,' the coroner resumed, having first cleared his throat; 'I think you will agree with me that this is a peculiarly painful case. Yet at the same time——'

'Now, gentlemen of the jury,' the coroner continued, first clearing his throat; 'I believe you'll agree with me that this is an especially painful case. Yet at the same time——'

Anna hastened from the court as impulsively as she had entered it. She could think of nothing but the quiet, silent, pitiful corpse; and all this vapid mouthing exasperated her beyond sufferance.

Anna rushed out of the courtroom just as quickly as she had entered. All she could think about was the quiet, still, tragic body; and all this meaningless chatter frustrated her to no end.


On the Thursday afternoon, Anna was sitting alone in the house, with the Persian cat and a pile of stockings on her knee, darning. Agnes had with sorrow returned to school; Ephraim was out. The bell sounded violently, and Anna, thinking that perhaps for some reason her father had chosen to enter by the front door, ran to open it. The visitor was Willie Price; he wore the new black suit which had figured in the coroner's court. She invited him to the parlour and they both sat down, tongue-tied. Now that she had learnt from his evidence given at the inquest that Ephraim had not been pressing for rent during her absence in the Isle of Man, she felt less like a criminal before Willie than she would have felt without that assurance. But at the best she was nervous, self-conscious, and shamed. She supposed that he had called to make some arrangement with reference to the tenure of the works, or, more probably, to announce a bankruptcy and stoppage.

On Thursday afternoon, Anna was sitting alone in the house with the Persian cat and a pile of stockings in her lap, darning them. Agnes had sadly gone back to school, and Ephraim was out. The doorbell rang loudly, and Anna, thinking her father might have decided to come in through the front door for some reason, rushed to open it. The visitor was Willie Price; he was wearing the new black suit that had been mentioned in the coroner's court. She invited him into the living room, and they both sat down, awkwardly silent. Now that she had learned from his testimony at the inquest that Ephraim hadn’t been pushing for rent while she was away in the Isle of Man, she felt less like a criminal in front of Willie than she would have without that knowledge. Still, she was nervous, self-conscious, and ashamed. She figured he had come to discuss some arrangements regarding the works or, more likely, to announce a bankruptcy and shutdown.

'Well, Miss Tellwright,' Willie began, 'I've buried him. He's gone.'

'Well, Miss Tellwright,' Willie started, 'I've buried him. He's gone.'

The simple and profound grief, and the restrained bitterness against all the world, which were expressed in these words—the sole epitaph of Titus Price—nearly made Anna cry. She would have cried, if the cat had not opportunely jumped on her knee again; she controlled herself by dint of stroking it. She sympathised with him more intensely in that first moment of his loneliness than she had ever sympathised with anyone, even Agnes. She wished passionately to shield, shelter, and comfort him, to do something, however small, to diminish his sorrow and humiliation; and this despite his size, his ungainliness, his coarse features, his rough voice, his lack of all the conventional refinements. A single look from his guileless and timid eyes atoned for every shortcoming. Yet she could scarcely open her mouth. She knew not what to say. She had no phrases to soften the frightful blow which Providence had dealt him.

The deep and sincere grief, along with the restrained bitterness towards the world, captured in these words—the only epitaph for Titus Price—almost made Anna cry. She would have cried, but the cat conveniently jumped back onto her lap; she managed to hold it together by petting it. In that first moment of his loneliness, she felt more compassion for him than she had ever felt for anyone, even Agnes. She passionately wanted to protect, support, and comfort him, to do something, no matter how small, to ease his pain and humiliation; and this was in spite of his size, his awkwardness, his rough features, his raspy voice, and his lack of any social niceties. A single glance from his innocent and shy eyes made up for all his flaws. Still, she could barely speak. She didn't know what to say. She had no words to soften the terrible blow that fate had delivered to him.

'I'm very sorry,' she said. 'You must be relieved it's all over.'

"I'm really sorry," she said. "You must feel relieved that it's all over."

If she could have been Mrs. Sutton for half an hour! But she was Anna, and her feelings could only find outlet in her eyes. Happily young Price was of those meek ones who know by instinct the language of the eyes.

If she could have been Mrs. Sutton for half an hour! But she was Anna, and her feelings could only be expressed through her eyes. Fortunately, young Price was one of those gentle souls who instinctively understood the language of the eyes.

'You've come about the works, I suppose?' she went on.

'You’re here about the jobs, I guess?' she continued.

'Yes,' he said. 'Is your father in? I want to see him very particular.'

'Yes,' he said. 'Is your dad home? I really want to see him.'

'He isn't in now,' she replied: 'but he will be back by four o'clock.'

'He isn't here right now,' she replied, 'but he will be back by four o'clock.'

'That's an hour. You don't know where he is?'

'That's been an hour. You have no idea where he is?'

She shook her head. 'Well,' he continued, 'I must tell you, then. I've come up to do it, and do it I must. I can't come up again; neither can I wait. You remember that bill of exchange as we gave you some weeks back towards rent?'

She shook her head. 'Well,' he continued, 'I have to tell you then. I've come up to do this, and I have to do it. I can't come up again; I also can't wait. Do you remember that bill of exchange we gave you a few weeks ago for the rent?'

'Yes,' she said. There was a pause. He stood up, and moved to the mantelpiece. Her gaze followed him intently, but she had no idea what he was about to say.

'Yeah,' she said. There was a pause. He stood up and walked over to the mantelpiece. Her eyes followed him closely, but she had no clue what he was going to say.

'It's forged, Miss Tellwright.' He sat down again, and seemed calmer, braver, ready to meet any conceivable set of consequences.

'It's forged, Miss Tellwright.' He sat down again, seeming calmer, braver, and ready to face any possible consequences.

'Forged!' she repeated, not immediately grasping the significance of the avowal.

'Forged!' she repeated, not immediately understanding the importance of the statement.

'Mr. Sutton's name is forged on it. So I came to tell your father; but you'll do as well. I feel as if I should like to tell you all about it,' he said, smiling sadly. 'Mr. Sutton had really given us a bill for thirty pounds, but we'd paid that away when Mr. Tellwright sent word down—you remember—that he should put bailiffs in if he didn't have twenty-five pounds next day. We were just turning the corner then, father said to me. There was a goodish sum due to us from a London firm in a month's time, and if we could only hold out till then, father said he could see daylight for us. But he knew as there'd be no getting round Mr. Tellwright. So he had the idea of using Mr. Sutton's name—just temporary like. He sent me to the post-office to buy a bill stamp, and he wrote out the bill all but the name. "You take this up to Tellwright's," he says, "and ask 'em to take it and hold it, and we'll redeem it, and that'll be all right. No harm done there, Will!" he says. Then he tries Sutton's name on the back of an envelope. It's an easy signature, as you know; but he couldn't do it. "Here, Will," he says, "my old hand shakes; you have a go," and he gives me a letter of Sutton's to copy from. I did it easy enough after a try or two. "That'll be all right, Will," he says, and I put my hat on and brought the bill up here. That's the truth, Miss Tellwright. It was the smash of that London firm that finished my poor old father off.'

'Mr. Sutton's name is forged on it. So I came to tell your dad; but you'll do just fine. I feel like I should share everything with you,' he said, smiling sadly. 'Mr. Sutton had actually given us a bill for thirty pounds, but we spent that when Mr. Tellwright sent word that he would send bailiffs if he didn't get twenty-five pounds the next day. We were just turning the corner then, my dad told me. There was a decent amount owed to us from a London firm in a month, and if we could just hold out until then, my dad said he could see a way out for us. But he knew there was no getting around Mr. Tellwright. So he thought of using Mr. Sutton's name—just temporarily. He sent me to the post office to buy a bill stamp, and he wrote out the bill except for the name. "You take this up to Tellwright's," he says, "and ask them to take it and hold it, and we'll pay it back, and everything will be fine. No harm done there, Will!" he says. Then he tries Sutton's name on the back of an envelope. It's an easy signature, as you know; but he couldn't do it. "Here, Will," he says, "my old hand shakes; you give it a try," and he hands me a letter from Sutton to copy from. I managed it after a try or two. "That'll be fine, Will," he says, and I put my hat on and brought the bill up here. That's the truth, Miss Tellwright. It was the failure of that London firm that finished my poor dad off.'

Her one feeling was the sense of being herself a culprit. After all, it was her father's action, more than anything else, that had led to the suicide, and he was her agent.

Her only feeling was the sense that she was to blame. After all, it was her father's actions, more than anything else, that had caused the suicide, and he was her representative.

'Oh, Mr. Price,' she said foolishly, 'whatever shall you do?'

'Oh, Mr. Price,' she said naively, 'what will you do?'

'There's nothing to be done,' he replied. 'It was bound to be. It's our luck. We'd no thought but what we should bring you thirty pound in cash and get that bit of paper back, and rip it up, and no one the worse. But we were always unlucky, me and him. All you've got to do is just to tell your father, and say I'm ready to go to the police-station when he gives the word. It's a bad business, but I'm ready for it.'

'There's nothing we can do,' he said. 'It was meant to happen. It's just our luck. We thought we would bring you thirty pounds in cash, get that piece of paper back, tear it up, and nobody would be the wiser. But we’ve always had bad luck, him and me. All you need to do is tell your dad, and let him know I'm ready to go to the police station whenever he says so. It's a tough situation, but I'm prepared for it.'

'Can't we do something?' she naïvely inquired, with a vision of a trial and sentence, and years of prison.

'Can't we do something?' she asked naively, imagining a trial, a verdict, and years behind bars.

'Your father keeps the bill, doesn't he? Not you?'

'Your dad keeps the bill, right? Not you?'

'I could ask him to destroy it.'

'I could ask him to get rid of it.'

'He wouldn't,' said Willie. 'You'll excuse me saying that, Miss Tellwright, but he wouldn't.'

'He wouldn't,' said Willie. 'I hope you don't mind me saying this, Miss Tellwright, but he definitely wouldn't.'

He rose as if to go, bitterly. As for Anna, she knew well that her father would never permit the bill to be destroyed. But at any cost she meant to comfort him then, to ease his lot, to send him away less grievous than he came.

He stood up as if he was about to leave, feeling frustrated. As for Anna, she understood that her dad would never allow the bill to be destroyed. But no matter what, she was determined to comfort him then, to lighten his burdens, to send him off in a better mood than when he arrived.

'Listen!' she said, standing up, and abandoning the cat, 'I will see what can be done. Yes. Something shall be done—something or other. I will come and see you at the works to-morrow afternoon. You may rely on me.'

'Listen!' she said, standing up and leaving the cat behind. 'I'll see what can be done. Yes. Something will be done—something or other. I'll come and see you at the factory tomorrow afternoon. You can count on me.'

She saw hope brighten his eyes at the earnestness and resolution of her tone, and she felt richly rewarded. He never said another word, but gripped her hand with such force that she flinched in pain. When he had gone, she perceived clearly the dire dilemma; but cared nothing, in the first bliss of having reassured him.

She saw hope light up his eyes at the sincerity and determination in her voice, and she felt deeply satisfied. He didn’t say anything else, but held her hand so tightly that she winced in pain. After he left, she recognized the serious situation they were in; but she didn’t care at all, caught up in the joy of having comforted him.

During tea it occurred to her that as soon as Agnes had gone to bed she would put the situation plainly before her father, and, for the first and last time in her life, assert herself. She would tell him that the affair was, after all, entirely her own, she would firmly demand possession of the bill of exchange, and she would insist on it being destroyed. She would point out to the old man that, her promise having been given to Willie Price, no other course than this was possible. In planning this night-surprise on her father's obstinacy, she found argument after argument auspicious of its success. The formidable tyrant was at last to meet his equal, in force, in resolution, and in pugnacity. The swiftness of her onrush would sweep him, for once, off his feet. At whatever cost, she was bound to win, even though victory resulted in eternal enmity between father and daughter. She saw herself towering over him, morally, with blazing eye and scornful nostril. And, thus meditating on the grandeur of her adventure, she fed her courage with indignation. By the act of death, Titus Price had put her father for ever in the wrong. His corpse accused the miser, and Anna, incapable now of seeing aught save the pathos of suicide, acquiesced in the accusation with all the strength of her remorse. She did not reason—she felt; reason was shrivelled up in the fire of emotion. She almost trembled with the urgency of her desire to protect from further shame the figure of Willie Price, so frank, simple, innocent, and big; and to protect also the lifeless and dishonoured body of his parent. She reviewed the whole circumstances again and again, each time finding less excuse for her father's implacable and fatal cruelty.

During tea, it struck her that as soon as Agnes went to bed, she would lay out the situation clearly for her father and, for the first and last time in her life, stand up for herself. She would tell him that the matter was entirely hers, firmly demand the bill of exchange, and insist that it be destroyed. She would explain to the old man that since she had promised Willie Price, there was no other option available. As she planned this nighttime confrontation to challenge her father's stubbornness, she found reason after reason that suggested she would succeed. The formidable tyrant would finally face someone equal to him in strength, determination, and aggression. The speed of her advance would knock him off his feet, for once. No matter the cost, she was determined to win, even if it meant a lasting rift between father and daughter. She imagined herself towering over him, morally, with a fierce gaze and disdainful expression. And as she contemplated the significance of her mission, she fueled her courage with indignation. With Titus Price's death, her father was forever in the wrong. His corpse accused the miser, and Anna, unable to see anything but the tragedy of suicide, embraced the accusation with all the force of her guilt. She wasn’t reasoning—she was feeling; logic had withered in the heat of her emotions. She almost shook with the urgency of her desire to shield Willie Price, who was so straightforward, simple, innocent, and large, from further shame and also to protect the lifeless and dishonored body of his parent. She went over the entire situation time and time again, each time finding less justification for her father's relentless and devastating cruelty.

So her thoughts ran until the appointed hour of Agnes's bedtime. It was always necessary to remind Agnes of that hour; left to herself, the child would have stayed up till the very Day of Judgment. The clock struck, but Anna kept silence. To utter the word 'bedtime' to Agnes was to open the attack on her father, and she felt as the conductor of an opera feels before setting in motion a complicated activity which may end in either triumph or an unspeakable fiasco. The child was reading; Anna looked and looked at her, and at length her lips were set for the phrase, 'Now Agnes,' when, suddenly, the old man forestalled her:

So her thoughts went on until it was time for Agnes to go to bed. It was always necessary to remind Agnes of that time; if left to her own devices, the girl would stay up until the very end of time. The clock struck, but Anna stayed silent. Saying 'bedtime' to Agnes was like launching a surprise attack on her father, and Anna felt like a conductor before starting a complicated performance that could end in either success or total disaster. The child was reading; Anna kept watching her, and finally her lips were ready to say, 'Now Agnes,' when suddenly, the old man beat her to it:

'Is that wench going for sit here all night?' he asked of Anna, menacingly.

"Is that girl planning to sit here all night?" he asked Anna, threateningly.

Agnes shut her book and crept away.

Agnes closed her book and quietly slipped away.

This accident was the ruin of Anna's scheme. Her father, always the favourite of circumstance, had by chance struck the first blow; ignorant of the battle that awaited him, he had unwittingly won it by putting her in the wrong, as Titus Price had put him in the wrong. She knew in a flash that her enterprise was hopeless; she knew that her father's position in regard to her was impregnable, that no moral force, no consciousness of right, would avail to overthrow that authority which she had herself made absolute by a life-long submission; she knew that face to face with her father she was, and always would be, a coward. And now, instead of finding arguments for success, she found arguments for failure. She divined all the retorts that he would fling at her. What about Mr. Sutton—in a sense the victim of this fraud? It was not merely a matter of thirty pounds. A man's name had been used. Was he, Ephraim Tellwright, and she, his daughter, to connive at a felony? The felony was done, and could not be undone. Were they to render themselves liable, even in theory, to a criminal prosecution? If Titus Price had killed himself, what of that? If Willie Price was threatened with ruin, what of that? Them as made the bed must lie on it. At the best, and apart from any forgery, the Prices had swindled their creditors; even in dying, old Price had been guilty of a commercial swindle. And was the fact that father and son between them had committed a direct and flagrant crime to serve as an excuse for sympathising with the survivor? Why was Anna so anxious to shield the forger? What claim had he? A forger was a forger, and that was the end of it.

This accident ruined Anna's plan. Her father, always favored by luck, had unknowingly dealt the first blow; unaware of the struggle ahead, he had unintentionally won it by making her look bad, just as Titus Price had done to him. In an instant, she realized her venture was pointless; she knew her father's position towards her was unassailable, that no moral argument or sense of right would be enough to challenge the authority she had allowed to become absolute through a lifetime of compliance. She understood that in front of her father, she was, and always would be, a coward. Now, instead of finding reasons for success, she discovered reasons for failure. She anticipated all the comebacks he would throw at her. What about Mr. Sutton — in a way, the victim of this deception? It wasn't just about thirty pounds. A man's name had been misused. Were Ephraim Tellwright and his daughter really going to go along with a crime? The crime had happened and couldn't be undone. Were they supposed to expose themselves to potential legal action, even just in theory? If Titus Price had taken his own life, so what? If Willie Price faced ruin, what of it? Those who made the bed must lie in it. At best, aside from any forgery, the Prices had cheated their creditors; even in death, old Price had committed commercial fraud. Was the fact that father and son had engaged in a blatant crime supposed to justify sympathizing with the one who survived? Why was Anna so determined to protect the forger? What right did he have? A forger was a forger, and that was all there was to it.

She went to bed without opening her mouth. Irresolute, shamed, and despairing, she tried to pray for guidance, but she could bring no sincerity of appeal into this prayer; it seemed an empty form. Where, indeed, was her religion? She was obliged to acknowledge that the fervour of her aspirations had been steadily cooling for weeks. She was not a whit more a true Christian now than she had been before the Revival; it appeared that she was incapable of real religion, possibly one of those souls foreordained to damnation. This admission added to the general sense of futility, and increased her misery. She lay awake for hours, confronting her deliberate promise to Willie Price. Something shall be done. Rely on me. He was relying on her, then. But on whom could she rely? To whom could she turn? It is significant that the idea of confiding in Henry Mynors did not present itself for a single moment as practical. Mynors had been kind to Willie in his trouble, but Anna almost resented this kindness on account of the condescending superiority which she thought she detected therein. It was as though she had overheard Mynors saying to himself: 'Here is this poor, crushed worm. It is my duty as a Christian to pity and succour him. I will do so. I am a righteous man.' The thought of anyone stooping to Willie was hateful to her. She felt equal with him, as a mother feels equal with her child when it cries and she soothes it. And she felt, in another way, that he was equal with her, as she thought of his sturdy and simple confession, and of the loyal love in his voice when he spoke of his father. She liked him for hurting her hand, and for refusing to snatch at the slender chance of her father's clemency. She could never reveal Willie's sin, if it was a sin, to Henry Mynors—that symbol of correctness and of success. She had fraternised with sinners, like Christ; and, with amazing injustice, she was capable of deeming Mynors a Pharisee because she could not find fault with him, because he lived and loved so impeccably and so triumphantly. There was only one person from whom she could have asked advice and help, and that wise and consoling heart was far away in the Isle of Man.

She went to bed without saying a word. Unsure, ashamed, and hopeless, she tried to pray for guidance, but she couldn't bring any real sincerity to her prayer; it felt like an empty ritual. Where, in fact, was her faith? She had to admit that the intensity of her hopes had been gradually fading for weeks. She wasn't any more of a true Christian now than she was before the Revival; it seemed like she was unable to experience genuine faith, possibly one of those souls doomed to damnation. This realization added to her overall feeling of futility and deepened her misery. She lay awake for hours, thinking about her promise to Willie Price. Something shall be done. Rely on me. He was counting on her, then. But who could she depend on? Who could she turn to? Notably, the thought of confiding in Henry Mynors didn’t cross her mind as a viable option. Mynors had been nice to Willie during his troubles, but Anna felt almost resentful of that kindness due to the condescending superiority she thought she sensed in it. It was as if she could hear Mynors thinking to himself: 'Here is this poor, crushed worm. It's my duty as a Christian to feel pity for him and help him. I will do so. I am a righteous man.' The idea of anyone lowering themselves to help Willie made her uncomfortable. She felt equal to him, like a mother feels equal to her child when it cries and she comforts it. And in another sense, she recognized that he was equal to her, considering his honest and straightforward confession, and the devoted love in his voice when he talked about his father. She appreciated him for hurting her hand and for refusing to grasp at the slim chance of her father's mercy. She could never confess Willie's mistake, if it was even a mistake, to Henry Mynors—that emblem of propriety and success. She had associated with sinners, like Christ; and, with a surprising sense of unfairness, she could view Mynors as a Pharisee simply because she couldn’t criticize him, because he lived and loved so perfectly and so triumphantly. There was only one person she could have asked for advice and help, and that wise and comforting soul was far away in the Isle of Man.

'Why won't father give up the bill?' she demanded, half aloud, in sullen wrath. She could not frame the answer in words, but nevertheless she knew it and felt it. Such an act of grace would have been impossible to her father's nature—that was all.

'Why won't Dad just pay the bill?' she asked, half to herself, feeling upset. She couldn't put the answer into words, but she understood it and felt it deep down. Such an act of kindness would have been completely against her father's nature—that was all.

Suddenly the expression of her face changed from utter disgust into a bitter and proud smile. Without thinking further, without daring to think, she rose out of bed and, night-gowned and bare-footed, crept with infinite precaution downstairs. The oilcloth on the stairs froze her feet; a cold, grey light issuing through the glass square over the front door showed that dawn was beginning. The door of the front-parlour was shut; she opened it gently, and went within. Every object in the room was faintly visible, the bureau, the chair, the files of papers, the pictures, the books on the mantelshelf, and the safe in the corner. The bureau, she knew, was never locked; fear of their father had always kept its privacy inviolate from Anna and Agnes, without the aid of a key. As Anna stood in front of it, a shaking figure with hair hanging loose, she dimly remembered having one day seen a blue paper among white in the pigeon-holes. But if the bill was not there she vowed that she would steal her father's keys while he slept, and force the safe. She opened the bureau, and at once saw the edge of a blue paper corresponding with her recollection. She pulled it forth and scanned it. 'Three months after date pay to our order ... Accepted payable, William Sutton.' So here was the forgery, here the two words for which Willie Price might have gone to prison! What a trifle! She tore the flimsy document to bits, and crumpled the bits into a little ball. How should she dispose of the ball? After a moment's reflection she went into the kitchen, stretched on tiptoe to reach the match-box from the high mantelpiece, struck a match, and burnt the ball in the grate. Then, with a restrained and sinister laugh, she ran softly upstairs.

Suddenly, her facial expression shifted from complete disgust to a bitter and proud smile. Without thinking any further, without daring to contemplate, she got out of bed and, still in her nightgown and barefoot, quietly made her way downstairs with extreme care. The oilcloth on the steps felt cold against her feet; a pale, grey light coming through the glass square above the front door indicated that dawn was approaching. The door to the front room was closed; she gently opened it and stepped inside. Everything in the room was dimly visible— the desk, the chair, the stacks of papers, the pictures, the books on the mantel, and the safe in the corner. She knew the desk was never locked; their father had always kept it off-limits to Anna and Agnes, even without a key. Standing in front of it, a trembling figure with her hair hanging loose, she vaguely remembered seeing a blue paper among the white ones in the compartments. But if the bill wasn’t there, she promised herself she would sneak her father's keys while he slept and open the safe. She opened the desk and immediately spotted the edge of a blue paper that matched her memory. She pulled it out and read it. 'Three months after date pay to our order ... Accepted payable, William Sutton.’ So here was the forgery, here were the two words for which Willie Price could have been jailed! What a trivial matter! She ripped the flimsy document into shreds and crumpled the pieces into a small ball. How was she going to get rid of the ball? After a moment of thought, she went into the kitchen, stretched up on her tiptoes to grab the matchbox from the high shelf, struck a match, and burned the ball in the fireplace. Then, with a restrained and eerie laugh, she quietly ran back upstairs.

'What's the matter, Anna?' Agnes was sitting up in bed, wide awake.

'What's wrong, Anna?' Agnes was sitting up in bed, fully awake.

'Nothing; go to sleep, and don't bother,' Anna angrily whispered.

'Nothing, just go to sleep and stop bothering me,' Anna angrily whispered.

Had she closed the lid of the bureau? She was compelled to return in order to make sure. Yes, it was closed. When at length she lay in bed, breathless, her heart violently beating, her feet like icicles, she realised what she had done. She had saved Willie Price, but she had ruined herself with her father. She knew well that he would never forgive her.

Had she closed the bureau's lid? She felt the need to go back to check. Yes, it was closed. When she finally lay in bed, breathless, with her heart pounding and her feet icy, she realized what she'd done. She had saved Willie Price, but she had ruined her relationship with her father. She knew he would never forgive her.

On the following afternoon she planned to hurry to Edward Street and back while Ephraim and Agnes were both out of the house. But for some reason her father sat persistently after dinner, conning a sale catalogue. At a quarter to three he had not moved. She decided to go at any risks. She put on her hat and jacket, and opened the front door. He heard her.

On the next afternoon, she planned to rush to Edward Street and back while Ephraim and Agnes were both out of the house. But for some reason, her father stayed put after dinner, going through a sale catalog. By a quarter to three, he still hadn’t moved. She decided to go anyway. She put on her hat and jacket and opened the front door. He heard her.

'Anna!' he called sharply. She obeyed the summons in terror. 'Art going out?'

'Anna!' he called sharply. She responded to the call in fear. 'Are you going out?'

'Yes, father.'

'Yes, Dad.'

'Where to?'

"Where to?"

'Down town to buy some things.'

'Going downtown to buy some stuff.'

'Seems thou'rt always buying.'

'Looks like you're always buying.'

That was all; he let her free. In an unworthy attempt to appease her conscience she did in fact go first into the town; she bought some wool; the trick was despicable. Then she hastened to Edward Street. The decrepit works seemed to have undergone no change. She had expected the business would be suspended, and Willie Price alone on the bank; but manufacture was proceeding as usual. She went direct to the office, fancying, as she climbed the stairs, that every window of all the workshops was full of eyes to discern her purpose. Without knocking, she pushed against the unlatched door and entered. Willie was lolling in his father's chair, gloomy, meditative, apparently idle. He was coatless, and wore a dirty apron; a battered hat was at the back of his head, and his great hands which lay on the desk in front of him, were soiled. He sprang up, flushing red, and she shut the door; they were alone together.

That was it; he let her go. In a misguided attempt to ease her guilt, she went into town first; she bought some wool; the act was shameful. Then she hurried to Edward Street. The rundown factory seemed unchanged. She had thought the business would be closed, with only Willie Price on the bank; but production was going on as usual. She went straight to the office, imagining, as she climbed the stairs, that every window in the workshops was filled with eyes trying to figure out her intentions. Without knocking, she pushed open the unlatched door and walked in. Willie was lounging in his father's chair, looking gloomy and deep in thought, seemingly doing nothing. He was without a coat and wearing a dirty apron; a worn hat was pushed back on his head, and his large hands, resting on the desk in front of him, were grimy. He jumped up, turning red, and she closed the door; they were alone.

'I'm all in my dirt,' he murmured apologetically. Simple and silly creature, to imagine that she cared for his dirt!

"I'm totally caught up in my mess," he said with a hint of regret. What a simple and foolish being to think she actually cared about his mess!

'It's all right,' she said; 'you needn't worry any more. It's all right.' They were glorious words for her, and her face shone.

'It's okay,' she said; 'you don't have to worry anymore. It's okay.' Those were amazing words to her, and her face lit up.

'What do you mean?' he asked gruffly.

'What do you mean?' he asked harshly.

'Why,' she smiled, full of happiness, 'I got that paper and burnt it!'

'Why,' she smiled, filled with happiness, 'I got that paper and burned it!'

He looked at her exactly as if he had not understood. 'Does your father know?'

He looked at her as if he didn't understand. 'Does your dad know?'

She still smiled at him happily. 'No; but I shall tell him this afternoon. It's all right. I've burnt it.'

She still smiled at him happily. 'No; but I’ll tell him this afternoon. It’s all good. I’ve burned it.'

He sank down in the chair, and, laying his head on the desk, burst into sobbing tears. She stood over him, and put a hand on the sleeve of his shirt. At that touch he sobbed more violently.

He sank into the chair, and, resting his head on the desk, broke down in tears. She stood over him and placed a hand on the sleeve of his shirt. At that touch, he sobbed even more intensely.

'Mr. Price, what is it?' She asked the question in a calm, soothing tone.

'Mr. Price, what’s going on?' She asked in a calm, soothing tone.

He glanced up at her, his face wet, yet apparently not shamed by the tears. She could not meet his gaze without herself crying, and so she turned her head. 'I was only thinking,' he stammered, 'only thinking—what an angel you are.'

He looked up at her, his face wet, but he didn’t seem ashamed of the tears. She couldn’t hold his gaze without starting to cry herself, so she turned her head away. “I was just thinking,” he stammered, “just thinking—what an angel you are.”

Only the meek, the timid, the silent, can, in moments of deep feeling, use this language of hyperbole without seeming ridiculous.

Only the gentle, the shy, the quiet, can, in moments of intense emotion, use this exaggerated language without looking silly.

He was her great child, and she knew that he worshipped her. Oh, ineffable power, that out of misfortune canst create divine happiness!

He was her favorite child, and she knew that he adored her. Oh, indescribable power, that from misfortune can create divine happiness!

Later, he remarked in his ordinary tone: 'I was expecting your father here this afternoon about the lease. There is to be a deed of arrangement with the creditors.'

Later, he said in his usual tone: 'I was expecting your dad to be here this afternoon about the lease. There’s going to be a deed of arrangement with the creditors.'

'My father!' she exclaimed, and she bade him good-bye.

'My dad!' she exclaimed, and she said goodbye to him.

As she passed under the archway she heard a familiar voice: 'I reckon I shall find young Mester Price in th' office?' Ephraim, who had wandered into the packing-house, turned and saw her through the doorway; a second's delay, and she would have escaped. She stood waiting the storm, and then they walked out into the road together.

As she walked under the archway, she heard a familiar voice: 'I guess I'll find young Mister Price in the office?' Ephraim, who had wandered into the packing house, turned and saw her through the doorway; if she had hesitated for just a second longer, she would have slipped away. She stood there bracing for what was coming, and then they walked out onto the road together.

'Anna, what art doing here?'

'Anna, what are you doing here?'

She did not know what to say.

She didn't know what to say.

'What art doing here?' he repeated coldly.

'What are you doing here?' he repeated coldly.

'Father, I—was just going back home.'

'Dad, I was just heading home.'

He hesitated an instant. 'I'll go with thee,' he said. They walked back to Manor Terrace in silence. They had tea in silence; except that Agnes, with dreadful inopportuneness, continually worried her father for a definite promise that she might leave school at Christmas. The idea was preposterous; but Agnes, fired by her recent success as a housekeeper, clung to it. Ignorant of her imminent danger, and misinterpreting the signs of his face, she at last pushed her insistence too far.

He paused for a moment. “I’ll go with you,” he said. They walked back to Manor Terrace in silence. They had tea in silence, except Agnes, with terrible timing, kept nagging her father for a definite promise that she could leave school at Christmas. The idea was ridiculous, but Agnes, motivated by her recent success as a housekeeper, held onto it. Unaware of her impending danger and misreading his expressions, she eventually pushed her insistence too far.

'Get to bed, this minute,' he said, in a voice suddenly terrible. She perceived her error then, but it was too late. Looking wistfully at Anna, the child fled.

'Get to bed, right now,' he said, in a voice that was suddenly terrifying. She recognized her mistake then, but it was too late. Looking longingly at Anna, the child ran away.

'I was told this morning, miss,' Ephraim began, as soon as Agnes was gone, 'that young Price had bin seen coming to this house 'ere yesterday afternoon. I thought as it was strange as thoud'st said nowt about it to thy feyther; but I never suspected as a daughter o' mine was up to any tricks. There was a hang-dog look on thy face this afternoon when I asked where thou wast going, but I didna' think thou wast lying to me.'

'I was told this morning, miss,' Ephraim started, right after Agnes left, 'that young Price was seen coming to this house yesterday afternoon. I thought it was odd that you hadn’t mentioned it to your father; but I never suspected that a daughter of mine was up to any tricks. There was a guilty look on your face this afternoon when I asked where you were going, but I didn’t think you were lying to me.'

'I wasn't,' she began, and stopped.

'I wasn't,' she started, and paused.

'Thou wast! Now, what is it? What's this carrying-on between thee and Will Price? I'll have it out of thee.'

'You were! Now, what is it? What's going on between you and Will Price? I want to know.'

'There is no carrying-on, father.'

'No drama, dad.'

'Then why hast thou gotten secrets? Why dost go sneaking about to see him—sneaking, creeping, like any brazen moll?'

'Then why have you gotten secrets? Why do you sneak around to see him—sneaking, creeping, like any bold woman?'

The miser was wounded in the one spot where there remained to him any sentiment capable of being wounded: his faith in the irreproachable, absolute chastity, in thought and deed, of his womankind.

The miser was hurt in the one area where he still had any feelings that could be hurt: his belief in the flawless, complete purity, both in thought and action, of the women in his life.

'Willie Price came in here yesterday,' Anna began, white and calm, 'to see you. But you weren't in. So he saw me. He told me that bill of exchange, that blue paper, for thirty pounds, was forged. He said he had forged Mr. Sutton's name on it.' She stopped, expecting the thunder.

'Willie Price came in here yesterday,' Anna began, pale and composed, 'to see you. But you weren't here. So he talked to me instead. He told me that bill of exchange, that blue paper, for thirty pounds, was forged. He said he had signed Mr. Sutton's name on it.' She paused, anticipating the fallout.

'Get on with thy tale,' said Ephraim, breathing loudly.

"Get on with your story," said Ephraim, breathing heavily.

'He said he was ready to go to prison as soon as you gave the word. But I told him, "No such thing!" I said it must be settled quietly. I told him to leave it to me. He was driven to the forgery, and I thought——'

'He said he was ready to go to prison as soon as you gave the word. But I told him, "Not a chance!" I said it has to be resolved quietly. I told him to let me handle it. He was pushed into the forgery, and I thought——'

'Dost mean to say,' the miser shouted, 'as that blasted scoundrel came here and told thee he'd forged a bill, and thou told him to leave it to thee to settle?' Without waiting for an answer, he jumped up and strode to the door, evidently with the intention of examining the forged document for himself.

'Dost mean to say,' the miser shouted, 'that that blasted scoundrel came here and told you he'd forged a bill, and you told him to leave it to you to sort out?' Without waiting for a reply, he jumped up and walked to the door, clearly intending to check the forged document himself.

'It isn't there—it isn't there!' Anna called to him wildly.

'It's not there—it's not there!' Anna shouted to him frantically.

'What isna' there?'

'What's not there?'

'The paper. I may as well tell you, father. I got up early this morning and burnt it.'

'The paper. I might as well tell you, Dad. I got up early this morning and burned it.'

The man was staggered at this audacious and astounding impiety.

The man was shocked by this bold and shocking disrespect.

'It was mine, really,' she continued; 'and I thought——'

'It was really mine,' she continued; 'and I thought——'

'Thou thought!'

'You thought!'

Agnes, upstairs, heard that passionate and consuming roar. 'Shame on thee, Anna Tellwright! Shame on thee for a shameless hussy! A daughter o' mine, and just promised to another man! Thou'rt an accomplice in forgery. Thou sees the scamp on the sly! Thou——' He paused, and then added, with furious scorn: 'Shalt speak o' this to Henry Mynors?'

Agnes, upstairs, heard that intense and overwhelming shout. 'Shame on you, Anna Tellwright! Shame on you for being a shameless hussy! You're my daughter, and you've just promised yourself to another man! You're an accomplice in forgery. You’re seeing that scoundrel on the side! You—' He stopped, then added with furious disdain: 'Are you going to tell Henry Mynors about this?'

'I will tell him if you like,' she said proudly.

"I can tell him if you want," she said proudly.

'Look thee here!' he hissed, 'if thou breathes a word o' this to Henry Mynors, or any other man, I'll cut thy tongue out. A daughter o' mine! If thou breathes a word——'

'Look here!' he hissed, 'if you say a word of this to Henry Mynors, or anyone else, I'll cut your tongue out. A daughter of mine! If you say a word——'

'I shall not, father.'

"I won't, Dad."

It was finished; grey with frightful anger, Ephraim left the room.

It was over; pale with terrifying rage, Ephraim stormed out of the room.




CHAPTER XII

AT THE PRIORY

She was not to be pardoned: the offence was too monstrous, daring, and final. At the same time, the unappeasable ire of the old man tended to weaken his power over her. All her life she had been terrorised by the fear of a wrath which had never reached the superlative degree until that day. Now that she had seen and felt the limit of his anger, she became aware that she could endure it; the curse was heavy, and perhaps more irksome than heavy, but she survived; she continued to breathe, eat, drink, and sleep; her father's power stopped short of annihilation. Here, too, was a satisfaction: that things could not be worse. And still greater comfort lay in the fact that she had not only accomplished the deliverance of Willie Price, but had secured absolute secrecy concerning the episode.

She couldn't be forgiven: the crime was too horrific, bold, and irreversible. At the same time, the old man's unquenchable anger weakened his control over her. Throughout her life, she had been haunted by the fear of a rage that had never peaked until that day. Now that she had witnessed and felt the extent of his fury, she realized she could withstand it; the burden was heavy, and maybe more annoying than heavy, but she persevered; she continued to breathe, eat, drink, and sleep; her father's power fell short of complete destruction. There was reassurance in knowing that things couldn’t get any worse. An even greater comfort was that not only had she achieved Willie Price's freedom, but she had also ensured complete secrecy about the incident.

The next day was Saturday, when, after breakfast, it was Ephraim's custom to give Anna the weekly sovereign for housekeeping.

The next day was Saturday, when, after breakfast, Ephraim would usually give Anna the weekly sovereign for managing the household.

'Here, Agnes,' he said, turning in his armchair to face the child, and drawing a sovereign from his waistcoat-pocket, 'take charge o' this, and mind ye make it go as far as ye can.' His tone conveyed a subsidiary message: 'I am terribly angry, but I am not angry with you. However, behave yourself.'

'Here, Agnes,' he said, turning in his armchair to face the child and pulling a gold coin from his pocket, 'take this and make sure you stretch it as far as you can.' His tone carried another message: 'I'm really upset, but it's not with you. Just behave yourself.'

The child mechanically took the coin, scared by this proof of an unprecedented domestic convulsion. Anna, with a tightening of the lips, rose and went into the kitchen. Agnes followed, after a discreet interval, and in silence gave up the sovereign.

The child numbly accepted the coin, intimidated by this sign of an unexpected disruption at home. Anna, with her lips pressed tight, stood up and headed to the kitchen. Agnes followed after a brief pause, silently handing over the sovereign.

'What is it all about, Anna?' she ventured to ask that night.

'What’s this all about, Anna?' she dared to ask that night.

'Never mind,' said Anna curtly.

"Forget it," Anna said curtly.

The question had needed some courage, for, at certain times, Agnes would as easily have trifled with her father as with Anna. From that moment, with the passive fatalism characteristic of her years, Agnes' spirits began to rise again to the normal level. She accepted the new situation, and fitted herself into it with a child's adaptability. If Anna naturally felt a slight resentment against this too impartial and apparently callous attitude on the part of the child, she never showed it.

The question took some courage to ask because, at times, Agnes could mess around with her father just as easily as she did with Anna. From that point on, with the passive resignation typical of her age, Agnes' spirits started to bounce back to where they should be. She accepted the new situation and adjusted to it with a child’s flexibility. While Anna felt a bit annoyed by this seemingly indifferent and overly fair attitude from the child, she never let it show.

Nearly a week later, Anna received a postcard from Beatrice announcing her complete recovery, and the immediate return of her parents and herself to Bursley. That same afternoon, a cab encumbered with much luggage passed up the street as Anna was fixing clean curtains in her father's bedroom. Beatrice, on the look-out, waved a hand and smiled, and Anna responded to the signals. She was glad now that the Suttons had come back, though for several days she had almost forgotten their existence. On the Saturday afternoon, Mynors called. Anna was in the kitchen; she heard him scuffling with Agnes in the lobby, and then talking to her father. Three times she had seen him since her disgrace, and each time the secret bitterness of her soul, despite conscientious effort to repress it, had marred the meeting—it had been plain, indeed, that she was profoundly disturbed; he had affected at first not to observe the change in her, and she, anticipating his questions, hinted briefly that the trouble was with her father, and had no reference to himself, and that she preferred not to discuss it at all; reassured, and too young in courtship yet to presume on a lover's rights, he respected her wish, and endeavoured by every art to restore her to equanimity. This time, as she went to greet him in the parlour, she resolved that he should see no more of the shadow. He noticed instantly the difference in her face.

Nearly a week later, Anna got a postcard from Beatrice saying she was completely recovered and that her parents and she were coming back to Bursley. That same afternoon, a cab loaded with a lot of luggage drove up the street while Anna was putting clean curtains in her father's bedroom. Beatrice, keeping an eye out, waved and smiled, and Anna responded to her signals. She was glad the Suttons had returned, even though she had almost forgotten about them for a few days. On Saturday afternoon, Mynors stopped by. Anna was in the kitchen; she heard him shuffling with Agnes in the hallway and then talking to her father. She had seen him three times since her disgrace, and each time the secret bitterness in her had spoiled the meeting, despite her best efforts to hide it. It was clear she was deeply unsettled; he had initially pretended not to notice the change in her, and anticipating his questions, she hinted briefly that her troubles were with her father and had nothing to do with him, and that she didn't want to talk about it. Reassured, and still too inexperienced in romance to assume any rights, he respected her wish and tried everything to help her regain her composure. This time, as she went to greet him in the living room, she decided he wouldn't see any more of her shadow. He immediately noticed the difference in her face.

'I've come to take you into Sutton's for tea—and for the evening,' he said eagerly. 'You must come. They are very anxious to see you. I've told your father,' he added. Ephraim had vanished into his office.

"I've come to take you to Sutton's for tea—and for the evening," he said eagerly. "You have to come. They’re really eager to see you. I’ve already told your dad," he added. Ephraim had disappeared into his office.

'What did he say, Henry?' she asked timidly.

"What did he say, Henry?" she asked nervously.

'He said you must please yourself, of course. Come along, love. Mustn't she, Agnes?'

'He said you have to do what makes you happy, of course. Come on, sweetheart. Isn't that right, Agnes?'

Agnes concurred, and said that she would get her father's tea, and his supper too.

Agnes agreed and said she would make her father's tea and dinner too.

'You will come,' he urged. She nodded, smiling thoughtfully, and he kissed her, for the first time in front of Agnes, who was filled with pride at this proof of their confidence in her.

'You will come,' he insisted. She nodded, smiling thoughtfully, and he kissed her, for the first time in front of Agnes, who felt proud of this proof of their trust in her.

'I'm ready, Henry,' Anna said, a quarter of an hour later, and they went across to Sutton's.

'I'm ready, Henry,' Anna said, fifteen minutes later, and they went over to Sutton's.

'Anna, tell me all about it,' Beatrice burst out when she and Anna had fled to her bedroom. 'I'm so glad. Do you love him really—truly? He's dreadfully fond of you. He told me so this morning; we had quite a long chat in the market. I think you're both very lucky, you know.' She kissed Anna effusively for the third time. Anna looked at her smiling but silent.

'Anna, tell me everything,' Beatrice exclaimed after she and Anna escaped to her bedroom. 'I'm so happy for you. Do you really love him—like, truly? He’s really into you. He told me this morning; we had a long chat at the market. I think you two are very lucky, you know.' She hugged Anna tightly for the third time. Anna smiled back but didn’t say anything.

'Well?' Beatrice said.

"Well?" Beatrice asked.

'What do you want me to say?'

'What do you want me to say?'

'Oh! You are the funniest girl, Anna, I ever met. "What do you want me to say," indeed!' Beatrice added in a different tone: 'Don't imagine this affair was the least bit of a surprise to us. It wasn't. The fact is, Henry had—oh! well, never mind. Do you know, mother and dad used to think there was something between Henry and me. But there wasn't, you know—not really. I tell you that, so that you won't be able to say you were kept in the dark. When shall you be married, Anna?'

'Oh! You are the funniest girl, Anna, I've ever met. "What do you want me to say," really!' Beatrice said in a different tone: 'Don't think for a second that this was a surprise to us. It wasn't. The truth is, Henry had—oh well, never mind. You know, mom and dad used to think there was something going on between Henry and me. But there wasn't, you know—not really. I'm telling you this so you won't say you were left in the dark. When are you getting married, Anna?'

'I haven't the least idea,' Anna replied, and began to question Beatrice about her convalescence.

"I have no idea," Anna replied, and started to ask Beatrice about her recovery.

'I'm perfectly well,' Beatrice said. 'It's always the same. If I catch anything I catch it bad and get it over quickly.'

"I'm perfectly fine," Beatrice said. "It's always the same. If I catch something, I catch it hard and get it over with quickly."

'Now, how long are you two chatterboxes going to stay here?' It was Mrs. Sutton who came into the room. 'Bee, you've got those sewing-meeting letters to write. Eh, Anna, but I'm glad of this. You'll make him a good wife. You two'll just suit each other.'

'So, how long are you two talkative people going to hang out here?' It was Mrs. Sutton who walked into the room. 'Bee, you've got those letters for the sewing meeting to write. Well, Anna, I'm really glad about this. You'll be a great wife for him. You two are a perfect match.'

Anna could not but be impressed by this unaffected joy of her friends in the engagement. Her spirits rose, and once more she saw visions of future happiness. At tea, Alderman Sutton added his felicitations to the rest, with that flattering air of intimate sympathy and comprehension which some middle-aged men can adopt towards young girls. The tea, made specially magnificent in honour of the betrothal, was such a meal as could only have been compassed in Staffordshire or Yorkshire—a high tea of the last richness and excellence, exquisitely gracious to the palate, but ruthless in its demands on the stomach. At one end of the table, which glittered with silver, glass, and Longshaw china, was a fowl which had been boiled for four hours; at the other, a hot pork-pie, islanded in liquor, which might have satisfied a regiment. Between these two dishes were all the delicacies which differentiate high tea from tea, and on the quality of which the success of the meal really depends; hot pikelets, hot crumpets, hot toast, sardines with tomatoes, raisin-bread, current-bread, seed-cake, lettuce, home-made marmalade and home-made jams. The repast occupied over an hour, and even then not a quarter of the food was consumed. Surrounded by all that good fare and good-will, with the Alderman on her left, Henry on her right, and a bright fire in front of her, Anna quickly caught the gaiety of the others. She forgot everything but the gladness of reunion, the joy of the moment, the luxurious comfort of the house. Conversation was busy with the doings of the Suttons at Port Erin after Anna and Henry had left. A listener would have caught fragments like this:—'You know such-and-such a point.... No, not there, over the hill. Well, we hired a carriage and drove.... The weather was simply.... Tom Kelly said he'd never.... And that little guard on the railway came all the way down to the steamer.... Did you see anything in the "Signal" about the actress being drowned? Oh! It was awfully sad. We saw the corpse just after.... Beatrice, will you hush?'

Anna couldn't help but be impressed by the genuine joy of her friends over the engagement. Her spirits lifted, and once again she envisioned a future filled with happiness. During tea, Alderman Sutton added his congratulations to everyone else's, with that flattering air of close sympathy and understanding that some middle-aged men can show to young women. The tea, made especially splendid in honor of the betrothal, was a meal that could only have come from Staffordshire or Yorkshire—a high tea of the utmost richness and quality, delightfully pleasing to the palate but demanding on the stomach. At one end of the table, which sparkled with silver, glass, and Longshaw china, sat a chicken that had been boiled for four hours; at the other end was a hot pork pie, sitting in gravy, that could have fed a whole regiment. Between these two dishes were all the treats that make high tea special, and on which the success of the meal truly relies: hot pikelets, hot crumpets, hot toast, sardines with tomatoes, raisin bread, currant bread, seed cake, lettuce, homemade marmalade, and homemade jams. The meal lasted over an hour, and even then not a quarter of the food was eaten. Surrounded by all that delicious food and goodwill, with the Alderman on her left, Henry on her right, and a warm fire in front of her, Anna quickly caught the cheerful vibe of the others. She forgot everything except for the joy of being together, the happiness of the moment, and the cozy comfort of the house. Conversation was bustling with what the Suttons had done at Port Erin after Anna and Henry had left. A listener would have caught snippets like this:—"You know such-and-such a place.... No, not there, over the hill. Well, we hired a carriage and drove.... The weather was just.... Tom Kelly said he'd never.... And that little guard on the railway came all the way down to the steamer.... Did you see anything in the 'Signal' about the actress who drowned? Oh! It was so sad. We saw the body just after.... Beatrice, will you be quiet?"

'Wasn't it terrible about Titus Price?' Beatrice exclaimed.

"Wasn't it awful about Titus Price?" Beatrice said.

'Eh, my!' sighed Mrs. Sutton, glancing at Anna. 'You can never tell what's going to happen next. I'm always afraid to go away for fear of something happening.'

'Eh, my!' sighed Mrs. Sutton, glancing at Anna. 'You never know what's going to happen next. I'm always worried about going away because something might happen.'

A silence followed. When tea was finished Beatrice was taken away by her mother to write the letters concerning the immediate resumption of sewing-meetings, and for a little time Anna was left in the drawing-room alone with the two men, who began to talk about the affairs of the Prices. It appeared that Mr. Sutton had been asked to become trustee for the creditors under a deed of arrangement, and that he had hopes of being able to sell the business as a going concern. In the meantime it would need careful management.

A silence followed. When they finished drinking tea, Beatrice was taken away by her mother to write letters about starting the sewing meetings again, leaving Anna alone in the drawing room with the two men. They began discussing the Prices' situation. It seemed that Mr. Sutton had been asked to be the trustee for the creditors under a deed of arrangement, and he was hopeful about being able to sell the business as a functioning entity. In the meantime, it would require careful management.

'Will Willie Price manage it?' Anna inquired. The question seemed to divert Henry and the Alderman, to afford them a contemptuous and somewhat inimical amusement at the expense of Willie.

'Will Willie Price handle it?' Anna asked. The question seemed to distract Henry and the Alderman, giving them a contemptuous and somewhat hostile amusement at Willie’s expense.

'No,' said the Alderman, quietly, but emphatically.

'No,' said the Alderman, calmly but firmly.

'Master William is fairly good on the works,' said Henry; 'but in the office, I imagine, he is worse than useless.'

'Master William is pretty good at his work,' said Henry; 'but in the office, I think he's more of a hindrance than anything.'

Grieved and confused, Anna bent down and moved a hassock in order to hide her face. The attitude of these men to Willie Price, that victim of circumstances and of his own simplicity, wounded Anna inexpressibly. She perceived that they could see in him only a defaulting debtor, that his misfortune made no appeal to their charity. She wondered that men so warm-hearted and kind in some relations could be so hard in others.

Grieving and confused, Anna crouched down and shifted a cushion to hide her face. The way these men treated Willie Price, who was a victim of circumstances and his own naivety, deeply hurt Anna. She realized that they could see him only as a failing debtor, and his misfortune didn’t evoke any compassion from them. She was astonished that men who were so warm-hearted and kind in some situations could be so callous in others.

'I had a talk with your father at the creditors' meeting yesterday,' said the Alderman. 'You won't lose much. Of course you've got a preferential claim for six months' rent.' He said this reassuringly, as though it would give satisfaction. Anna did not know what a preferential claim might be, nor was she aware of any creditors' meeting. She wished ardently that she might lose as much as possible—hundreds of pounds. She was relieved when Beatrice swept in, her mother following.

"I talked to your dad at the creditors' meeting yesterday," said the Alderman. "You won't lose much. Of course, you have a preferential claim for six months' rent." He said this reassuringly, as if it would be comforting. Anna had no idea what a preferential claim was, nor did she know anything about a creditors' meeting. She fervently wished that she could lose as much as possible—hundreds of pounds. She felt relieved when Beatrice came in, with her mother right behind her.

'Now, your worship,' said Beatrice to her father, 'seven stamps for these letters, please.' Anna glanced up inquiringly on hearing the form of address. 'You don't mean to say that you didn't know that father is going to be mayor this year?' Beatrice asked, as if shocked at this ignorance of affairs. 'Yes, it was all settled rather late, wasn't it, dad? And the mayor-elect pretends not to care much, but actually he is filled with pride, isn't he, dad? As for the mayoress——?'

'Now, dad,' Beatrice said to her father, 'can I get seven stamps for these letters, please?' Anna looked up curiously at the way she addressed him. 'You mean you didn’t know Dad is going to be mayor this year?' Beatrice asked, as if surprised by this lack of knowledge. 'Yeah, it got decided pretty late, didn't it, Dad? And the mayor-elect acts like it doesn't matter to him, but really he’s bursting with pride, right, Dad? As for the mayoress...?'

'Eh, Bee!' Mrs. Sutton stopped her, smiling; 'you'll tumble over that tongue of yours some day.'

'Eh, Bee!' Mrs. Sutton halted her, smiling; 'you'll trip over that tongue of yours someday.'

'Mother said I wasn't to mention it,' said Beatrice, 'lest you should think we were putting on airs.'

"Mom said I shouldn't bring it up," Beatrice said, "so you wouldn't think we were acting all high and mighty."

'Nay, not I!' Mrs. Sutton protested. 'I said no such thing. Anna knows us too well for that. But I'm not so set up with this mayor business as some people will think I am.'

'Nay, not me!' Mrs. Sutton protested. 'I didn't say anything like that. Anna knows us too well for that. But I'm not as thrilled about this mayor situation as some people might think I am.'

'Or as Beatrice is,' Mynors added.

'Or as Beatrice is,' Mynors added.

At half-past eight, and again at nine, Anna said that she must go home; but the Suttons, now frankly absorbed in the topic of the mayoralty, their secret preoccupation, would not spoil the confidential talk which had ensued by letting the lovers depart. It was nearly half-past nine before Anna and Henry stood on the pavement outside, and Beatrice, after facetious farewells, had shut the door.

At 8:30 and again at 9:00, Anna said she needed to go home; however, the Suttons, now completely engrossed in their discussion about the mayoralty, their hidden concern, wouldn't ruin the private conversation that had followed by letting the couple leave. It was almost 9:30 before Anna and Henry stood on the sidewalk outside, and Beatrice, after joking goodbyes, had closed the door.

'Let us just walk round by the Manor Farm,' Henry pleaded. 'It won't take more than a quarter of an hour or so.'

'Let's just walk around the Manor Farm,' Henry urged. 'It won't take more than about fifteen minutes.'

She agreed dutifully. The footpath ran at right angles to Trafalgar Road, past a colliery whose engine-fires glowed in the dark, moonless, autumn night, and then across a field. They stood on a knoll near the old farmstead, that extraordinary and pathetic survival of a vanished agriculture. Immediately in front of them stretched acres of burning ironstone—a vast tremulous carpet of flame woven in red, purple, and strange greens. Beyond were the skeleton-like silhouettes of pit-heads, and the solid forms of furnace and chimney-shaft. In the distance a canal reflected the gigantic illuminations of Cauldon Bar Ironworks. It was a scene mysterious and romantic enough to kindle the raptures of love, but Anna felt cold, melancholy, and apprehensive of vague sorrows. 'Why am I so?' she asked herself, and tried in vain to shake off the mood.

She agreed dutifully. The footpath crossed Trafalgar Road, passing a colliery whose engine fires glowed in the dark, moonless autumn night, then continued across a field. They stood on a knoll near the old farmstead, an extraordinary and sad remnant of a lost way of farming. Right in front of them stretched acres of burning ironstone—a vast, shimmering carpet of flame woven in red, purple, and strange greens. Beyond were the skeletal silhouettes of pit heads, alongside the solid forms of furnace and chimney stack. In the distance, a canal reflected the enormous lights of Cauldon Bar Ironworks. It was a scene mysterious and romantic enough to spark the excitement of love, but Anna felt cold, melancholy, and anxious about vague sorrows. 'Why do I feel this way?' she asked herself, trying in vain to shake off the mood.

'What will Willie Price do if the business is sold?' she questioned Mynors suddenly.

"What will Willie Price do if the business gets sold?" she asked Mynors suddenly.

'Surely,' he said to soothe her, 'you aren't still worrying about that misfortune. I wish you had never gone near the inquest; the thing seems to have got on your mind.'

'Surely,' he said to calm her down, 'you aren't still stressing over that incident. I wish you had never attended the inquest; it seems to be bothering you.'

'Oh, no!' she protested, with an air of cheerfulness. 'But I was just wondering.'

'Oh, no!' she exclaimed, maintaining a cheerful demeanor. 'I was just curious.'

'Well, Willie will have to do the best he can. Get a place somewhere, I suppose. It won't be much, at the best.'

'Well, Willie will have to make the best of it. He should find a place somewhere, I guess. It won't be great, at the very least.'

Had he guessed what perhaps hung on that answer, Mynors might have given it in a tone less callous and perfunctory. Could he have seen the tightening of her lips, he might even afterwards have repaired his error by some voluntary assurance that Willie Price should be watched over with a benevolent eye and protected with a strong arm. But how was he to know that in misprizing Willie Price before her, he was misprizing a child to its mother? He had done something for Willie Price, and considered that he had done enough. His thoughts, moreover, were on other matters.

Had he realized what was riding on that answer, Mynors might have responded in a way that was less cold and dismissive. If he had noticed the way her lips tightened, he might have tried to correct his mistake by assuring her that Willie Price would be looked after and protected. But how could he know that by underestimating Willie Price in front of her, he was belittling a child in the eyes of its mother? He had done something for Willie Price and thought that was sufficient. Besides, his mind was on other things.

'Do you remember that day we went up to the park?' he murmured fondly; 'that Sunday? I have never told you that that evening I came out of chapel after the first hymn, when I noticed you weren't there, and walked up past your house. I couldn't help it. Something drew me. I nearly called in to see you. Then I thought I had better not.'

'Do you remember that day we went to the park?' he said softly; 'that Sunday? I never told you that evening I left the chapel after the first song, noticed you weren't there, and walked by your house. I couldn't help myself. Something pulled me in. I almost stopped by to see you. Then I figured it was better not to.'

'I saw you,' she said calmly. His warmth made her feel sad. 'I saw you stop at the gate.'

'I saw you,' she said calmly. His warmth made her feel sad. 'I saw you stop at the gate.'

'You did? But you weren't at the window?'

'You did? But you weren't at the window?'

'I saw you through the glass of the front-door.' Her voice grew fainter, more reluctant.

'I saw you through the glass of the front door.' Her voice became quieter, less eager.

'Then you were watching?' In the dark he seized her with such violence, and kissed her so vehemently, that she was startled out of herself.

'So you were watching?' In the dark, he grabbed her with such force and kissed her so passionately that it took her by surprise.

'Oh! Henry!' she exclaimed.

'Oh! Henry!' she exclaimed.

'Call me Harry,' he entreated, his arm still round her waist; 'I want you to call me Harry. No one else does or ever has done, and no one shall, now.'

'Call me Harry,' he pleaded, his arm still around her waist; 'I want you to call me Harry. No one else does or ever has, and no one will, now.'

'Harry,' she said deliberately, bracing her mind to a positive determination. She must please him, and she said it again: 'Harry; yes, it has a nice sound.'

'Harry,' she said thoughtfully, focusing her mind on a positive resolution. She needed to make him happy, so she repeated it: 'Harry; yeah, it sounds nice.'

Ephraim sat reading the 'Signal' in the parlour when she arrived home at five minutes to ten. Imbued then with ideas of duty, submission, and systematic kindliness, she had an impulse to attempt a reconciliation with her father.

Ephraim was sitting in the living room reading the 'Signal' when she got home at five minutes to ten. Filled with thoughts of duty, submission, and a sense of kindness, she felt a strong urge to try and make amends with her father.

'Good-night, father,' she said, 'I hope I've not kept you up.'

'Good night, Dad,' she said, 'I hope I didn't keep you up.'

He was deaf.

He was hard of hearing.

She went to bed resigned; sad, but not gloomy. It was not for nothing that during all her life she had been accustomed to infelicity. Experience had taught her this: to be the mistress of herself. She knew that she could face any fact—even the fact of her dispassionate frigidity under Mynors' caresses. It was on the firm, almost rapturous resolve to succour Willie Price, if need be, that she fell asleep.

She went to bed feeling resigned; sad, but not depressed. It wasn't for nothing that, throughout her life, she had grown used to unhappiness. Experience had taught her to be in control of herself. She knew she could handle any reality—even her emotional detachment during Mynors' advances. It was her strong, almost passionate determination to help Willie Price, if necessary, that lulled her to sleep.

The engagement, which had hitherto been kept private, became the theme of universal gossip immediately upon the return of the Suttons from the Isle of Man. Two words let fall by Beatrice in the St. Luke's covered market on Saturday morning had increased and multiplied till the whole town echoed with the news. Anna's private fortune rose as high as a quarter of a million. As for Henry Mynors, it was said that Henry Mynors knew what he was about. After all, he was like the rest. Money, money! Of course it was inconceivable that a fine, prosperous figure of a man, such as Mynors, would have made up to her, if she had not been simply rolling in money. Well, there was one thing to be said for young Mynors, he would put money to good use; you might rely he would not hoard it up same as it had been hoarded up. However, the more saved, the more for young Mynors, so he needn't grumble. It was to be hoped he would make her dress herself a bit better—though indeed it hadn't been her fault she went about so shabby; the old skinflint would never allow her a penny of her own. So tongues wagged.

The engagement, which had been kept under wraps, became the talk of the town as soon as the Suttons returned from the Isle of Man. Two words dropped by Beatrice at the St. Luke's covered market on Saturday morning had spread and multiplied until the entire town buzzed with the news. Anna's personal fortune was said to be as high as a quarter of a million. As for Henry Mynors, people claimed he knew exactly what he was doing. After all, he was just like everyone else. Money, money! It was hard to imagine that a handsome, successful guy like Mynors would have pursued her if she hadn't been loaded. Well, one thing could be said for young Mynors: he would put money to good use; you could count on him not to hoard it up like it had been before. Still, the more that was saved, the more there would be for young Mynors, so he shouldn't complain. Hopefully, he would get her to dress a bit better—even though it wasn't really her fault she looked so shabby; the old miser wouldn't give her a penny of her own. So the gossip continued.

The first Sunday was a tiresome ordeal for Anna, both at school and at chapel. 'Well, I never!' seemed to be written like a note of exclamation on every brow; the monotony of the congratulations fatigued her as much as her involuntary efforts to grasp what each speaker had left unsaid of innuendo, malice, envy or sycophancy. Even the people in the shops, during the next few days, could not serve her without direct and curious reference to her private affairs. The general opinion that she was a cold and bloodless creature was strengthened by her attitude at this period. But the apathy which she displayed was neither affected nor due to an excessive diffidence. As she seemed, so she felt. She often wondered what would have happened to her if that vague 'something' between Henry and Beatrice, to which Beatrice had confessed, had ever taken definite shape.

The first Sunday was a draining experience for Anna, both at school and at chapel. 'Well, I never!' seemed to be written as an exclamation on everyone's face; the repetitive congratulations wore her out just as much as her effort to understand all the unspoken hints of innuendo, malice, envy, or sycophancy from each speaker. Even the shop staff over the next few days couldn't serve her without making direct and curious references to her private life. The general belief that she was a cold and emotionless person was reinforced by her demeanor during this time. But the indifference she showed wasn't fake or the result of excessive shyness. She felt as she appeared. She often wondered what might have happened to her if that vague 'something' between Henry and Beatrice, which Beatrice had admitted to, had ever become something more definite.

'Hancock came back from Lancashire last night,' said Mynors, when he arrived at Manor Terrace on the next Saturday afternoon. Ephraim was in the room, and Henry, evidently joyous and triumphant, addressed both him and Anna.

'Hancock got back from Lancashire last night,' said Mynors when he showed up at Manor Terrace the following Saturday afternoon. Ephraim was in the room, and Henry, clearly happy and victorious, spoke to both him and Anna.

'Is Hancock the commercial traveller?' Anna asked. She knew that Hancock was the commercial traveller, but she experienced a nervous compulsion to make idle remarks in order to hide the breach of intercourse between her father and herself.

'Is Hancock the sales rep?' Anna asked. She knew that Hancock was the sales rep, but she felt a nervous urge to make small talk to cover the gap in communication between her father and herself.

'Yes,' said Mynors; 'he's had a magnificent journey.'

'Yeah,' Mynors said; 'he's had an amazing trip.'

'How much?' asked the miser.

"How much?" asked the miser.

Henry named the amount of orders taken in a fortnight's journey.

Henry stated the number of orders received during a two-week trip.

'Humph!' the miser ejaculated. 'That's better than a bat in the eye with a burnt stick.' From him, this was the superlative of praise. 'You're making good money at any rate?'

'Humph!' the miser exclaimed. 'That's better than a bat in the eye with a burnt stick.' For him, this was the highest form of praise. 'You're making good money, right?'

'We are,' said Mynors.

"We are," Mynors said.

'That reminds me,' Ephraim remarked gruffly. 'When dost think o' getting wed? I'm not much for long engagements, and so I tell ye.' He threw a cold glance sideways at Anna. The idea penetrated her heart like a stab: 'He wants to get me out of the house!'

'That reminds me,' Ephraim said roughly. 'When do you think you’ll get married? I’m not really into long engagements, just so you know.' He shot a cold look at Anna. The thought hit her hard: 'He wants to get me out of the house!'

'Well,' said Mynors, surprised at the question and the tone, and, looking at Anna as if for an explanation: 'I had scarcely thought of that. What does Anna say?'

'Well,' said Mynors, surprised by the question and the tone, and looking at Anna as if seeking an explanation: 'I hadn’t really considered that. What does Anna think?'

'I don't know,' she murmured; and then, more bravely, in a louder voice, and with a smile: 'The sooner the better.' She thought, in her bitter and painful resentment: 'If he wants me to go, go I will.'

'I don't know,' she said softly; then, gathering her courage, she added in a louder voice with a smile, 'The sooner, the better.' In her bitter and painful frustration, she thought, 'If he wants me to leave, then I'll leave.'

Henry tactfully passed on to another phase of the subject: 'I met Mr. Sutton yesterday, and he was telling me of Price's house up at Toft End. It belonged to Mr. Price, but of course it was mortgaged up to the hilt. The mortgagees have taken possession, and Mr. Sutton said it would be to let cheap at Christmas. Of course Willie and old Sarah Vodrey, the housekeeper, will clear out. I was thinking it might do for us. It's not a bad sort of house, or, rather, it won't be when it's repaired.'

Henry smoothly moved on to another topic: "I ran into Mr. Sutton yesterday, and he was telling me about Price's house up at Toft End. It used to belong to Mr. Price, but it's completely mortgaged. The lenders have taken possession, and Mr. Sutton said it’ll be available for rent at a low price during Christmas. Of course, Willie and old Sarah Vodrey, the housekeeper, will be moving out. I was thinking it might be a good option for us. It’s not a bad house, or rather, it won’t be once it’s fixed up."

'What will they ask for it?' Ephraim inquired.

'What will they want for it?' Ephraim asked.

'Twenty-five or twenty-eight. It's a nice large house—four bedrooms, and a very good garden.'

'Twenty-five or twenty-eight. It's a nice big house—four bedrooms and a great garden.'

'Four bedrooms!' the miser exclaimed. 'What dost want wi' four bedrooms? You'd have for keep a servant.'

'Four bedrooms!' the miser exclaimed. 'What do you want with four bedrooms? You'd have to keep a servant.'

'Naturally we should keep a servant,' Mynors said, with calm politeness.

'Of course, we should have a servant,' Mynors said, with calm politeness.

'You could get one o' them new houses up by th' park for fifteen pounds as would do you well enough'; the miser protested against these dreams of extravagance.

'You could get one of those new houses up by the park for fifteen pounds that would suit you just fine,' the miser objected to these dreams of extravagance.

'I don't care for that part of the town,' said Mynors. 'It's too new for my taste.'

'I don't like that part of the town,' Mynors said. 'It feels too new for me.'

After tea, when Henry and Anna went out for the Saturday evening stroll, Mynors suddenly suggested: 'Why not go up and look through that house of Price's?'

After tea, when Henry and Anna went out for their Saturday evening walk, Mynors suddenly suggested, "Why not go check out that house of Price's?"

'Won't it seem like turning them out if we happen to take it?' she asked.

"Doesn't it feel like we're just pushing them away if we take it?" she asked.

'Turning them out! Willie is bound to leave it. What use is it to him? Besides, it's in the hands of the mortgagees now. Why shouldn't we take it just as well as anybody else, if it suits us?'

'Getting rid of it! Willie is definitely going to give it up. What good is it to him? Plus, it's now in the hands of the mortgage holders. Why shouldn’t we take it just like anyone else if it works for us?'

Anna had no reply, and she surrendered herself placidly enough to his will; nevertheless she could not entirely banish a misgiving that Willie Price was again to be victimised. Infinitely more disturbing than this illogical sensation, however, was the instinctive and sure knowledge, revealed in a flash, that her father wished to be rid of her. So implacable, then, was his animosity against her! Never, never had she been so deeply hurt. The wound, in fact, was so severe that at first she felt only a numbness that reduced everything to unimportance, robbing her of volition. She walked up to Toft End as if walking in her sleep.

Anna had no response, and she quietly gave in to his wishes; still, she couldn’t shake the feeling that Willie Price was going to be hurt again. Even more unsettling than this irrational thought, however, was the sudden, undeniable realization that her father wanted to be rid of her. His resentment toward her was that strong! Never had she felt so deeply wounded. The pain was so intense that at first, it left her numb, making everything seem trivial and taking away her ability to act. She walked up to Toft End as if she were sleepwalking.

Price's house, sometimes called Priory House, in accordance with a legend that a priory had once occupied the site, stood in the middle of the mean and struggling suburb of Toft End, which was flung up the hillside like a ragged scarf. Built of red brick, towards the end of the eighteenth century, double-fronted, with small, evenly disposed windows, and a chimney stack at either side, it looked westward over the town smoke towards a horizon of hills. It had a long, narrow garden, which ran parallel with the road. Behind it, adjoining, was a small, disused potworks, already advanced in decay. On the north side, and enclosed by a brick wall which surrounded also the garden, was a small orchard of sterile and withered fruit trees. In parts the wall had crumpled under the assaults of generations of boys, and from the orchard, through the gaps, could be seen an expanse of grey-green field, with a few abandoned pit-shafts scattered over it. These shafts, imperfectly protected by ruinous masonry, presented an appearance strangely sinister and forlorn, raising visions in the mind of dark and mysterious depths peopled with miserable ghosts of those who had toiled there in the days when to be a miner was to be a slave. The whole place, house and garden, looked ashamed and sad, with a shabby mournfulness acquired gradually from its inmates during many years. But, nevertheless, the house was substantial, and the air on that height fresh and pure.

Price's house, sometimes called Priory House because of a legend that a priory once stood there, was in the middle of the struggling suburb of Toft End, which sprawled up the hillside like a tattered scarf. Built of red brick in the late eighteenth century, it had a double front with small, evenly spaced windows and a chimney stack on either side, looking westward over the town's smoke towards a horizon of hills. It featured a long, narrow garden parallel to the road. Behind it was a small, abandoned potworks, already in decay. On the north side, surrounded by a brick wall that also enclosed the garden, was a small orchard of barren and withered fruit trees. In places, the wall had crumbled under the impact of generations of boys, and through the gaps in the orchard, one could see a stretch of grey-green field dotted with a few abandoned pit shafts. These shafts, poorly protected by crumbling masonry, looked strangely sinister and forlorn, conjuring images of dark and mysterious depths filled with the miserable ghosts of those who labored there in the days when being a miner meant being a slave. The whole place, house and garden, seemed ashamed and sad, carrying a shabby mournfulness that had built up over many years from its residents. However, the house was solid, and the air up there was fresh and clean.

Mynors rang in vain at the front door, and then they walked round the house to the orchard, and discovered Sarah Vodrey taking in clothes from a line—a diminutive and wasted figure, with scanty, grey hair, a tiny face permanently soured, and bony hands contorted by rheumatism.

Mynors knocked at the front door but got no response, so they walked around the house to the orchard and found Sarah Vodrey taking clothes off the line—a small and frail figure with sparse, grey hair, a tiny face that seemed always unhappy, and bony hands twisted by arthritis.

'My rheumatism's that bad,' she said in response to greetings, 'I can scarce move about, and this house is a regular barracks to keep clean. No; Willie's not in. He's at th' works, as usual—Saturday like any other day. I'm by myself here all day and every day. But I reckon us'n be flitting soon, and me lived here eight-and-twenty year! Praise God, there's a mansion up there for me at last. And not sorry shall I be when He calls.'

'My rheumatism's really bad,' she said in response to greetings, 'I can hardly move around, and this house is a total mess to keep clean. No; Willie's not home. He's at work, like he always is—Saturday just like any other day. I'm here by myself all day, every day. But I guess we'll be moving soon, and I've lived here for twenty-eight years! Thank God, there's a mansion up there for me at last. And I won’t be sorry when He calls.'

'It must be very lonely for you, Miss Vodrey,' said Mynors. He knew exactly how to speak to this dame who lived her life like a fly between two panes of glass, and who could find room in her head for only three ideas, namely: that God and herself were on terms of intimacy; that she was, and had always been, indispensable to the Price family; and that her social status was far above that of a servant. 'It's a pity you never married,' Mynors added.

"It must be really lonely for you, Miss Vodrey," Mynors said. He knew exactly how to talk to this woman who lived her life like a fly trapped between two panes of glass, and who could fit only three thoughts in her mind: that she had a close relationship with God; that she was, and had always been, essential to the Price family; and that her social standing was much higher than that of a servant. "It's too bad you never got married," Mynors added.

'Me, marry! What would they ha' done without me? No, I'm none for marriage and never was. I'd be shamed to be like some o' them spinsters down at chapel, always hanging round chapel-yard on the off-chance of a service, to catch that there young Mr. Sargent, the new minister. It's a sign of a hard winter, Miss Terrick, when the hay runs after the horse, that's what I say.'

'Me, marry! What would they have done without me? No, I'm not into marriage and never have been. I'd be embarrassed to be like some of those single women down at the chapel, always loitering around the churchyard hoping to catch that young Mr. Sargent, the new minister, during a service. It's a sign of a rough winter, Miss Terrick, when the hay chases after the horse, that's what I say.'

'Miss Tellwright and myself are in search of a house,' Mynors gently interrupted the flow, and gave her a peculiar glance which she appreciated. 'We heard you and Willie were going to leave here, and so we came up just to look over the place, if it's quite convenient to you.'

'Miss Tellwright and I are looking for a house,' Mynors gently interrupted the conversation and gave her a strange look that she understood. 'We heard that you and Willie were planning to move, so we came by to check out the place, if that's okay with you.'

'Eh, I understand ye,' she said; 'come in. But ye mun tak' things as ye find 'em, Miss Terrick.'

'Eh, I get it,' she said; 'come in. But you have to deal with things as they are, Miss Terrick.'

Dismal and unkempt, the interior of the house matched the exterior. The carpets were threadbare, the discoloured wall-papers hung loose on the walls, the ceilings were almost black, the paint had nearly been rubbed away from the woodwork; the exhausted furniture looked as if it would fall to pieces in despair if compelled to face the threatened ordeal of an auction-sale. But to Anna the rooms were surprisingly large, and there seemed so many of them! It was as if she were exploring an immense abode, like a castle, with odd chambers continually showing themselves in unexpected places. The upper story was even less inviting than the ground-floor—barer, more chill, utterly comfortless.

Dismal and neglected, the inside of the house reflected the outside. The carpets were worn out, the faded wallpaper hung loosely on the walls, the ceilings were almost black, and the paint was nearly gone from the woodwork; the tired furniture looked like it would fall apart in despair if faced with the impending ordeal of an auction. But to Anna, the rooms felt surprisingly spacious, and there seemed to be so many of them! It was like she was exploring a vast residence, almost like a castle, with strange rooms appearing in unexpected spots. The upstairs was even less inviting than the ground floor—more bare, colder, and completely unwelcoming.

'This is the best bedroom,' said Miss Vodrey. 'And a rare big room too! It's not used now. He slept here. Willie sleeps at back.'

'This is the best bedroom,' said Miss Vodrey. 'And it's a really big room too! It's not used now. He slept here. Willie sleeps in the back.'

'A very nice room,' Mynors agreed blandly, and measured it, as he had done all the others, with a two-foot, entering the figures in his pocket-book.

'A really nice room,' Mynors said nonchalantly, and measured it, just like he had with all the others, using a two-foot ruler, entering the numbers in his notebook.

Anna's eye wandered uneasily across the room, with its dismantled bed and decrepit mahogany suite.

Anna's gaze drifted anxiously around the room, taking in the broken bed and the worn-out mahogany furniture.

'I'm glad he hanged himself at the works, and not here,' she thought. Then she looked out at the window. 'What a splendid view!' she remarked to Mynors.

'I'm glad he hung himself at the job and not here,' she thought. Then she looked out the window. 'What a beautiful view!' she remarked to Mynors.

She saw that he had taken a fancy to the house. The sagacious fellow esteemed it, not as it was, but as it would be, re-papered, re-painted, re-furnished, the outer walls pointed, the garden stocked; everything cleansed, brightened, renewed. And there was indeed much to be said for his fancy. The house was large, with plenty of ground; the boundary wall secured that privacy which young husbands and young wives instinctively demand; the outlook was unlimited, the air the purest in the Five Towns. And the rent was low, because the great majority of those who could afford such a house would never deign to exist in a quarter so poverty-stricken and unfashionable.

She noticed that he had taken a liking to the house. The clever guy valued it, not for what it was, but for what it could become—new wallpaper, fresh paint, stylish furniture, the outer walls fixed, the garden filled; everything cleaned, brightened, and refreshed. And there was really a lot to appreciate about his vision. The house was spacious, with plenty of land; the boundary wall provided the privacy that young couples naturally want; the view was endless, and the air was the cleanest in the Five Towns. Plus, the rent was affordable because most people who could afford such a house would never want to live in such a poor and unfashionable area.

After leaving the house they continued their walk up the hill, and then turned off to the left on the high road from Hanbridge to Moorthorne. The venerable but not dignified town lay below them, a huddled medley of brown brick under a thick black cloud of smoke. The gold angel of the town-hall gleamed in the evening light, and the dark, squat tower of the parish church, sole relic of the past stood out grim and obdurate amid the featureless buildings which surrounded it. To the north and east miles of moorland, defaced by collieries and murky hamlets, ran to the horizon. Across the great field at their feet a figure slouched along, past the abandoned pit-shafts. They both recognised the man.

After leaving the house, they continued their walk up the hill and then turned left onto the main road from Hanbridge to Moorthorne. The old town lay below them, a messy jumble of brown brick under a thick black cloud of smoke. The gold angel on the town hall shone in the evening light, and the dark, squat tower of the parish church, the only remnant of the past, stood out grim and stubborn among the bland buildings surrounding it. To the north and east, miles of moorland, scarred by coal mines and dreary villages, stretched to the horizon. Across the large field at their feet, a figure trudged along past the abandoned pit shafts. They both recognized the man.

'There's Willie Price going home!' said Mynors.

'There's Willie Price going home!' Mynors said.

'He looks tired,' she said. She was relieved that they had not met him at the house.

'He looks tired,' she said. She was relieved that they hadn't met him at the house.

'I say,' Mynors began earnestly, after a pause, 'why shouldn't we get married soon, since the old gentleman seems rather to expect it? He's been rather awkward lately, hasn't he?'

'I say,' Mynors began seriously, after a pause, 'why don't we get married soon, since the old man seems to expect it? He's been a bit uncomfortable lately, hasn't he?'

This was the only reference made by Mynors to her father's temper. She nodded. 'How soon?' she asked.

This was the only mention Mynors made about her father's temper. She nodded. "How soon?" she asked.

'Well, I was just thinking. Suppose, for the sake of argument, this house turns out all right. I couldn't get it thoroughly done up much before the middle of January—couldn't begin till these people had moved. Suppose we said early in February?'

'Well, I was just thinking. Suppose, for the sake of argument, this house turns out okay. I couldn't get it fully finished until around the middle of January—I couldn't start until these people moved out. How about we say early in February?'

'Yes!'

'Yes!'

'Could you be ready by that time?'

'Can you be ready by then?'

'Oh, yes,' she answered, 'I could be ready.'

'Oh, yes,' she replied, 'I could be ready.'

'Well, why shouldn't we fix February, then?'

'Well, why shouldn't we fix February, then?'

'There's the question of Agnes,' she said.

'There's the question of Agnes,' she said.

'Yes; and there will always be the question of Agnes. Your father will have to get a housekeeper. You and I will be able to see after little Agnes, never fear.' So, with tenderness in his voice, he reassured her on that point.

'Yes; and there will always be the question of Agnes. Your father will need to hire a housekeeper. You and I will be able to look after little Agnes, don't worry.' So, with warmth in his voice, he comforted her about that.

'Why not February?' she reflected. 'Why not to-morrow, as father wants me out of the house?'

'Why not February?' she thought. 'Why not tomorrow, since dad wants me out of the house?'

It was agreed.

It’s a deal.

'I've taken the Priory, subject to your approval,' Henry said, less than a fortnight later. From that time he invariably referred to the place as the Priory.

"I've taken the Priory, pending your approval," Henry said, less than two weeks later. From that moment on, he always referred to the place as the Priory.


It was on the very night after this eager announcement that the approaching tragedy came one step nearer. Beatrice, in a modest evening-dress, with a white cloak—excited, hurried, and important—ran in to speak to Anna. The carriage was waiting outside. She and her father and mother had to attend a very important dinner at the mayor's house at Hillport, in connection with Mr. Sutton's impending mayoralty. Old Sarah Vodrey had just sent down a girl to say that she was unwell, and would be grateful if Mrs. Sutton or Beatrice would visit her. It was a most unreasonable time for such a summons, but Sarah was a fidgety old crotchet, and knew how frightfully good-natured Mrs. Sutton was. Would Anna mind going up to Toft End? And would Anna come out to the carriage and personally assure Mrs. Sutton that old Sarah should be attended to? If not, Beatrice was afraid her mother would take it into her head to do something stupid.

It was the very night after this eager announcement that the upcoming tragedy drew one step closer. Beatrice, in a simple evening dress with a white cloak—excited, rushed, and important—ran in to talk to Anna. The carriage was waiting outside. She, along with her father and mother, had to go to a very important dinner at the mayor's house in Hillport, related to Mr. Sutton's impending mayoralty. Old Sarah Vodrey had just sent a girl down to say she was unwell and would appreciate it if Mrs. Sutton or Beatrice could visit her. It was a really unreasonable time for such a request, but Sarah was a fidgety old stickler and knew how incredibly good-natured Mrs. Sutton was. Would Anna mind going up to Toft End? And could Anna come out to the carriage to personally reassure Mrs. Sutton that old Sarah would be taken care of? If not, Beatrice was worried her mother might decide to do something foolish.

'It's very good of you, Anna,' said Mrs. Sutton, when Anna went outside with Beatrice. 'But I think I'd better go myself. The poor old thing may feel slighted if I don't, and Beatrice can well take my place at this affair at Hillport, which I've no mind for.' She was already half out of the carriage.

"It's really nice of you, Anna," Mrs. Sutton said as Anna went outside with Beatrice. "But I think I should go myself. The poor old thing might feel neglected if I don’t, and Beatrice can easily take my spot at this event in Hillport, which I’m not really interested in." She was already halfway out of the carriage.

'Nothing of the kind,' said Anna firmly, pushing her back. 'I shall be delighted to go and do what I can.'

'Nothing like that,' Anna said confidently, pushing her back. 'I’d be happy to go and help however I can.'

'That's right, Anna,' said the Alderman from the darkness of the carriage, where his shirt-front gleamed; 'Bee said you'd go, and we're much obliged to ye.'

"That's right, Anna," said the Alderman from the shadows of the carriage, where his shirt front shone; "Bee said you'd be coming, and we really appreciate it."

'I expect it will be nothing,' said Beatrice, as the vehicle drove off; 'Sarah has served mother this trick before now.'

"I expect it will be nothing," Beatrice said as the vehicle drove away; "Sarah has pulled this trick on Mom before."

As Anna opened the garden-gate of the Priory she discerned a figure amid the rank bushes, which had been allowed to grow till they almost met across the narrow path leading to the front door of the house.

As Anna opened the garden gate of the Priory, she spotted a figure among the overgrown bushes that had been left to grow until they nearly blocked the narrow path leading to the front door of the house.

It was a thick and mysterious night—such a night as death chooses; and Anna jumped in vague terror at the apparition.

It was a dark and eerie night—just the kind of night that death tends to pick; and Anna flinched in confusion at the ghostly figure.

'Who's there?' said a voice sharply.

'Who's there?' a voice said sharply.

'It's me,' said Anna. 'Miss Vodrey sent down to ask Mrs. Sutton to come up and see her, but Mrs. Sutton had an engagement, so I came instead.'

'It's me,' said Anna. 'Miss Vodrey asked Mrs. Sutton to come up and see her, but Mrs. Sutton was busy, so I came instead.'

The figure moved forward; it was Willie Price.

The figure moved closer; it was Willie Price.

He peered into her face, and she could see the mortal pallor of his cheeks.

He looked into her face, and she could see the pale color of his cheeks.

'Oh!' he exclaimed, 'it's Miss Tellwright, is it? Will ye come in, Miss Tellwright?'

'Oh!' he exclaimed, 'it's Miss Tellwright, right? Will you come in, Miss Tellwright?'

She followed him with beating heart, alarmed, apprehensive. The front door stood wide open, and at the far end of the gloomy passage a faint light shone from the open door of the kitchen. 'This way,' he said. In the large, bare, stone-floored kitchen Sarah Vodrey sat limp and with closed eyes in an old rocking-chair close to the fireless range. The window, which gave on to the street, was open; through that window Sarah, in her extremity, had called the child who ran down to Mrs. Sutton's. On the deal table were a dirty cup and saucer, a tea-pot, bread, butter, and a lighted candle—sole illumination of the chamber.

She followed him with a pounding heart, worried and anxious. The front door was wide open, and at the far end of the dark hallway, a faint light was coming from the open door of the kitchen. “This way,” he said. In the large, empty kitchen with a stone floor, Sarah Vodrey sat slumped and with her eyes closed in an old rocking chair near the cold stove. The window, which faced the street, was open; through that window, Sarah, in her distress, had called out to the child who ran down to Mrs. Sutton’s. On the wooden table were a dirty cup and saucer, a teapot, bread, butter, and a lit candle—the only source of light in the room.

'I come home, and I find this,' he said.

'I come home, and I find this,' he said.

Daunted for a moment by the scene of misery, Anna could say nothing.

Daunted for a moment by the scene of misery, Anna could say nothing.

'I find this,' he repeated, as if accusing God of spitefulness; and he lifted the candle to show the apparently insensible form of the woman. Sarah's wrinkled and seamed face had the flush of fever, and the features were drawn into the expression of a terrible anxiety; her hands hung loose; she breathed like a dog after a run.

"I find this," he repeated, as if blaming God for being cruel; and he lifted the candle to reveal the seemingly unresponsive figure of the woman. Sarah's wrinkled and lined face was flushed with fever, and her features were twisted into a look of deep worry; her hands hung limply; she gasped for breath like a dog after a sprint.

'I wanted her to have the doctor yesterday,' he said, 'but she wouldn't. Ever since you and Mr. Mynors called she's been cleaning the house down. She said you'd happen be coming again soon, and the place wasn't fit to be seen. No use me arguing with her.'

"I wanted her to see the doctor yesterday," he said, "but she wouldn't. Ever since you and Mr. Mynors visited, she's been cleaning the house nonstop. She said you would be coming back again soon, and the place wasn't fit to be seen. There's no point in me arguing with her."

'You had better run for a doctor,' Anna said.

"You should go get a doctor," Anna said.

'I was just going off when you came. She's been complaining more of her rheumatism, and pain in her hips, lately.'

'I was just leaving when you arrived. She's been complaining more about her rheumatism and hip pain lately.'

'Go now; fetch Mr. Macpherson, and call at our house and say I shall stay here all night. Wait a moment.' Seeing that he was exhausted from lack of food, she cut a thick piece of bread-and-butter. 'Eat this as you go,' she said.

'Go now; get Mr. Macpherson, and stop by our house to say I’ll be staying here all night. Wait a moment.' Seeing that he was drained from not eating, she sliced off a thick piece of bread and butter. 'Eat this as you go,' she said.

'I can't eat; it'll choke me.'

'I can't eat; it'll get stuck in my throat.'

'Let it choke you,' she said. 'You've got to swallow it.'

'Let it choke you,' she said. 'You've got to swallow it.'

Child of a hundred sorrows, he must be treated as a child. As soon as Willie was gone she took off her hat and jacket, and lit a lamp; there was no gas in the kitchen.

Child of a hundred sorrows, he must be treated like a child. As soon as Willie left, she took off her hat and jacket and turned on a lamp; there was no gas in the kitchen.

'What's that light?' the old woman asked peevishly, rousing herself and sitting up. 'I doubt I'll be late with Willie's tea. Eh, Miss Terrick, what's amiss?'

"What's that light?" the old woman asked irritably, waking up and sitting up. "I doubt I'll be late with Willie's tea. Hey, Miss Terrick, what's wrong?"

'You're not quite well, Miss Vodrey,' Anna answered. 'If you'll show me your room, I'll see you into bed.' Without giving her a moment for hesitation, Anna seized the feeble creature under the arms, and so, coaxing, supporting, carrying, got her to bed. At length she lay on the narrow mattress, panting, exhausted. It was Sarah's final effort.

"You're not feeling well, Miss Vodrey," Anna replied. "If you show me your room, I'll help you to bed." Without giving her a chance to hesitate, Anna lifted the weak woman under her arms and, gently supporting and guiding her, got her into bed. Finally, she lay on the narrow mattress, breathing heavily and exhausted. It was Sarah's last effort.

Anna lit fires in the kitchen and in the bedroom, and when Willie returned with Dr. Macpherson, water was boiling and tea made.

Anna lit fires in the kitchen and in the bedroom, and when Willie came back with Dr. Macpherson, water was boiling and tea was ready.

'You'd better get a woman in,' said the doctor curtly, in the kitchen, when he had finished his examination of Sarah. 'Some neighbour for to-night, and I'll send a nurse up from the cottage-hospital early to-morrow morning. Not that it will be the least use. She must have been dying for the last two days at least. She's got pericarditis and pleurisy. She's breathing I don't know how many to the minute, and her temperature is just about as high as it can be. It all follows from rheumatism, and then taking cold. Gross carelessness and neglect all through! I've no patience with such work.' He turned angrily to Willie. 'I don't know what on earth you were thinking of, Mr. Price, not to send for me earlier.'

"You should really get a woman in," the doctor said curtly in the kitchen after finishing his exam of Sarah. "Find a neighbor for tonight, and I'll send a nurse from the cottage hospital first thing tomorrow morning. Not that it will make much difference. She must have been dying for at least the last two days. She's got pericarditis and pleurisy. Her breathing is off the charts, and her temperature is about as high as it can get. This all comes from rheumatism and then catching a chill. Utter carelessness and neglect all around! I have no patience for such incompetence." He turned angrily to Willie. "I really don't know what you were thinking, Mr. Price, by not calling for me sooner."

Willie, abashed and guilty, found nothing to say. His eye had the meek wistfulness of Holman Hunt's 'Scapegoat.'

Willie, embarrassed and feeling guilty, couldn't find anything to say. His expression had the gentle longing of Holman Hunt's 'Scapegoat.'

'Mr. Price wanted her to have the doctor,' said Anna, defending him with warmth; 'but she wouldn't. He is out at the works all day till late at night. How was he to know how she was? She could walk about.'

'Mr. Price wanted her to see the doctor,' Anna said, passionately defending him; 'but she wouldn’t. He’s at the factory all day until late at night. How was he supposed to know how she was doing? She could walk around.'

The tall doctor glanced at Anna in surprise, and at once modified his tone. 'Yes,' he said, 'that's the curious thing. It passes me how she managed to get about. But there is no knowing what an obstinate woman won't force herself to do. I'll send the medicine up to-night, and come along myself with the nurse early to-morrow. Meantime, keep carefully to my instructions.'

The tall doctor looked at Anna in surprise and quickly changed his tone. "Yes," he said, "that's the strange part. I can’t understand how she managed to get around. But you never know what a determined woman will push herself to do. I’ll send the medicine up tonight and come over myself with the nurse early tomorrow. In the meantime, please stick closely to my instructions."

That night remains for ever fixed in Anna's memory: the grim rooms, echoing and shadowy; the countless journeys up and down dark stairs and passages; Willie sitting always immovable in the kitchen, idle because there was nothing for him to do; Sarah incessantly panting on the truckle-bed; the hired woman from up the street, buxom, kindly, useful, but fatuous in the endless monotony of her commiserations.

That night is forever etched in Anna's memory: the eerie rooms, echoing and dim; the countless trips up and down dark stairs and hallways; Willie always sitting still in the kitchen, idle because there was nothing for him to do; Sarah constantly gasping on the small bed; the woman from up the street, plump, kind, helpful, but dull in the endless routine of her pitying comments.

Towards morning, Sarah Vodrey gave sign of a desire to talk.

Towards morning, Sarah Vodrey showed that she wanted to talk.

'I've fought the fight,' she murmured to Anna, who alone was in the bedroom with her, 'I've fought the fight; I've kept the faith. In that box there ye'll see a purse. There's seventeen pounds six in it. That will pay for the funeral, and Willie must have what's over. There would ha' been more for the lad, but he never paid me no wages this two years past. I never troubled him.'

"I've fought the fight," she whispered to Anna, who was the only one in the bedroom with her, "I've fought the fight; I've kept the faith. In that box, you'll find a purse. There's seventeen pounds six in it. That will cover the funeral, and Willie should get whatever's left. There would have been more for him, but he hasn't paid me any wages for the past two years. I never bothered him."

'Don't tell Willie that,' Anna said impetuously.

"Don't tell Willie that," Anna said impulsively.

'Eh, bless ye, no!' said the dying drudge, and then seemed to doze.

'Eh, bless you, no!' said the dying worker, and then appeared to doze off.

Anna went to the kitchen, and sent the woman upstairs.

Anna went to the kitchen and sent the woman upstairs.

'How is she?' asked Willie, without stirring. Anna shook her head. 'Neither her nor me will be here much longer, I'm thinking,' he said, smiling wearily.

'How is she?' asked Willie, not moving. Anna shook her head. 'Neither she nor I will be here much longer, I think,' he said, smiling tiredly.

'What?' she exclaimed, startled.

"What?" she said, surprised.

'Mr. Sutton has arranged to sell our business as a going-concern—some people at Turnhill are buying it. I shall go to Australia; there's no room for me here. The creditors have promised to allow me twenty-five pounds, and I can get an assisted passage. Bursley'll know me no more. But—but—I shall always remember you and what you've done.'

'Mr. Sutton has organized the sale of our business as a going concern—some people from Turnhill are purchasing it. I’ll be heading to Australia; there’s no place for me here. The creditors have agreed to give me twenty-five pounds, and I can get a subsidized ticket. Bursley will be a thing of the past for me. But—but—I will always remember you and everything you’ve done.'

She longed to kneel at his feet, and to comfort him, and to cry: 'It is I who have ruined you—driven your father to cheating his servant, to crime, to suicide; driven you to forgery, and turned you out of your house which your old servant killed herself in making clean for me. I have wronged you, and I love you like a mother because I have wronged you and because I saved you from prison.'

She wished she could kneel at his feet, comfort him, and cry out: 'I’m the one who has ruined you—made your father cheat his servant, commit a crime, and take his own life; pushed you into forgery, and forced you out of your home where your former servant killed herself to keep it clean for me. I’ve hurt you, and I love you like a mother because of what I’ve done to you and because I saved you from going to prison.'

But she said nothing except: 'Some of us will miss you.'

But she only said, "Some of us will miss you."

The next day Sarah Vodrey died—she who had never lived save in the fetters of slavery and fanaticism. After fifty years of ceaseless labour, she had gained the affection of one person, and enough money to pay for her own funeral. Willie Price took a cheap lodging with the woman who had been called in on the night of Sarah's collapse. Before Christmas he was to sail for Melbourne. The Priory, deserted, gave up its rickety furniture to a van from Hanbridge, where, in an auction-room, the frail sticks lost their identity in a medley of other sticks, and ceased to be. Then the bricklayer, the plasterer, the painter, and the paper-hanger came to the Priory, and whistled and sang in it.

The next day, Sarah Vodrey died—someone who had only ever lived in the constraints of slavery and fanaticism. After fifty years of nonstop work, she had earned the affection of one person and enough money to pay for her own funeral. Willie Price found a cheap place to stay with the woman who had been called that night when Sarah collapsed. He was set to sail for Melbourne before Christmas. The Priory, now empty, surrendered its rickety furniture to a van from Hanbridge, where, in an auction room, the fragile pieces lost their identity among a jumble of other items and disappeared. Then the bricklayer, plasterer, painter, and paperhanger arrived at the Priory, whistling and singing as they worked.




CHAPTER XIII

THE BAZAAR

The Wesleyan Bazaar, the greatest undertaking of its kind ever known in Bursley, gradually became a cloud which filled the entire social horizon. Mrs. Sutton, organiser of the Sunday-school stall, pressed all her friends into the service, and a fortnight after the death of Sarah Vodrey, Anna and even Agnes gave much of their spare time to the work, which was carried on under pressure increasing daily as the final moments approached. This was well for Anna, in that it diverted her thoughts by keeping her energies fully engaged. One morning, however, it occurred to Mrs. Sutton to reflect that Anna, at such a period of life, should be otherwise employed. Anna had called at the Suttons' to deliver some finished garments.

The Wesleyan Bazaar, the largest event of its kind ever seen in Bursley, gradually became a topic that dominated social conversations. Mrs. Sutton, who was in charge of the Sunday-school booth, recruited all her friends to help out, and two weeks after Sarah Vodrey's death, both Anna and Agnes devoted a lot of their free time to the effort, which grew more demanding as the deadline approached. This was good for Anna since it kept her occupied and distracted. One morning, though, Mrs. Sutton started to think that Anna, at this stage in her life, should be doing something else. Anna had stopped by the Suttons' to drop off some finished garments.

'My dear,' she said, 'I am very much obliged to you for all this industry. But I've been thinking that as you are to be married in February you ought to be preparing your things.'

'My dear,' she said, 'thanks so much for all your hard work. But I've been thinking that since you're getting married in February, you should start getting your things ready.'

'My things!' Anna repeated idly; and then she remembered Mynors' phrase, on the hill, 'Can you be ready by that time?'

'My things!' Anna said absentmindedly; then she recalled Mynors' comment on the hill, 'Can you be ready by that time?'

'Yes,' said Mrs. Sutton; 'but possibly you've been getting forward with them on the quiet.'

'Yes,' said Mrs. Sutton; 'but maybe you've been making progress with them secretly.'

'Tell me,' said Anna, with an air of interest; 'I've meant to ask you before: Is it the bride's place to provide all the house-linen, and that sort of thing?'

'Tell me,' Anna said with genuine interest, 'I've been meaning to ask you: Is it the bride's responsibility to provide all the house linen and stuff like that?'

'It was in my day; but those things alter so. The bride took all the house-linen to her husband, and as many clothes for herself as would last a year; that was the rule. We used to stitch everything at home in those days—everything; and we had what we called a "bottom drawer" to store them in. As soon as a girl passed her fifteenth birthday, she began to sew for the "bottom drawer." But all those things change so, I dare say it's different now.'

'It was in my day; but those things change so much. The bride took all the household linens to her husband, and enough clothes for herself to last a year; that was the tradition. We used to make everything at home back then—literally everything; and we had what we called a "bottom drawer" to keep them in. As soon as a girl turned fifteen, she started sewing for the "bottom drawer." But all those things change so much; I bet it’s different now.'

'How much will it cost to buy everything, do you think?' Anna asked.

'How much do you think it will cost to buy everything?' Anna asked.

Just then Beatrice entered the room.

Just then, Beatrice walked into the room.

'Beatrice, Anna is inquiring how much it will cost to buy her trousseau, and the house-linen. What do you say?'

'Beatrice, Anna is asking how much it will cost to buy her trousseau and the linens for the house. What do you think?'

'Oh!' Beatrice replied, without any hesitation, 'a couple of hundred at least.'

'Oh!' Beatrice replied, without any hesitation, 'a few hundred at least.'

Mrs. Sutton, reading Anna's face, smiled reassuringly. 'Nonsense, Bee! I dare say you could do it on a hundred with care, Anna.'

Mrs. Sutton, reading Anna's expression, smiled reassuringly. 'That's silly, Bee! I bet you could manage it on a hundred with a bit of care, Anna.'

'Why should Anna want to do it with care?' Beatrice asked curtly.

'Why should Anna want to do it carefully?' Beatrice asked sharply.

Anna went straight across the road to her father, and asked him for a hundred pounds of her own money. She had not spoken to him, save under necessity, since the evening spent at the Suttons'.

Anna walked directly across the street to her father and asked him for a hundred pounds of her own money. She hadn't talked to him, except when necessary, since the evening at the Suttons'.

'What's afoot now?' he questioned savagely.

'What's going on now?' he asked angrily.

'I must buy things for the wedding—clothes and things, father.'

'I need to buy stuff for the wedding—clothes and other things, Dad.'

'Ay! clothes! clothes! What clothes dost want? A few pounds will cover them.'

'Ay! clothes! clothes! What clothes do you want? A few pounds will cover them.'

'There'll be all the linen for the house.'

'There will be all the linens for the house.'

'Linen for—— It's none thy place for buy that.'

'Linen for—— It's not your place to buy that.'

'Yes, father, it is.'

'Yes, Dad, it is.'

'I say it isna',' he shouted.

'I say it isn't,' he shouted.

'But I've asked Mrs. Sutton, and she says it is.'

'But I asked Mrs. Sutton, and she says it is.'

'What business an' ye for go blabbing thy affairs all over Bosley? I say it isna' thy place for buy linen, and let that be sufficient. Go and get dinner. It's nigh on twelve now.'

'What are you doing talking about your stuff all over Bosley? I say it’s not your business to buy linen, and that should be enough. Go and get dinner. It’s almost twelve now.'

That evening, when Agnes had gone to bed, she resumed the struggle.

That evening, after Agnes had gone to bed, she picked up the fight again.

'Father, I must have that hundred pounds. I really must. I mean it.'

'Dad, I really need that hundred pounds. I truly do. I mean it.'

'Thou means it! What?'

'You mean it! What?'

'I mean I must have a hundred pounds.'

'I mean I must have a hundred bucks.'

'I'd advise thee to tak' care o' thy tongue, my lass. Thou means it!'

"I'd advise you to take care of your tongue, my girl. You mean it!"

'But you needn't give it me all at once,' she pursued.

'But you don't have to give it to me all at once,' she continued.

He gazed at her, glowering.

He stared at her, glaring.

'I shanna' give it thee. It's Henry's place for buy th' house-linen.'

'I won't give it to you. It's Henry's place to buy the household linens.'

'Father, it isn't.' Her voice broke, but only for an instant. 'I'm asking you for my own money. You seem to want to make me miserable just before my wedding.'

'Father, it isn't.' Her voice cracked, but only for a moment. 'I'm asking you for my own money. You seem to want to make me unhappy right before my wedding.'

'I wish to God thou 'dst never seen Henry Mynors. It's given thee pride and made thee undutiful.'

'I wish to God you had never met Henry Mynors. It's made you proud and disrespectful.'

'I'm only asking you for my own money.'

'I'm just asking you for my own money.'

Her calm insistence maddened him. Jumping up from his chair, he stamped out of the room, and she heard him strike a match in his office. Presently he returned, and threw angrily on to the table in front of her a cheque-book and pass-book. The deposit-book she had always kept herself for convenience of paying into the bank.

Her calm insistence drove him crazy. Jumping up from his chair, he stormed out of the room, and she heard him strike a match in his office. Soon, he came back and angrily tossed a checkbook and passbook onto the table in front of her. She had always kept the deposit book herself for the convenience of making bank deposits.

'Here,' he said scornfully, 'tak' thy traps and ne'er speak to me again. I wash my hands of ye. Tak' 'em and do what ye'n a mind. Chuck thy money into th' cut[1] for aught I care.'

'Here,' he said with contempt, 'take your stuff and don’t ever talk to me again. I’m done with you. Take it and do whatever you want. Toss your money into the gutter for all I care.'

The next evening Henry came up. She observed that his face had a grave look, but intent on her own difficulties she did not remark on it, and proceeded at once to do what she resolved to do. It was a cold night in November, yet the miser, wrathfully sullen, chose to sit in his office without a fire. Agnes was working sums in the kitchen.

The next evening, Henry came over. She noticed that his face looked serious, but focused on her own issues, she didn’t mention it and went straight to what she had decided to do. It was a cold November night, yet the miser, angrily sulking, chose to sit in his office without any heat. Agnes was doing math problems in the kitchen.

'Henry,' Anna began, 'I've had a difficulty with father, and I must tell you.'

'Henry,' Anna started, 'I've had a problem with Dad, and I need to tell you.'

'Not about the wedding, I hope,' he said.

'Not about the wedding, I hope,' he said.

'It was about money. Of course, Henry, I can't get married without a lot of money.'

'It was about money. Of course, Henry, I can't get married without a lot of money.'

'Why not?' he inquired.

"Why not?" he asked.

'I've my own things to get,' she said, 'and I've all the house-linen to buy.'

'I've got my own stuff to get,' she said, 'and I need to buy all the house linens.'

'Oh! You buy the house-linen, do you?' She saw that he was relieved by that information.

'Oh! You’re the one buying the house linens, huh?' She noticed that he seemed relieved by that news.

'Of course. Well, I told father I must have a hundred pounds, and he wouldn't give it me. And when I stuck to him he got angry—you know he can't bear to see money spent—and at last he get a little savage and gave me my bank-books, and said he'd have nothing more to do with my money.'

'Of course. Well, I told Dad I needed a hundred pounds, and he wouldn’t give it to me. And when I insisted, he got angry—you know he can't stand seeing money spent—and eventually he got a bit wild and handed me my bank books, saying he wanted nothing more to do with my money.'

Henry's face broke into a laugh, and Anna was obliged to smile. 'Capital!' he said. 'Couldn't be better.'

Henry's face lit up with laughter, and Anna couldn't help but smile. 'Great!' he said. 'It couldn't be better.'

'I want you to tell me how much I've got in the bank,' she said. 'I only know I'm always paying in odd cheques.'

'I want you to tell me how much I have in the bank,' she said. 'I only know that I'm always depositing strange checks.'

He examined the three books. 'A very tidy bit,' he said; 'something over two hundred and fifty pounds. So you can draw cheques at your ease.'

He looked over the three books. 'A very neat amount,' he said; 'a little over two hundred and fifty pounds. So you can write checks comfortably.'

'Draw me a cheque for twenty pounds,' she said; and then, while he wrote: 'Henry, after we're married, I shall want you to take charge of all this.'

'Write me a check for twenty pounds,' she said; and then, while he wrote, she added, 'Henry, once we're married, I’ll need you to handle all of this.'

'Yes, of course; I will do that, dear. But your money will be yours. There ought to be a settlement on you. Still, if your father says nothing, it is not for me to say anything.'

'Yes, of course; I’ll do that, dear. But your money will be yours. There should be a settlement for you. Still, if your father doesn’t say anything, it’s not for me to say anything.'

'Father will say nothing—now,' she said. 'You've never shown any interest in it, Henry; but as we're talking of money, I may as well tell you that father says I'm worth fifty thousand pounds.'

'Father won't say anything—now,' she said. 'You've never shown any interest in it, Henry; but since we're talking about money, I might as well tell you that father says I'm worth fifty thousand pounds.'

The man of business was astonished and enraptured beyond measure. His countenance shone with delight.

The businessman was completely amazed and thrilled. His face radiated happiness.

'Surely not!' he protested formally.

"Definitely not!" he protested formally.

'That's what father told me, and he made me read a list of shares, and so on.'

'That's what my dad told me, and he made me read a list of stocks, and so on.'

'We will go slow, to begin with,' said Mynors solemnly. He had not expected more than fifteen, or twenty thousand pounds, and even this sum had dazzled his imagination. He was glad that he had only taken the house at Toft End on a yearly tenancy. He now saw himself the dominant figure in all the Five Towns.

"We'll take it slow to start," Mynors said seriously. He hadn't expected more than fifteen or twenty thousand pounds, and even that amount amazed him. He was relieved that he had only rented the house at Toft End on a yearly basis. He could now picture himself as the central figure in all the Five Towns.

Later in the evening he disclosed, perfunctorily, the matter which had been a serious weight on his mind when he entered the house, but which this revelation of vast wealth had diminished to a trifle. Titus Price had been the treasurer of the building fund which the bazaar was designed to assist. Mynors had assumed the position of the dead man, and that day, in going through the accounts, he had discovered that a sum of fifty pounds was missing.

Later in the evening, he casually mentioned the issue that had been seriously bothering him when he arrived home, but this revelation of immense wealth had made it seem trivial. Titus Price had been the treasurer of the building fund that the bazaar was meant to support. Mynors had taken over the role of the deceased, and that day, while reviewing the accounts, he found that fifty pounds was missing.

'It's a dreadful thing for Willie, if it gets about,' he said; 'a tale of that sort would follow him to Australia.'

"It's a terrible thing for Willie if people find out," he said; "a story like that would follow him all the way to Australia."

'Oh, Henry, it is!' she exclaimed, sorrow-stricken, 'but we mustn't let it get about. Let us pay the money ourselves. You must enter it in the books and say nothing.'

'Oh, Henry, it is!' she exclaimed, filled with sorrow, 'but we can’t let anyone find out. Let’s pay the money ourselves. You need to record it in the books and keep it quiet.'

'That is impossible,' he said firmly. 'I can't alter the accounts. At least I can't alter the bank-book and the vouchers. The auditor would detect it in a minute. Besides, I should not be doing my duty if I kept a thing like this from the Superintendent-minister. He, at any rate, must know, and perhaps the stewards.'

"That's impossible," he said firmly. "I can't change the accounts. At least I can't change the bank records and the receipts. The auditor would catch it right away. Besides, I wouldn't be doing my job if I kept something like this from the Superintendent-minister. He, at the very least, needs to know, and maybe the stewards too."

'But you can urge them to say nothing. Tell them that you will make it good. I will write a cheque at once.'

'But you can tell them to stay quiet about it. Let them know that you'll take care of it. I'll write a check right away.'

'I had meant to find the fifty myself,' he said. It was a peddling sum to him now.

'I intended to find the fifty myself,' he said. It seemed like a small amount to him now.

'Let me pay half, then,' she asked.

'Let me pay half, then,' she said.

'If you like,' he urged, smiling faintly at her eagerness. 'The thing is bound to be kept quiet—it would create such a frightful scandal. Poor old chap!' he added, carelessly, 'I suppose he was hard run, and meant to put it back—as they all do mean.'

'If you want,' he encouraged, smiling slightly at her enthusiasm. 'This has to stay under wraps—it would cause such a terrible scandal. Poor guy!' he added, dismissively, 'I guess he was really struggling and intended to return it—as everyone always does.'

But it was useless for Mynors to affect depression of spirits, or mournful sympathy with the errors of a dead sinner. The fifty thousand danced a jig in his brain that night.

But it was pointless for Mynors to pretend to be downcast or to feel sad about the mistakes of a deceased sinner. The fifty thousand danced a jig in his mind that night.

Anna was absorbed in contemplating the misfortune of Willie Price. She prayed wildly that he might never learn the full depth of his father's fall. The miserable robbery of Sarah's wages was buried for evermore, and this new delinquency, which all would regard as flagrant sacrilege, must be buried also. A soul less loyal than Anna's might have feared that Willie, a self-convicted forger, had been a party to the embezzlement; but Anna knew that it could not be so.

Anna was deep in thought about Willie Price's misfortune. She desperately hoped he would never find out the full extent of his father's disgrace. The terrible theft of Sarah's wages was gone for good, and this new wrongdoing, which everyone would see as a shocking betrayal, also needed to be hidden away. Anyone less loyal than Anna might have worried that Willie, who admitted to forging checks, had something to do with the embezzlement; but Anna was confident that wasn't the case.

It was characteristic of Mynors' cautious prudence that, the first intoxication having passed, he made no further reference of any kind to Anna's fortune. The arrangements for their married life were planned on a scale which ignored the fifty thousand pounds. For both their sakes he wished to avoid all friction with the miser, at any rate until his status as Anna's husband would enable him to enforce her rights, if that should be necessary, with dignity and effectiveness. He did not precisely anticipate trouble, but the fact had not escaped him that Ephraim still held the whole of Anna's securities. He was in no hurry to enlarge his borders. He knew that there were twenty-four hours in every day, three hundred and sixty-five days in every year, and thirty good years in life still left to him; and therefore that there would be ample time, after the wedding, for the execution of his purposes in regard to that fifty thousand pounds. Meanwhile, he told Anna that he had set aside two hundred pounds for the purchase of furniture for the Priory—a modest sum; but he judged it sufficient. His method was to buy a piece at a time, always second-hand, but always good. The bargain-hunt was up, and Anna soon yielded to its mild satisfactions. In the matter of her trousseau and the house-linen, Anna, having obtained the needed money—at so dear a cost—found yet another obstacle in the imminent bazaar, which occupied Mrs. Sutton and Beatrice so completely that they could not contrive any opportunity to assist her in shopping. It was decided between them that every article should be bought ready-made and seamed, and that the first week of the New Year, if indeed Mrs. Sutton survived the bazaar, should be entirely and absolutely devoted to Anna's business.

It was typical of Mynors' careful nature that, once the initial excitement wore off, he didn't mention Anna's money again. They planned their married life without considering the fifty thousand pounds. For both their sake, he wanted to avoid any conflict with the miser, at least until he became Anna's husband and could assert her rights with dignity and effectiveness if needed. He didn't expect any trouble, but he realized that Ephraim still controlled all of Anna's securities. He wasn’t in a rush to expand his plans. He knew there were twenty-four hours in a day, three hundred and sixty-five days in a year, and thirty good years left in his life, so he figured there’d be plenty of time after the wedding to deal with that fifty thousand pounds. In the meantime, he told Anna he had set aside two hundred pounds for furniture for the Priory—a modest amount, but he thought it was enough. His approach was to buy one piece at a time, always second-hand but always of good quality. The hunt for bargains was on, and Anna quickly embraced its simple pleasures. Regarding her trousseau and house linens, Anna managed to get the necessary money—at a great cost—but then faced another hurdle: the upcoming bazaar, which absorbed Mrs. Sutton and Beatrice so much that they couldn’t find time to help her shop. They agreed that everything would be bought ready-made and tailored, and that the first week of the New Year, if Mrs. Sutton survived the bazaar, would be entirely dedicated to Anna’s needs.

At nights, when she had leisure to think, Anna was astonished how during the day she had forgotten her preoccupations in the activities precendent to the bazaar, or in choosing furniture with Mynors. But she never slept without thinking of Willie Price, and hoping that no further disaster might overtake him. The incident of the embezzled fifty pounds had been closed, and she had given a cheque for twenty-five pounds to Mynors. He had acquainted the minister with the facts, and Mr. Banks had decided that the two circuit stewards must be informed. Beyond these the scandalous secret was not to go. But Anna wondered whether a secret shared by five persons could long remain a secret.

At night, when she had the time to think, Anna was surprised at how during the day she had managed to forget her worries in the activities leading up to the bazaar or while picking out furniture with Mynors. However, she never went to sleep without thinking about Willie Price and hoping that no more trouble would come his way. The issue with the missing fifty pounds had been resolved, and she had given Mynors a check for twenty-five pounds. He had informed the minister about the situation, and Mr. Banks decided that the two circuit stewards needed to be told. Beyond those, the scandalous secret was not supposed to spread. But Anna wondered if a secret shared by five people could really stay hidden for long.

The bazaar was a triumphant and unparalleled success, and, of the seven stalls, the Sunday-school stall stood first each night in the nightly returns. The scene in the town-hall, on the fourth and final night, a Saturday, was as delirious and gay as a carnival. Four hundred and twenty pounds had been raised up to tea-time, and it was the impassioned desire of everyone to achieve five hundred. The price of admission had been reduced to threepence, in order that the artisan might enter and spend his wages in an excellent cause. The seven stalls, ranged round the room like so many bowers of beauty, draped and frilled and floriated, and still laden with countless articles of use and ornament, were continually reinforced with purchasers by emissaries canvassing the crowd which filled the middle of the paper-strewn floor. The horse was not only taken to the water, but compelled to drink; and many a man who, outside, would have laughed at the risk of being robbed, was robbed openly, shamelessly, under the gaze of ministers and class-leaders. Bouquets were sold at a shilling each, and at the refreshment stall a glass of milk cost sixpence. The noise rivalled that of a fair; there was no quiet anywhere, save in the farthest recess of each stall, where the lady in supreme charge of it, like a spider in the middle of its web, watched customers and cash-box with equal cupidity.

The bazaar was a huge and one-of-a-kind success, and out of the seven stalls, the Sunday-school stall came in first place each night in the results. The scene in the town hall on the fourth and final night, a Saturday, was as lively and cheerful as a carnival. By tea time, four hundred and twenty pounds had been raised, and everyone was eager to reach five hundred. The admission price had been dropped to threepence so that workers could come in and spend their wages on a good cause. The seven stalls, arranged around the room like beautiful displays, decorated with drapes and flowers, and still loaded with countless items of use and decoration, were constantly supported by buyers thanks to volunteers encouraging the crowd that filled the paper-covered floor. The horse was not only led to water but forced to drink; many men who would have laughed at the threat of being robbed outside were openly and brazenly robbed, right in front of ministers and class leaders. Bouquets were sold for a shilling each, and at the refreshment stall, a glass of milk cost sixpence. The noise was as loud as a fair; there was no silence anywhere except in the farthest corner of each stall, where the lady in charge, like a spider in the middle of its web, watched customers and the cash box with equal greed.

Mrs. Sutton, at seven o'clock, had not returned from tea, and Anna and Beatrice, who managed the Sunday-school stall in her absence, feared that she had at last succumbed under the strain. But shortly afterwards she hurried back breathless to her place.

Mrs. Sutton hadn't come back from tea by seven o'clock, and Anna and Beatrice, who were running the Sunday-school stall while she was away, worried that she might have finally been overwhelmed. But soon after, she rushed back, out of breath, to her spot.

'See that, Anna? It will be reckoned in our returns,' she said, exhibiting a piece of paper. It was Ephraim's cheque for twenty-five pounds promised months ago, but on a condition which had not been fulfilled.

'See that, Anna? It will count towards our returns,' she said, showing a piece of paper. It was Ephraim's check for twenty-five pounds that had been promised months ago, but only if a condition that hadn't been met was fulfilled.

'She has the secret of persuading him,' thought Anna. 'Why have I never found it?'

'She knows how to convince him,' Anna thought. 'Why have I never figured it out?'

Then Agnes, in a new white frock, came up with three shillings, proceeds of bouquets.

Then Agnes, in a new white dress, approached with three shillings, the earnings from selling bouquets.

'But you must take that to the flower-stall, my pet,' said Mrs. Sutton.

'But you have to take that to the flower stand, sweetheart,' said Mrs. Sutton.

'Can't I give it to you?' the child pleaded. 'I want your stall to be the best.'

"Can't I give it to you?" the child begged. "I want your stand to be the best."

Mynors arrived next, with something concealed in tissue-paper. He removed the paper, and showed, in a frame of crimson plush, a common white plate decorated with a simple band and line, and a monogram in the centre—'A.T.' Anna blushed, recognising the plate which she had painted that afternoon in July at Mynors' works.

Mynors showed up next, holding something wrapped in tissue paper. He took off the paper and revealed, in a crimson plush frame, an ordinary white plate decorated with a simple band and line, with a monogram in the center—'A.T.' Anna blushed, recognizing the plate she had painted that afternoon in July at Mynors' workshop.

'Can you sell this?' Mynors asked Mrs. Sutton.

'Can you sell this?' Mynors asked Mrs. Sutton.

'I'll try to,' said Mrs. Sutton doubtfully—not in the secret. 'What's it meant for?'

"I'll try to," Mrs. Sutton said uncertainly— not in the know. "What's it for?"

'Try to sell it to me,' said Mynors.

"Try to sell it to me," Mynors said.

'Well,' she laughed, 'what will you give?'

'Well,' she laughed, 'what are you willing to offer?'

'A couple of sovereigns.'

'A couple of coins.'

'Make it guineas.'

'Make it in guineas.'

He paid the money, and requested Anna to keep the plate for him.

He paid the money and asked Anna to hold onto the plate for him.

At nine o'clock it was announced that, though raffling was forbidden, the bazaar would be enlivened by an auction. A licensed auctioneer was brought, and the sale commenced. The auctioneer, however, failed to attune himself to the wild spirit of the hour, and his professional efforts would have resulted in a fiasco had not Mynors, perceiving the danger, leaped to the platform and masterfully assumed the hammer. Mynors surpassed himself in the kind of wit that amuses an excited crowd, and the auction soon monopolised the attention of the room; it was always afterwards remembered as the crowning success of the bazaar. The incredible man took ten pounds in twenty minutes. During this episode Anna, who had been left alone in the stall, first noticed Willie Price in the room. His ship sailed on the Monday, but steerage passengers had to be aboard on Sunday, and he was saying good-bye to a few acquaintances. He seemed quite cheerful, as he walked about with his hands in his pockets, chatting with this one and that; it was the false and hysterical gaiety that precedes a final separation. As soon as he saw Anna he came towards her.

At nine o'clock, it was announced that, even though raffling was prohibited, the bazaar would be livened up by an auction. A licensed auctioneer was brought in, and the sale began. However, the auctioneer failed to connect with the wild energy of the moment, and his professional efforts would have led to a disaster if Mynors hadn't noticed the risk, jumped up on the platform, and confidently taken over the gavel. Mynors was on fire with the kind of wit that entertains an excited crowd, and the auction quickly captured everyone's attention; it was later remembered as the highlight of the bazaar. The incredible man made ten pounds in twenty minutes. During this time, Anna, who had been left alone at the stall, first noticed Willie Price in the room. His ship was set to sail on Monday, but steerage passengers had to be aboard on Sunday, and he was saying goodbye to a few friends. He appeared quite cheerful as he walked around with his hands in his pockets, chatting with various people; it was the false and frantic cheerfulness that comes before a final farewell. As soon as he spotted Anna, he walked over to her.

'Well, good-bye, Miss Tellwright,' he said jauntily. 'I leave for Liverpool to-morrow morning. Wish me luck.'

'Well, goodbye, Miss Tellwright,' he said cheerfully. 'I'm leaving for Liverpool tomorrow morning. Wish me luck.'

Nothing more; no word, no accent, to recall the terrible but sublime past.

Nothing more; no word, no tone, to remember the terrible yet magnificent past.

'I do,' she answered. They shook hands. Others approaching, he drifted away. Her glance followed him like a beneficent influence.

"I do," she replied. They shook hands. As others came close, he slipped away. Her gaze lingered on him like a positive force.

For three days she had carried in her pocket an envelope containing a bank-note for a hundred pounds, intending by some device to force it on him as a parting gift. Now the last chance was lost, and she had not even attempted this difficult feat of charity. Such futility, she reflected, self-scorning, was of a piece with her life. 'He hasn't really gone. He hasn't really gone,' she kept repeating, and yet knew well that he had gone.

For three days, she had kept an envelope containing a hundred-pound banknote in her pocket, planning to somehow give it to him as a farewell gift. Now that opportunity was gone, and she hadn’t even tried to do this challenging act of kindness. She thought with self-disgust that this pointlessness was typical of her life. "He hasn't really left. He hasn't really left," she kept telling herself, even though she knew very well that he had.

'Do you know what they are saying, Anna?' said Beatrice, when, after eleven o'clock, the bazaar was closed to the public, and the stall-holders and their assistants were preparing to depart, their movements hastened by the stern aspect of the town-hall keeper.

'Do you know what they’re saying, Anna?' Beatrice asked, as, after eleven o'clock, the bazaar closed to the public, and the stall owners and their helpers got ready to leave, their movements sped up by the serious look of the town hall keeper.

'No. What?' said Anna; and in the same moment guessed.

'No. What?' Anna said, and in that instant, she figured it out.

'They say old Titus Price embezzled fifty pounds from the building fund, and Henry made it up, privately, so that there shouldn't be a scandal. Just fancy! Do you believe it?'

'They say old Titus Price stole fifty pounds from the building fund, and Henry covered it up privately to avoid a scandal. Can you believe it?'

The secret was abroad. She looked round the room, and saw it in every face.

The secret was out. She glanced around the room and saw it in every face.

'Who says?' Anna demanded fiercely.

"Who says that?" Anna demanded fiercely.

'It's all over the place. Miss Dickinson told me.'

'It's all over the place, Miss Dickinson told me.'

'You will be glad to know, ladies,' Mynors' voice sang out from the platform, 'that the total proceeds, so far as we can calculate them now, exceed five hundred and twenty-five pounds.'

'You'll be happy to hear this, ladies,' Mynors' voice rang out from the platform, 'that the total proceeds, as far as we can calculate them now, exceed five hundred and twenty-five pounds.'

There was clapping of hands, which died out suddenly.

There was a round of applause that suddenly stopped.

'Now Agnes,' Anna called, 'come along, quick; you're as white as a sheet. Good-night, Mrs. Sutton; good-night, Bee.'

'Now Agnes,' Anna called, 'hurry up; you look pale as a ghost. Goodnight, Mrs. Sutton; goodnight, Bee.'

Mynors was still occupied on the platform.

Mynors was still busy on the platform.

The town-hall keeper extinguished some of the lights. The bazaar was over.

The town hall keeper turned off some of the lights. The bazaar was done.


[1] Cut: canal.

[__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__] Cut: channel.




CHAPTER XIV

END OF A SIMPLE SOUL

The next morning, at half-past seven, Anna was standing in the garden-doorway of the Priory. The sun had just risen, the air was cold; roof and pavement were damp; rain had fallen, and more was to fall. A door opened higher up the street, and Willie Price came out, carrying a small bag. He turned to speak to some person within the house, and then stepped forward. As he passed Anna she sprang forth.

The next morning, at 7:30, Anna was standing in the garden doorway of the Priory. The sun had just come up, the air was chilly; the roof and pavement were damp; it had rained, and more was on the way. A door opened further up the street, and Willie Price came out, carrying a small bag. He turned to talk to someone inside the house, and then stepped forward. As he walked by Anna, she suddenly stepped out.

'Oh!' she cried, 'I had just come up here to see if the workmen had locked up properly. We have some of our new furniture in the house, you know.' She was as red as the sun over Hillport.

'Oh!' she exclaimed, 'I just came up here to check if the workers had locked up properly. We’ve got some of our new furniture in the house, you know.' She was as red as the sun over Hillport.

He glanced at her. 'Have you heard?' he asked simply.

He looked at her. 'Have you heard?' he asked plainly.

'About what?' she whispered.

"About what?" she whispered.

'About my poor old father.'

'About my dear old dad.'

'Yes. I was hoping—hoping you would never know.'

'Yes. I was hoping—you would never find out.'

By a common impulse they went into the garden of the Priory, and he shut the door.

By a shared instinct, they entered the garden of the Priory, and he closed the door.

'Never know?' he repeated. 'Oh! they took care to tell me.'

"Never know?" he repeated. "Oh! they made sure to inform me."

A silence followed.

There was a silence.

'Is that your luggage?' she inquired. He lifted up the handbag, and nodded.

'Is that your bag?' she asked. He picked up the handbag and nodded.

'All of it?'

'Everything?'

'Yes,' he said. 'I'm only an emigrant.'

'Yes,' he said. 'I’m just an immigrant.'

'I've got a note here for you,' she said. 'I should have posted it to the steamer; but now you can take it yourself. I want you not to read it till you get to Melbourne.'

"I've got a note for you," she said. "I should have mailed it to the steamer, but now you can take it yourself. I want you to wait to read it until you get to Melbourne."

'Very well,' he said, and crumpled the proffered envelope into his pocket. He was not thinking of the note at all. Presently he asked: 'Why didn't you tell me about my father? If I had to hear it, I'd sooner have heard it from you.'

'Alright,' he said, and stuffed the offered envelope into his pocket. He wasn't thinking about the note at all. After a moment, he asked, 'Why didn’t you tell me about my dad? If I had to find out, I would have preferred to hear it from you.'

'You must try to forget it,' she urged him. 'You are not your father.'

'You need to try to forget it,' she insisted. 'You’re not your dad.'

'I wish I had never been born,' he said. 'I wish I'd gone to prison.'

'I wish I had never been born,' he said. 'I wish I had gone to prison.'

Now was the moment when, if ever, the mother's influence should be exerted.

Now was the moment when, if ever, the mother's influence should be felt.

'Be a man,' she said softly. 'I did the best I could for you. I shall always think of you, in Australia, getting on.'

'Be a man,' she said gently. 'I did everything I could for you. I'll always think of you, in Australia, moving forward.'

She put a hand on his shoulder. 'Yes,' she said again, passionately: 'I shall always remember you—always.'

She placed a hand on his shoulder. 'Yes,' she said again, passionately: 'I will always remember you—always.'

The hand with which he touched her arm shook like an old man's hand. As their eyes met in an intense and painful gaze, to her, at least, it was revealed that they were lovers. What he had learnt in that instant can only be guessed from his next action....

The hand that touched her arm trembled like an old man's. As their eyes locked in an intense and painful stare, to her, at least, it became clear that they were lovers. What he understood in that moment can only be inferred from his next move...


Anna ran out of the garden into the street, and so home, never looking behind to see if he pursued his way to the station.

Anna ran out of the garden and into the street, heading home, never glancing back to see if he was making his way to the station.

Some may argue that Anna, knowing she loved another man, ought not to have married Mynors. But she did not reason thus; such a notion never even occurred to her. She had promised to marry Mynors, and she married him. Nothing else was possible. She who had never failed in duty did not fail then. She who had always submitted and bowed the head, submitted and bowed the head then. She had sucked in with her mother's milk the profound truth that a woman's life is always a renunciation, greater or less. Hers by chance was greater. Facing the future calmly and genially, she took oath with herself to be a good wife to the man whom, with all his excellences, she had never loved. Her thoughts often dwelt lovingly on Willie Price, whom she deemed to be pursuing in Australia an honourable and successful career, quickened at the outset by her hundred pounds. This vision of him was her stay. But neither she nor anyone in the Five Towns or elsewhere ever heard of Willie Price again. And well might none hear! The abandoned pitshaft does not deliver up its secret. And so—the Bank of England is the richer by a hundred pounds unclaimed, and the world the poorer by a simple and meek soul stung to revolt only in its last hour.

Some might say that Anna, knowing she loved another man, shouldn’t have married Mynors. But she didn’t think that way; the idea never crossed her mind. She had promised to marry Mynors, and she went through with it. There was no other option. She, who had never failed in her duties, didn’t fail then. She, who had always accepted and obeyed, accepted and obeyed then. She had absorbed the deep truth that a woman’s life is always a sacrifice, big or small, and hers happened to be significant. Facing the future with calmness and warmth, she made a vow to herself to be a good wife to the man she had never loved, despite all his good qualities. Her thoughts frequently wandered affectionately to Willie Price, whom she believed was building a respectable and successful career in Australia, sparked initially by her hundred pounds. This image of him was her support. But neither she nor anyone in the Five Towns or anywhere else ever heard from Willie Price again. And it was just as well! The abandoned mine shaft does not reveal its secrets. So, the Bank of England is richer by a hundred pounds that remain unclaimed, and the world is poorer for the simple and gentle soul who was only pushed to revolt in her final moments.




Jamieson & Munro, Ltd., Printers, Stirling.

Jamieson & Munro, Ltd., Printers, Stirling.








Uniform with this Volume

Uniform with this Volume


   36 De Profundis                                          Oscar Wilde
   37 Lord Arthur Savile's Crime                            Oscar Wilde
   38 Selected Poems                                        Oscar Wilde
   39 An Ideal Husband                                      Oscar Wilde
   40 Intentions                                            Oscar Wilde
   41 Lady Windermere's Fan                                 Oscar Wilde
   42 Charmides and other Poems                             Oscar Wilde
   43 Harvest Home                                          E. V. Lucas
   44 A Little of Everything                                E. V. Lucas
   45 Vallima Letters                            Robert Louis Stevenson
   46 Hills and the Sea                                  Hilaire Belloc
   47 The Blue Bird                                 Maurice Maeterlinck
   50 Charles Dickens                                  G. K. Chesterton
   53 Letters from Self-Made Merchant to his Son  George Horace Larimer
   54 The Life of John Ruskin                         W. G. Collingwood
   57 Sevastopol and other Stories                          Leo Tolstoy
   58 The Lore of the Honey-Bee                        Tickner Edwardes
   60 From Midshipman to Field Marshal                  Sir Evelyn Wood
   63 Oscar Wilde                                        Arthur Ransome
   64 The Vicar of Morwenstow                           S. Baring-Gould
   65 Old Country Life                                  S. Baring-Gould
   76 Home Life in France                             M. Betham-Edwards
   77 Selected Prose                                        Oscar Wilde
   78 The Best of Lamb                                      E. V. Lucas
   80 Selected Letters                           Robert Louis Stevenson
   83 Reason and Belief                                Sir Oliver Lodge
   85 The Importance of Being Earnest                       Oscar Wilde
   91 Social Evils and their Remedy                         Leo Tolstoy
   93 The Substance of Faith                           Sir Oliver Lodge
   94 All Things Considered                            G. K. Chesterton
   95 The Mirror of the Sea                               Joseph Conrad
   96 A Picked Company                                   Hilaire Belloc
  116 The Survival of Man                              Sir Oliver Lodge
  126 Science from an Easy Chair                      Sir Ray Lankester
  141 Variety Lane                                          E. V. Lucas
  144 A Shilling for my Thoughts                       G. K. Chesterton
  146 A Woman of No Importance                              Oscar Wilde
  149 A Shepherd's Life                                    W. H. Hudson
  193 On Nothing                                         Hilaire Belloc
  300 Jane Austen and her Times                            G. E. Mitton
  114 Select Essays                                 Maurice Maeterlinck
  218 R. L. S.                                             Francis Watt
  223 Two Generations                                       Leo Tolstoy
  126 On Everything                                      Hilaire Belloc
  934 Records and Reminiscences                     Sir Francis Burnand
  253 My Childhood and Boyhood                              Leo Tolstoy
  254 On Something                                       Hilaire Belloc
   36 De Profundis                                          Oscar Wilde  
   37 Lord Arthur Savile's Crime                            Oscar Wilde  
   38 Selected Poems                                        Oscar Wilde  
   39 An Ideal Husband                                      Oscar Wilde  
   40 Intentions                                            Oscar Wilde  
   41 Lady Windermere's Fan                                 Oscar Wilde  
   42 Charmides and other Poems                             Oscar Wilde  
   43 Harvest Home                                          E. V. Lucas  
   44 A Little of Everything                                E. V. Lucas  
   45 Vallima Letters                                        Robert Louis Stevenson  
   46 Hills and the Sea                                    Hilaire Belloc  
   47 The Blue Bird                                         Maurice Maeterlinck  
   50 Charles Dickens                                       G. K. Chesterton  
   53 Letters from Self-Made Merchant to his Son          George Horace Larimer  
   54 The Life of John Ruskin                               W. G. Collingwood  
   57 Sevastopol and other Stories                          Leo Tolstoy  
   58 The Lore of the Honey-Bee                            Tickner Edwardes  
   60 From Midshipman to Field Marshal                      Sir Evelyn Wood  
   63 Oscar Wilde                                          Arthur Ransome  
   64 The Vicar of Morwenstow                               S. Baring-Gould  
   65 Old Country Life                                      S. Baring-Gould  
   76 Home Life in France                                   M. Betham-Edwards  
   77 Selected Prose                                        Oscar Wilde  
   78 The Best of Lamb                                      E. V. Lucas  
   80 Selected Letters                                       Robert Louis Stevenson  
   83 Reason and Belief                                     Sir Oliver Lodge  
   85 The Importance of Being Earnest                       Oscar Wilde  
   91 Social Evils and their Remedy                         Leo Tolstoy  
   93 The Substance of Faith                                 Sir Oliver Lodge  
   94 All Things Considered                                  G. K. Chesterton  
   95 The Mirror of the Sea                                  Joseph Conrad  
   96 A Picked Company                                      Hilaire Belloc  
  116 The Survival of Man                                   Sir Oliver Lodge  
  126 Science from an Easy Chair                            Sir Ray Lankester  
  141 Variety Lane                                          E. V. Lucas  
  144 A Shilling for my Thoughts                            G. K. Chesterton  
  146 A Woman of No Importance                              Oscar Wilde  
  149 A Shepherd's Life                                      W. H. Hudson  
  193 On Nothing                                           Hilaire Belloc  
  300 Jane Austen and her Times                             G. E. Mitton  
  114 Select Essays                                         Maurice Maeterlinck  
  218 R. L. S.                                            Francis Watt  
  223 Two Generations                                       Leo Tolstoy  
  126 On Everything                                         Hilaire Belloc  
  934 Records and Reminiscences                            Sir Francis Burnand  
  253 My Childhood and Boyhood                              Leo Tolstoy  
  254 On Something                                          Hilaire Belloc  


A Selection only.

A limited selection.


Uniform with this Volume

Uniform with this Volume

    1 The Mighty Atom                                     Marie Corelli
    2 Jane                                                Marie Corelli
    3 Boy                                                 Marie Corelli
    4 Spanish Gold                                     G. A. Birmingham
    5 The Search Party                                 G. A. Birmingham
    6 Teresa of Watling Street                           Arnold Bennett
    9 The Unofficial Honeymoon                            Dolf Wyllarde
   12 The Demon                              C. N. and A. M. Williamson
   17 Joseph                                                Frank Danby
   18 Round the Red Lamp                             Sir A. Conan Doyle
   20 Light Freights                                       W. W. Jacobs
   22 The Long Road                                        John Oxenham
   71 The Gates of Wrath                                 Arnold Bennett
   72 Short Cruises                                        W. W. Jacobs
   81 The Card                                           Arnold Bennett
   87 Lalage's Lovers                                  G. A. Birmingham
   93 White Fang                                            Jack London
  105 The Wallet of Kai Lung                              Ernest Bramah
  108 The Adventures of Dr. Whitty                     G. A. Birmingham
  113 Lavender and Old Lace                                 Myrtle Reed
  115 Old Rose and Silver                                   Myrtle Reed
  122 The Double Life of Mr. Alfred Burton        E. Phillips Oppenheim
  125 The Regent                                         Arnold Bennett
  127 Sally                                            Dorothea Conyers
  129 The Lodger                                    Mrs. Belloc Lowndes
  135 A Spinner In the Sun                                  Myrtle Reed
  137 The Mystery of Dr. Fu-Manchu                           Sax Rohmer
  139 The Golden Centipede                                Louise Gerard
  140 The Love Pirate                        C. N. and A. M. Williamson
  143 The Way of these Women                      E. Phillips Oppenheim
  143 Sandy Married                                    Dorothea Conyers
  145 Chance                                              Joseph Conrad
  148 Flower of the Dusk                                    Myrtle Reed
  150 The Gentleman Adventurer                             H. C. Bailey
  154 The Hyena of Kallu                                  Louise Gerard
  190 The Happy Hunting Ground                        Mrs. Alice Perrin
  191 My Lady of Shadows                                   John Oxenham
  211 Max Carrados                                        Ernest Bramah
  212 Under Western Eyes                                  Joseph Conrad
  213 The Kloof Bride                                  Ernest Glanville
  215 Mr. Grex of Monte Carlo                     E. Phillips Oppenheim
  216 The Wonder of Love                                 E. M. Albanesi
  217 A Weaver of Dreams                                    Myrtle Reed
  219 The Family                                        Elinor Mordaunt
  220 A Heritage of Peril                               A. W. Marchmont
  221 The Kinsman                                         Mrs. Sidgwick
  222 Emmanuel Burden                                    Hilaire Belloc
  224 Broken Shackles                                      John Oxenham
  225 A Knight of Spain                                  Marjorie Bowen
  227 Byeways                                            Robert Hichens
  228 Gossamer                                         G. A. Birmingham
  230 The Salving of a Derelict                           Maurice Drake
  231 Cameos                                              Marie Corelli
  232 The Happy Valley                                     B. M. Croker
  245 The Shop Girl                          C. N. and A. M. Williamson
  250 The Lost Regiment                                Ernest Glanville
  261 Tarzan of the Apes                           Edgar Rice Burroughs
    1 The Mighty Atom                                     Marie Corelli  
    2 Jane                                                Marie Corelli  
    3 Boy                                                 Marie Corelli  
    4 Spanish Gold                                     G. A. Birmingham  
    5 The Search Party                                 G. A. Birmingham  
    6 Teresa of Watling Street                           Arnold Bennett  
    9 The Unofficial Honeymoon                            Dolf Wyllarde  
   12 The Demon                              C. N. and A. M. Williamson  
   17 Joseph                                                Frank Danby  
   18 Round the Red Lamp                             Sir A. Conan Doyle  
   20 Light Freights                                       W. W. Jacobs  
   22 The Long Road                                        John Oxenham  
   71 The Gates of Wrath                                 Arnold Bennett  
   72 Short Cruises                                        W. W. Jacobs  
   81 The Card                                           Arnold Bennett  
   87 Lalage's Lovers                                  G. A. Birmingham  
   93 White Fang                                            Jack London  
  105 The Wallet of Kai Lung                              Ernest Bramah  
  108 The Adventures of Dr. Whitty                     G. A. Birmingham  
  113 Lavender and Old Lace                                 Myrtle Reed  
  115 Old Rose and Silver                                   Myrtle Reed  
  122 The Double Life of Mr. Alfred Burton        E. Phillips Oppenheim  
  125 The Regent                                         Arnold Bennett  
  127 Sally                                            Dorothea Conyers  
  129 The Lodger                                    Mrs. Belloc Lowndes  
  135 A Spinner In the Sun                                  Myrtle Reed  
  137 The Mystery of Dr. Fu-Manchu                           Sax Rohmer  
  139 The Golden Centipede                                Louise Gerard  
  140 The Love Pirate                        C. N. and A. M. Williamson  
  143 The Way of these Women                      E. Phillips Oppenheim  
  143 Sandy Married                                    Dorothea Conyers  
  145 Chance                                              Joseph Conrad  
  148 Flower of the Dusk                                    Myrtle Reed  
  150 The Gentleman Adventurer                             H. C. Bailey  
  154 The Hyena of Kallu                                  Louise Gerard  
  190 The Happy Hunting Ground                        Mrs. Alice Perrin  
  191 My Lady of Shadows                                   John Oxenham  
  211 Max Carrados                                        Ernest Bramah  
  212 Under Western Eyes                                  Joseph Conrad  
  213 The Kloof Bride                                  Ernest Glanville  
  215 Mr. Grex of Monte Carlo                     E. Phillips Oppenheim  
  216 The Wonder of Love                                 E. M. Albanesi  
  217 A Weaver of Dreams                                    Myrtle Reed  
  219 The Family                                        Elinor Mordaunt  
  220 A Heritage of Peril                               A. W. Marchmont  
  221 The Kinsman                                         Mrs. Sidgwick  
  222 Emmanuel Burden                                    Hilaire Belloc  
  224 Broken Shackles                                      John Oxenham  
  225 A Knight of Spain                                  Marjorie Bowen  
  227 Byeways                                            Robert Hichens  
  228 Gossamer                                         G. A. Birmingham  
  230 The Salving of a Derelict                           Maurice Drake  
  231 Cameos                                              Marie Corelli  
  232 The Happy Valley                                     B. M. Croker  
  245 The Shop Girl                          C. N. and A. M. Williamson  
  250 The Lost Regiment                                Ernest Glanville  
  261 Tarzan of the Apes                           Edgar Rice Burroughs  

A Selection only.

A curated selection only.






Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!